WO2008092522A1 - Colouring agents containing luminescent pigments that can be stimulated by visible light - Google Patents

Colouring agents containing luminescent pigments that can be stimulated by visible light Download PDF

Info

Publication number
WO2008092522A1
WO2008092522A1 PCT/EP2007/063218 EP2007063218W WO2008092522A1 WO 2008092522 A1 WO2008092522 A1 WO 2008092522A1 EP 2007063218 W EP2007063218 W EP 2007063218W WO 2008092522 A1 WO2008092522 A1 WO 2008092522A1
Authority
WO
WIPO (PCT)
Prior art keywords
acid
amino
group
copolymer
composition according
Prior art date
Application number
PCT/EP2007/063218
Other languages
German (de)
French (fr)
Inventor
Ina KRÜGERMANN
Claudia Wickleder
April Bowen
Original Assignee
Henkel Ag & Co. Kgaa
Priority date (The priority date is an assumption and is not a legal conclusion. Google has not performed a legal analysis and makes no representation as to the accuracy of the date listed.)
Filing date
Publication date
Application filed by Henkel Ag & Co. Kgaa filed Critical Henkel Ag & Co. Kgaa
Publication of WO2008092522A1 publication Critical patent/WO2008092522A1/en

Links

Classifications

    • CCHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
    • C09DYES; PAINTS; POLISHES; NATURAL RESINS; ADHESIVES; COMPOSITIONS NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR; APPLICATIONS OF MATERIALS NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR
    • C09KMATERIALS FOR MISCELLANEOUS APPLICATIONS, NOT PROVIDED FOR ELSEWHERE
    • C09K11/00Luminescent, e.g. electroluminescent, chemiluminescent materials
    • C09K11/08Luminescent, e.g. electroluminescent, chemiluminescent materials containing inorganic luminescent materials
    • C09K11/77Luminescent, e.g. electroluminescent, chemiluminescent materials containing inorganic luminescent materials containing rare earth metals
    • C09K11/7766Luminescent, e.g. electroluminescent, chemiluminescent materials containing inorganic luminescent materials containing rare earth metals containing two or more rare earth metals
    • C09K11/7767Chalcogenides
    • C09K11/7769Oxides
    • C09K11/7771Oxysulfides
    • AHUMAN NECESSITIES
    • A61MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
    • A61KPREPARATIONS FOR MEDICAL, DENTAL OR TOILETRY PURPOSES
    • A61K8/00Cosmetics or similar toiletry preparations
    • A61K8/18Cosmetics or similar toiletry preparations characterised by the composition
    • A61K8/19Cosmetics or similar toiletry preparations characterised by the composition containing inorganic ingredients
    • A61K8/23Sulfur; Selenium; Tellurium; Compounds thereof
    • AHUMAN NECESSITIES
    • A61MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
    • A61QSPECIFIC USE OF COSMETICS OR SIMILAR TOILETRY PREPARATIONS
    • A61Q3/00Manicure or pedicure preparations
    • A61Q3/02Nail coatings
    • AHUMAN NECESSITIES
    • A61MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
    • A61QSPECIFIC USE OF COSMETICS OR SIMILAR TOILETRY PREPARATIONS
    • A61Q5/00Preparations for care of the hair
    • AHUMAN NECESSITIES
    • A61MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
    • A61QSPECIFIC USE OF COSMETICS OR SIMILAR TOILETRY PREPARATIONS
    • A61Q5/00Preparations for care of the hair
    • A61Q5/06Preparations for styling the hair, e.g. by temporary shaping or colouring
    • A61Q5/065Preparations for temporary colouring the hair, e.g. direct dyes
    • AHUMAN NECESSITIES
    • A61MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
    • A61QSPECIFIC USE OF COSMETICS OR SIMILAR TOILETRY PREPARATIONS
    • A61Q5/00Preparations for care of the hair
    • A61Q5/10Preparations for permanently dyeing the hair
    • AHUMAN NECESSITIES
    • A61MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
    • A61KPREPARATIONS FOR MEDICAL, DENTAL OR TOILETRY PURPOSES
    • A61K2800/00Properties of cosmetic compositions or active ingredients thereof or formulation aids used therein and process related aspects
    • A61K2800/40Chemical, physico-chemical or functional or structural properties of particular ingredients
    • A61K2800/42Colour properties
    • A61K2800/43Pigments; Dyes
    • A61K2800/432Direct dyes
    • A61K2800/4324Direct dyes in preparations for permanently dyeing the hair
    • AHUMAN NECESSITIES
    • A61MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
    • A61QSPECIFIC USE OF COSMETICS OR SIMILAR TOILETRY PREPARATIONS
    • A61Q1/00Make-up preparations; Body powders; Preparations for removing make-up
    • A61Q1/02Preparations containing skin colorants, e.g. pigments

Definitions

  • the present invention relates to colorants which contain luminescent pigments in a carrier as the colorant component, wherein luminescence of the luminescent pigments is excited by absorption of visible light. Furthermore, the invention relates to a dyeing process and the use of these luminescent pigments for coloring, gloss improvement, optical brightening and to improve the color brilliance of substrates.
  • Optical brighteners may be added to detergents to remove graying and yellowing of the treated fabrics which will attract the fiber and cause brightening and fake bleaching by turning invisible ultraviolet radiation into visible longer wavelength light convert the absorbed from sunlight ultraviolet light is radiated as a pale blue fluorescence and the yellow shade of the grayed or yellowed laundry to yield pure white Suitable compounds originate for example from the substance classes of the 4,4 'diamino-2,2'.
  • Luminous effects can be caused in various ways, such as by light reflection or by active emission of visible light.
  • WO-A1-2004 / 108108 describes cosmetic preparations which contain a dye which is insoluble in non-polar and polar solvents and gives fluorescence effects under UV light.
  • the document EP-A1-1 129 701 relates to cosmetic compositions containing at least one chemiluminescent dye and an oxidizing agent for triggering the chemiluminescence.
  • the document FR-A1-2 885 521 relates to cosmetic compositions containing in a physiologically acceptable carrier photoluminescent nanopigments having an average particle diameter of at most 500 nm, wherein said nanopigments contain at least one element of rare earth metals.
  • the user wishes to be able to achieve luminous effects or gloss effects even in daylight surroundings.
  • the invention is therefore based on the object to improve the luminosity of existing or freshly applied dyeings, as well as the brilliance of existing or freshly applied dyeings and / or to give the substrate a gloss effect.
  • the gloss or luminous effect, as well as the color brilliance should be visible especially in daylight or in the light of commercial bulbs. This task can not sufficiently solve the compositions of the cited prior art.
  • compositions comprising luminescent pigments which undergo luminescence excitation by visible light. These agents allow the treated substrates to attract increased attention even in daylight.
  • a first subject of the invention is therefore an agent containing in a carrier as a coloring component luminescent pigments, wherein a luminescence of the pigments is excited by absorption of visible light.
  • the luminescent pigments used according to the invention are embedded in a carrier in the compositions according to the invention.
  • This support may be in the conditions of use as a solid or in liquid form.
  • a cosmetic carrier which is physiologically compatible and, when applied topically or topically to a healthy, living organism, does not cause any damage to its health.
  • cosmetic creams, emulsions, gels or surfactant-containing foaming solutions for example shampoos, foam aerosols or other preparations which are particularly suitable for use on surfaces, on the skin and / or on the hair, are particularly suitable as cosmetic carriers.
  • the cosmetic carriers may be aqueous or, in particular, aqueous-alcoholic, in particular.
  • An aqueous cosmetic carrier contains at least 40% by weight of water.
  • aqueous-alcoholic cosmetic carriers are to be understood as meaning water-containing compositions containing from 3 to 70% by weight of a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl alcohol, in particular ethanol or isopropanol.
  • the agents according to the invention can additionally contain other organic solvents, such as methoxybutanol, benzyl alcohol, ethyl diglycol or 1, 2-propylene glycol. Preference is given to all water-soluble organic solvents.
  • the luminescence of the known luminescent pigments is caused by excitation with UV light.
  • UV light The person skilled in the art knows various types of UV light, namely UVA radiation (315-400 nm), UVB radiation (280-315 nm) and UVC radiation ( ⁇ 280 nm).
  • UVA radiation 315-400 nm
  • UVB radiation 280-315 nm
  • UVC radiation ⁇ 280 nm
  • a luminescence of the pigments contained in the agents according to the invention is excited by absorption of visible light.
  • visible light in the context of the invention, the section of the light spectrum is defined, which corresponds to the visual range, ie light in a wavelength range between 400 nm and 800 nm. However, it is preferred if a luminescence of the pigments by absorption of light with a wavelength between 420 nm and 750 nm, in particular between 450 nm and 750 nm, can stimulate.
  • luminescence in addition to the described luminescence excitation by visible light, luminescence can additionally be excited by absorption of light in the UV range with wavelengths of at most 400 nm.
  • the luminescence of the luminescent pigments present in the compositions according to the invention is effected by emission of visible light, i. Light within a wavelength range between 400 nm and 800 nm. The wavelength of the emitted visible light has a longer wavelength than the visible light absorbed to excite the corresponding emission.
  • Luminescent pigments are defined in the sense of the invention as in the carrier practically insoluble, inorganic or organic, colorful or achromatic compounds that absorb energy and then emit as light.
  • lumirescence phosphorescence and / or fluorescence.
  • inorganic luminescent pigments which contain at least one metal ion from the group formed by the lanthanides, lanthanum, scandium and yttrium are preferred.
  • the luminescence pigments preferably usable according to the invention may be amorphous or crystalline, or at least comprise crystalline regions.
  • the luminescent pigments have crystalline regions in which the lattice elements (eg molecules, atoms or ions) are arranged spatially in regularly repeating unit cells to form a three-dimensional lattice.
  • Particularly preferably usable luminescent pigments comprise a host material and at least one doping element.
  • a host material is defined according to the invention as a material whose elements are replaced in parts by so-called doping elements. Doping elements are different from the elements forming the host material. If the host material is wholly or partly crystalline, its crystalline regions are referred to as host lattices.
  • the host material of the luminescence pigment is selected from sulfides (in particular the alpha phase, beta phase or gamma phase of the sulfides) or oxide sulfides of a metal selected from scandium (preferably Sc 3+ ), yttrium (preferably Y.
  • the oxide sulfides according to the invention preferably comprise per unit of formula a larger amount of sulfur than oxygen.
  • the agent according to the invention may contain one or more luminescent pigments with these aforementioned host materials.
  • the host material is particularly preferably selected from sulfides of lanthanum, scandium, yttrium, praseodymium, neodymium, cerium, samarium, gadolinium or lutetium (in particular the alpha phase, beta phase or gamma phase of the sulfides ) or oxide sulfides of lanthanum, scandium, yttrium, praseodymium, neodymium, cerium, samarium, gadolinium or lutetium.
  • the host material is selected from YS x , YS, Y 2 S 3 , Y 2 OS 2 , Y 2 S 3 Oi 2 , oCo, oC-
  • the beta phase of the sulfides of the metals scandium (preferably Sc 3+ ), yttrium (preferably Y 3+ ), lanthanum (preferably La 3+ ), cerium (preferably Ce 3+ ), praseodymium (preferably Pr 3+ ), neodymium (preferably Nd 3+ ), samarium (preferably Sm 3+ ), europium (preferably Eu 3+ ), gadolinium (preferably Gd 3+ ), terbium (preferably Tb 3+ ), dysprosium (preferably Dy 3+ ), holmium (preferably Ho 3+ ), erbium (preferably Er 3+ ), thulium (preferably Tm 3+ ), ytterbium (preferably Yb 3+ ) or lutetium (preferably Lu 3+ ) (in particular the beta phase of the sulfides of the metals lanthanum (preferably La 3 + ), Cerium (preferably Ce 3+ ), praseodymium (preferably Pr 3+ ), n
  • the beta phase of the abovementioned metals is characterized by that it always contains one oxygen atom per 10 metal atoms and per 14 sulfur atoms owing to its affinity for oxygen per formula unit
  • Particularly preferred luminescent pigments based on the beta phase of the abovementioned sulfides in turn preferably comprise crystalline regions of M 10 OS 14 , with crystallites having a unit cell of the tetragonal space group number 142 (I 4- ⁇ / acd) (numbering according to International Tables for Christallography Vol. A, Ed. Theo Hahn, 4th revised Edition, Kluwer Academic Publishers, Dordecht, Boston, London, 1995, pages 476-480) with 8 formula units M 10 OS 14 per unit cell.
  • I 4- ⁇ / acd tetragonal space group number
  • the lattice constants of the unit cell of these preferred crystalline regions are: a in the range of 1485 to 1537 pm, c in the range of 1974 to 2038 pm and the volume in the range of 328 to 362 cm 3 / mol.
  • this preferred unit cell exist three crystallographically distinguishable metal centers.
  • the host material [in particular the sulfides or oxide sulfides of a metal selected from scandium (preferably Sc 3+ ), yttrium (preferably Y 3+ ), lanthanum (preferably La 3+ ), cerium (preferably Ce 3+ ), praseodymium (preferably Pr 3 + ), Neodymium (preferably Nd 3+ ), samarium (preferably Sm 3+ ), Europium (preferably Eu 3+ ), gadolinium (preferably Gd 3+ ), terbium (preferably Tb 3+ ), dysprosium (preferably Dy 3+ ), holmium (preferably Ho 3+ ), erbium (preferably Er 3+ ), thulium ( preferably Tm 3+ ), ytterbium (preferably Yb 3+ ) or lutetium (preferably Lu 3+ ), (particularly preferably selected from scandium (preferably Sc 3+ ), yttrium (preferably Y 3+ ), lanthanum (preferably La 3+ ) , Pra
  • At least one doping element is preferably selected from at least one metal ion of at least one of the metals cerium, praseodymium, neodymium, samarium, europium, gadolinium, terbium, dysprosium, holmium, erbium, thulium, ytterbium.
  • the doping element is selected from at least one metal ion of Mn 2+ , Ce 3+ , Pr 3+ , Nd 3+ , Sm 3+ , Eu 2+ , Eu 3+ , Gd 3+ , Tb 3 + , Dy 3+ , Ho 3+ , Er 3+ , Tm 3+ , Yb 3+ or Lu 3+ , most preferably from at least one metal ion of Mn 2+ , Ce 3+ , Tb 3+ , Eu 2+ or Eu 3+ .
  • the agent according to the invention contains such luminescence pigments in which the host phase is the beta phase of the lanthanum sulfide which has been doped with at least one of the abovementioned metals as doping element.
  • luminescent pigments with host material and doping element which have a degree of doping of 0.01% to 50.0%.
  • the doping level is defined as the molar amount of all those elements of the host material expressed in mole percent that have been replaced by doping elements.
  • a particularly effective solution to the problem is staining with agents containing luminescent pigments whose host material is doped with metal ions of the cerium (preferably Ce 3+ ) at a degree of leaching of 1.0% to 10.0%.
  • agents containing luminescent pigments whose host material is doped with a degree of dosing of 1, 0% to 15.0% with metal ions of europium (preferably Eu 2+ or Eu 3+ ).
  • very particularly preferred luminescent pigments with excitation by visible light are those which comprise La 10 O Si 4 as host material, a degree of doping of 0.01% to 20.0%, in particular 2.0% to 15.0%, and doped with at least one metal ion as doping element selected from at least one metal ion Ce 3+ , Pr 3+ , Nd 3+ , Sm 3+ , Eu 2+ , Eu 3+ , Gd 3+ , Tb 3+ , Dy 3 + , Ho 3+ , Er 3+ , Tm 3+ , Yb 3+ , Lu 3+ , most preferably from at least one metal ion selected from Ce 3+ , Tb 3+ , Eu 2+ , Eu 3+ .
  • Said luminescent pigments preferably have an average particle diameter of 1 10 3 m to 1 10 ⁇ 10 m, in particular from 1 10 ⁇ 7 m to 1 10 ⁇ 9 m.
  • the agent according to the invention preferably contains said luminescent pigments in an amount of from 0.01% by weight to 20.0% by weight, particularly preferably from 1.0% by weight to 10.0% by weight, based in each case on the weight of the ready-to-use agent.
  • luminescent pigments which can be used according to the invention can be present in the agents according to the invention.
  • the types of luminescent pigments which can be used according to the invention differ in the color of the emitted light.
  • the common use of, for example, red luminescent, blue luminescent and green luminescent Luminescent pigments appear to the observer as white light and according to the invention are preferably used for pure optical brightening.
  • the composition according to the invention with a conventional color change of various substrates, for example as a cosmetic color change such as, for example, the coloring of keratin-containing fibers or of the skin.
  • the agents according to the invention contain, in addition to the luminescence pigments described above, at least one further color-changing component which is different from said luminescent pigments.
  • the obtained, conventional dyeings obtained in this way by the presence of said luminescent pigments increased luminosity, higher brilliance and improved gloss.
  • the additional color-changing component is again preferably selected
  • the developer components used are usually p-phenylenediamine and its derivatives, p-aminophenol and its derivatives, pyrimidine derivatives, pyrazole derivatives, pyrazolopyrimidine derivatives and heterocyclic hydrazones.
  • p-phenylenediamine derivatives of the formula (E1) in which
  • G 1 represents a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 2 to C 4 ) -polyhydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy - (C 1 -C 4 ) -alkyl radical, a 4'-aminophenyl radical or a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical which is substituted by a nitrogen-containing group, a phenyl or a 4'-aminophenyl radical;
  • G 2 represents a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 2 to C 4 ) -polyhydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy - (C 1 -C 4 ) -alkyl radical
  • G 3 represents a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom such as a chlorine, bromine, iodine or fluorine atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 2 to alkoxy Acetylaminoalkoxyrest, a Mesylamino- (C- ⁇ -C 4) or a (C 1 to C 4) - C 4) polyhydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4) -Hydroxyalkoxyrest, a (C 1 to C 4) - carbamoylaminoalkoxy radical;
  • a halogen atom such as a chlorine, bromine, iodine or fluorine atom
  • a (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl radical such as a chlorine, bromine, iodine or fluorine atom
  • a (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl radical such as
  • G 4 represents a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom or a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical or, when G 3 and G 4 are ortho to each other, they may together form a bridging ⁇ , ⁇ -alkylenedioxo group, such as, for example, an ethylenedioxy group ,
  • Particularly preferred p-phenylenediamines of formula (E1) are selected from one or more compounds of the group formed from p-phenylenediamine, p-toluenediamine, 2-chloro-p-phenylenediamine, 2,3-dimethyl-p-phenylenediamine , 2,6-dimethyl-p-phenylenediamine, 2,6-diethyl-p-phenylenediamine, 2,5-dimethyl-p-phenylenediamine, N, N-dimethyl-p-phenylenediamine, N, N-diethyl-p-phenylenediamine , N, N-dipropyl-p-phenylenediamine, 4-amino-3-methyl- (N, N-diethyl) -aniline, N, N-bis ( ⁇ -hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, 4-N, N Bis ( ⁇ -hydroxyethyl) amino-2-methylaniline,
  • p-phenylenediamine derivatives of the formula (E1) are selected from at least one compound of the group p-phenylenediamine, p-toluenediamine, 2- (ß-hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, 2- ( ⁇ , ß-dihydroxyethyl) - p-phenylenediamine, N, N-bis- ( ⁇ -hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, N- (4-amino-3-methylphenyl) -N- [3- (1H-imidazol-1-yl) propyl] amine , as well as the physiologically acceptable salts of these compounds.
  • developer component compounds which contain at least two aromatic nuclei which are substituted by amino and / or hydroxyl groups.
  • binuclear developer components which can be used in the dyeing compositions according to the invention, mention may be made in particular of the compounds corresponding to the following formula (E2) and their physiologically tolerated salts:
  • Z 1 and Z 2 independently of one another represent a hydroxyl or NH 2 radical optionally substituted by a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, by a (C 1 to C 4 ) -hydroxyalkyl radical and / or by a bridge Y
  • the bridging Y is an alkylene group having 1 to 14 carbon atoms, such as a linear or branched alkylene chain or an alkylene ring, which of one or more nitrogen-containing groups and / or one or more heteroatoms such as Oxygen, sulfur or nitrogen atoms may be interrupted or terminated and may be substituted by one or more hydroxyl or (C 1 to C 8 ) alkoxy, or a direct bond,
  • G 5 and G 6 independently of one another represent a hydrogen or halogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -monohydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 2 to C 4 ) - Polyhydroxyalkyl, a (Ci to C 4 ) -Anninoalkylrest or a direct connection to
  • G 7 , G 8 , G 9 , G 10 , G 11 and G 12 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a direct bond to the bridge Y or a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, with the proviso that the compounds of the formula (E2) contain only one bridging Y per molecule.
  • Preferred binuclear developer components of the formula (E2) are in particular selected from at least one of the following compounds: N, N'-bis- ( ⁇ -hydroxyethyl) -N, N'-bis- (4'-aminophenyl) -1,3-diamino -propan-2-ol, N, N'-bis ( ⁇ -hydroxyethyl) -N, N'-bis (4'-aminophenyl) ethylenediamine, N, N'-bis (4'-aminophenyl) - tetramethylenediamine, N, N'-bis ( ⁇ -hydroxyethyl) -N, N'-bis (4'-aminophenyl) tetramethylenediamine, N, N'-bis (4- (methylamino) phenyl) tetramethylenediamine, N , N'-diethyl-N, N'-bis (4'-amino-3'-methylphenyl) ethylenediamine,
  • Very particularly preferred binuclear developer components of the formula (E2) are selected from N, N'-bis ( ⁇ -hydroxyethyl) -N, N'-bis (4-aminophenyl) -1,3-diamino-propan-2-ol , Bis (2-hydroxy-5-aminophenyl) -methane, 1, 3-bis (2,5-diaminophenoxy) -propan-2-ol, N, N'-bis (4-aminophenyl) -1, 4-diazacycloheptane, 1, 10-bis (2,5-diaminophenyl) -1, 4,7,10-tetraoxadecane or one of the physiologically acceptable salts of these compounds.
  • p-aminophenol derivatives of the formula (E3) it may be preferred according to the invention to use as the developer component a p-aminophenol derivative or one of its physiologically tolerable salts. Particular preference is given to p-aminophenol derivatives of the formula (E3)
  • G 13 represents a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a (Ci to C4) alkyl, a (Ci to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) polyhydroxyalkyl radical, a (Ci to C 4) alkoxy (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -aminoalkyl radical, a hydroxy (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkylamino radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -hydroxyalkoxy radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) - Hydroxyalkyl- (C 1 to C 4 ) -aminoalkyl radical or a (di - [(C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl] amino) - (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, and G 14 represents a hydrogen or halogen atom, a ( Ci to C 4) alkyl, a (Ci
  • Preferred p-aminophenols of the formula (E3) are, in particular, p-aminophenol, N-methyl-p-aminophenol, 4-amino-3-methylphenol, 4-amino-3-fluorophenol, 2-hydroxymethylamino-4-aminophenol, 4 -Amino-3-hydroxymethylphenol, 4-amino-2- ( ⁇ -hydroxyethoxy) -phenol, 4-amino-2-methylphenol, 4-amino-2-hydroxymethylphenol, 4-amino-2-methoxymethyl-phenol, 4-amino -2-aminomethylphenol, 4-amino-2- ( ⁇ -hydroxyethyl-aminomethyl) phenol, 4-amino-2- ( ⁇ , ⁇ -dihydroxyethyl) phenol, 4-amino-2-fluorophenol, 4-amino-2 -chlorophenol, 4-amino-2,6-dichlorophenol, 4-amino-2- (diethyl-aminomethyl) -phenol and their physiological
  • Very particularly preferred compounds of the formula (E3) are p-aminophenol, 4-amino-3-methylphenol, 4-amino-2-aminomethylphenol, 4-amino-2- ( ⁇ , ⁇ -dihydroxyethyl) -phenol and A-amino- 2- (diethylaminomethyl) -phenol.
  • the developer component may be selected from o-aminophenol and its derivatives such as 2-amino-4-methylphenol, 2-amino-5-methylphenol or 2-amino-4-chlorophenol.
  • the developer component may be selected from heterocyclic developer components, such as pyrimidine derivatives, pyrazole derivatives, pyrazolopyrimidine derivatives or their physiologically acceptable salts.
  • heterocyclic developer components such as pyrimidine derivatives, pyrazole derivatives, pyrazolopyrimidine derivatives or their physiologically acceptable salts.
  • Preferred pyrimidine derivatives are selected according to the invention from compounds of the formula (E4) or their physiologically tolerated salts,
  • G 17 , G 18 and G 19 independently represent a hydrogen atom, a hydroxy group, a
  • G 20 represents a hydroxy group or a group -NG 21 G 22 , in which G 21 and G 22 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group, a (C 1 to C 4 )
  • Particularly preferred pyrimidine derivatives are in particular the compounds 2,4,5,6-tetra-aminopyrimidine, 4-hydroxy-2,5,6-triaminopyrimidine, 2-hydroxy-4,5,6-triaminopyrimidine, 2-dimethylamino-4 , 5,6-triaminopyrimidine, 2,4-dihydroxy-5,6-diaminopyrimidine and 2,5,6-triaminopyrimidine.
  • Preferred pyrazole derivatives are selected according to the invention from compounds of the formula (E5),
  • G, G, G are, independently, a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4) - alkyl group, a (C 1 to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) -Polyhydroxy- alkyl group, an optionally substituted Aryl group or an optionally substituted aryl (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl group, provided that when G 25 is a
  • G 26 represents a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -
  • G 27 represents a hydrogen atom, an optionally substituted aryl group, a (Ci to
  • the radical -NG G binds to the 5-position and the radical G to the 3-position of the pyrazole cycle.
  • Particularly preferred pyrazole derivatives are in particular the compounds which are selected from 4,5-diamino-1-methylpyrazole, 4,5-diamino-1- ( ⁇ -hydroxyethyl) pyrazole, 3,4-diaminopyrazole, 4,5- Diamino-1- (4'-chlorobenzyl) -pyrazole, 4,5-diamino-1,3-dimethylpyrazole, 4,5-diamino-3-methyl-1-phenylpyrazole, 4,5-diamino-1-methyl-3 phenylpyrazole, 4-amino-1,3-dimethyl-5-hydrazinopyrazole, 1-benzyl-4,5-diamino-3-methylpyrazole, 4,5-diamino-3-tert-butyl-1-methylpyrazole, 4 5-diamino-1-tert-butyl-3-methylpyrazole, 4,5-diamino-1- ( ⁇ -hydroxyethy
  • Preferred pyrazolopyrimidine derivatives are, in particular, the derivatives of the pyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidine of the following formula (E6) and their tautomeric forms, if a tautomeric equilibrium exists:
  • G 28 , G 29 and G 30 , G 31 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, an aryl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -monohydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 2 to C 4 ) - Polyhydroxyalkylrest a (Ci to C 4 ) -Alkoxy- (Ci to C 4 ) -alkylrest, a (Ci to C 4 ) - Aminoalkylrest, which can be protected if necessary by a Acetyl Ureid or a Sulfonyl remainder, one (Ci to C 4) alkylamino alkyl (Ci to C 4), a di - [(Ci to C 4) - alkyl] - (Ci to C4) aminoalkyl radical, wherein the dialkyl residues optionally a carbon cycle or form a heterocycle with 5 or 6 chain members, a (C 1
  • - i has the value 0, 1, 2 or 3
  • p has the value 0 or 1
  • q has the value 0 or 1
  • n has the value 0 or 1, with the proviso that the sum of p + q is not equal to 0 is
  • n has the value 0, and the groups NG 28 G 29 and NG 30 G 31 occupy the positions (2, 3); (5,6); (6,7); (3,5) or (3,7);
  • pyrazolo [1, 5-a] pyrimidines of the above formula (E6) can be prepared as described in the literature by cyclization from an aminopyrazole or from hydrazine.
  • Very particularly preferred developer components are selected from at least one compound from the group formed from p-phenylenediamine, p-toluenediamine, 2- ( ⁇ -hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, 2- ( ⁇ , ⁇ -dihydroxyethyl) -p phenylenediamine, N, N-bis ( ⁇ -hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, N- (4-amino-3-methylphenyl) -N- [3- (1 H -imidazol-1-yl) propyl] amine, N, N'-bis ( ⁇ -hydroxyethyl) -N, N'-bis (4-aminophenyl) -1, 3-diamino-propan-2-ol, bis (2-hydroxy-5-aminophenyl) - methane, 1,3-bis- (2,5-diaminophenoxy) -propan-2-ol, N, N'-bis (4-amin
  • Developer components are preferably contained in an amount of 0.005 to 10 wt .-%, preferably from 0.1 to 5 wt .-%, each based on the weight of the ready-to-use agent.
  • (E6) radicals are mentioned: examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radicals are the groups -CH 3 ,
  • a particularly preferred example of a (C 2 to C 4 ) polyhydroxyalkyl group is 1, 2
  • halogen atoms are F, Cl or Br atoms, Cl atoms are very particularly preferred examples.
  • nitrogen-containing groups are in particular -NH 2 , (C 1 to C 4 ) -
  • Trialkylammonium groups (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkylamino groups, imidazolinium and
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -monoalkylamino groups are -NHCH 3 , -NHCH 2 CH 3 , -NHCH 2 CH 2 CH 3 ,
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -dialkylamino group are -N (CH 3 ) 2 , -N (CH 2 CH 3 ) 2 .
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) trialkylammonium groups are -N + (CH 3 ) 3 , -N + (CH 3 ) 2 (CH 2 CH 3 ),
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -hydroxyalkylamino radicals are -NH-CH 2 CH 2 OH, -NH-CH 2 CH 2 OH,
  • (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl groups are the groups -CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH 3 ,
  • hydroxy (C 1 to C 4 ) alkoxy radicals are -O-CH 2 OH, -O-CH 2 CH 2 OH, -O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH,
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -acetylaminoalkoxy radicals are -O-CH 2 NHC (O) CH 3 , -O-
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -carbamoylanninoalkoxy radicals are -O-CH 2 CH 2 -NH-C (O) -NH 2 ,
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -aminoalkyl radicals are -CH 2 NH 2 , -CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 ,
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -cyanoalkyl radicals are -CH 2 CN 1 -CH 2 CH 2 CN 1 -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CN.
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -hydroxyalkylamino (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radicals are -CH 2 CH 2 NH-CH 2 CH 2 OH 1
  • aryl groups is the phenyl group.
  • aryl (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl groups are the benzyl group and the 2-phenylethyl group.
  • Coupler components do not form a significant color within the framework of the oxidative dyeing alone, but always require the presence of developer components. Therefore, it is preferred according to the invention that at least one coupler component is additionally used when using at least one developer component.
  • Coupler components according to the invention allow at least one substitution of a chemical residue of the coupler by the oxidized form of the developer component. This forms a covalent bond between the coupler and the developer component.
  • Couplers are preferably cyclic compounds which carry on cycle at least two groups selected from (i) optionally substituted amino groups and / or (ii) hydroxy groups. When the cyclic compound is a six-membered ring (preferably aromatic), said groups are preferably in ortho position or meta position to each other.
  • Coupler components according to the invention are preferably selected as at least one compound from one of the following classes:
  • o-aminophenol derivatives such as o-aminophenol
  • Naphthalene derivatives having at least one hydroxy group having at least one hydroxy group
  • Pyrazolone derivatives such as 1-phenyl-3-methylpyrazol-5-one,
  • Morpholine derivatives such as, for example, 6-hydroxybenzomorpholine or 6-aminobenzomorpholine,
  • m-aminophenols or derivatives thereof which can be used according to the invention are preferably selected from at least one compound of the formula (K1) and / or from at least one physiologically tolerated salt of a compound of the formula (K1),
  • G 1 and G 2 independently represent a hydrogen atom, a (Ci to C 4) - alkyl group, a (C 3 -C 6) cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4) alkenyl group, a (Ci to C 4 ) Monohydroxyalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) polyhydroxyalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) perfluoroacyl group, an aryl (C 1 to C 6 ) alkyl group, an amino (C 1 to C 6 ) alkyl group, a (Ci to C 6 ) dialkylamino (d to C 6 ) alkyl group or a (Ci to C 6 ) alkoxy (Ci to C 6 ) alkyl group, whereby G 1 and G 2 together with the Nitrogen atom can form a five-membered, six-membered or seven-membered ring,
  • G 3 and G 4 independently represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a (Ci to C 4) alkyl group, a (Ci to C4) alkoxy group, a hydroxy group, a (Ci to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a ( C 2 to C 4 ) polyhydroxyalkyl group, a hydroxy (Ci to C 4 ) -alkoxy distr, a (Ci to C 6 ) -Alkyox- (C 2 to C 6 ) -alkoxy distr, an aryl group or a heteroaryl group.
  • Particularly preferred m-aminophenol coupler components are selected from at least one compound selected from the group consisting of m-aminophenol, 5-amino-2-methylphenol, N-cyclopentyl-3-aminophenol, 3-amino-2-chloro-6 N-ethylphenol, 2-hydroxy-4-aminophenoxyethanol, 2,6-dimethyl-3-anninophenol, 3-trifluoroacetylamino-2-chloro-6-methylphenol, 5-amino-4-chloro-2-naphthylphenol, 5-amino-4 -nnethoxy-2-naphthylphenol, 5- (2'-hydroxyethyl) amino-2-naphthylphenol, 3- (diethylamino) phenol, N-cyclopentyl-3-aminophenol, 1,3-dihydroxy-5- (methylamino) - benzene, 3-ethylamino-4-methylphenol, 2,4-dichloro-3-a
  • m-diaminobenzenes or derivatives thereof which can be used according to the invention are preferably selected from at least one compound of the formula (K2) and / or from at least one physiologically tolerated salt of a compound of the formula (K2),
  • G 5, G 6, G 7 and G 8 are independently a hydrogen atom, a (Ci to C 4) - alkyl group, a (C 3 -C 6) cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4) - alkenyl group, a (Ci to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) - polyhydroxyalkyl group, a (C -C 4) alkoxy (Ci -C 4) alkyl group, an aryl (d to C4) - alkyl group, a heteroaryl (d to C 4 ) alkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) perfluoroacyl group, or together with the nitrogen atom form a five-membered or six-membered heterocycle
  • G 9 and G 10 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group, an ⁇ - (2,4-dia
  • Particularly preferred m-diaminobenzene coupler components are selected from at least one compound from the group formed from m-phenylenediamine, 2- (2,4-diaminophenoxy) ethanol, 1, 3-bis (2,4-diaminophenoxy) propane, 1-Methoxy-2-amino-4- (2'-hydroxyethylamino) benzene, 1, 3-bis (2,4-diaminophenyl) propane, 2,6-bis (2'-hydroxyethylamino) -1-methylbenzene, 2- ( ⁇ 3 - [(2-Hydroxyethyl) amino] -4-methoxy-5-methylphenyl ⁇ amino) ethanol, 2 - ( ⁇ 3 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -2-methoxy-5-methylphenyl ⁇ amino) ethanol, 2 - ( ⁇ 3 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -4,5-dimethylphenyl ⁇ -annino) ethanol
  • o-diaminobenzenes or their derivatives which can be used according to the invention are preferably selected from at least one compound of the formula (K3) and / or from at least one physiologically tolerated salt of a compound of the formula (K3),
  • G 11, G 12, G 13 and G 14 are independently a hydrogen atom, a (Ci to C 4) - alkyl group, a (C 3 -C 6) cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4) - alkenyl group, a (C 1 to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) - polyhydroxyalkyl group, a (C 1 to C 4) alkoxy alkyl (C- ⁇ -C 4), aryl (C ⁇ to C 4 ) alkyl group, a heteroaryl (C- ⁇ to C 4 ) alkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) perfluoroacyl group, or together with the Nitrogen atom form a five-membered or six-membered heterocycle
  • G 15 and G 16 independently represent a hydrogen atom, a
  • Halogen atom a carboxyl group, a (Ci to C 4) alkyl group, a (Ci to C4) alkoxy group, a hydroxy group, a (Ci to C 4) - monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) -polyhydroxyalkyl group, a Hydroxy (Ci to C 4 ) -alkoxy distr.
  • Particularly preferred o-diaminobenzene coupler components are selected from at least one compound selected from the group consisting of 3,4-diaminobenzoic acid and 2,3-diamino-1-ethylbenzene and the physiologically acceptable salts of all of the aforementioned compounds.
  • Preferred di- or trihydroxybenzenes and their derivatives are selected from at least one compound of the group formed from resorcinol, resorcinol monomethyl ether, 2-methylresorcinol, 5-methylresorcinol, 2,5-dimethylresorcinol, 2-chlororesorcinol, 4-chlororesorcinol, pyrogallol and 1 , 2,4-trihydroxybenzene.
  • the pyridine derivatives which can be used according to the invention are preferably selected from at least one compound of the formula (K4) and / or from at least one physiologically tolerable salt of a compound of the formula (K4),
  • G 17 and G 18 independently of one another represent a hydroxyl group or a group - NG 21 G 22 , in which G 21 and G 22 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group, a (C 3 to C 6 ) cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4) alkenyl group, an aryl group, a (Ci to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) -polyhydroxyalkyl group, a (Ci-C 4) alkoxy- ( Ci to C 4) - alkyl group, an aryl (Ci to C 4) alkyl group, a heteroaryl- (Ci to C 4) - alkyl group, G 19 and G 20 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group or a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alk
  • radicals G 17 and G 18 are in the ortho position or in the meta position relative to one another.
  • Particularly preferred pyridine derivatives are selected from at least one compound of the group formed from 2,6-dihydroxypyridine, 2-amino-3-hydroxypyridine, 2-amino-5-chloro-3-hydroxypyridine, 3-amino-2-methylamino 6-methoxypyridine, 2,6-dihydroxy-3,4-dimethylpyridine, 2,6-dihydroxy-4-methylpyridine, 2,6-diaminopyridine, 2,3-diamino-6-methoxypyridine, 3,5-diamino-2, 6-dimethoxypyridine, 3,4-diaminopyridine, 2- (2-methoxyethyl) amino-3-amino-6-methoxypyridine, 2- (4'-methoxyphenyl) amino-3-aminopyridine, and the physiologically acceptable salts of the aforementioned compounds.
  • Preferred naphthalene derivatives having at least one hydroxy group are selected from at least one compound of the group formed from 1-naphthol, 2-methyl-1-naphthol, 2-hydroxymethyl-1-naphthol, 2-hydroxyethyl-1-naphthol, 1, 3 Dihydroxynaphthalene, 1,5-dihydroxynaphthalene, 1,6-dihydroxynaphthalene, 1,7-dihydroxynaphthalene, 1,8-dihydroxynaphthalene, 2,7-dihydroxynaphthalene and 2,3-dihydroxynaphthalene.
  • the indole derivatives which can be used according to the invention are preferably selected from at least one compound of the formula (K5) and / or from at least one physiologically tolerated salt of a compound of the formula (K5),
  • ⁇ 23 represents a hydrogen atom, a (Ci to C 4) alkyl group, a (C 3 -C 6) - cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4) alkenyl group, a (Ci to C 4) - monohydroxyalkyl a (C 2 to C 4) -polyhydroxyalkyl group, an aryl (Ci to C 4) - alkyl group,
  • G 24 represents a hydroxy group or a group -NG 26 G 27 , in which G 26 and G 27 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group, a (C 3 to C 6 ) - Cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) alkenyl group, a (Ci to C 4 ) -
  • Monohydroxyalkyl group a (C 2 to C 4 ) polyhydroxyalkyl group, G 25 hydrogen atom, a halogen atom or a (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl group, with the proviso that G 24 is in the meta position or ortho position to the structural fragment NG 23 of the Formula binds.
  • Particularly preferred indole derivatives are selected from at least one compound of the group which is formed from 4-hydroxyindole, 6-hydroxyindole and 7-hydroxyindole and the physiologically acceptable salts of the abovementioned compounds.
  • the indoline derivatives which can be used according to the invention are preferably selected from at least one compound of the formula (K6) and / or from at least one physiologically tolerable salt of a compound of the formula (K6),
  • ⁇ 28 represents a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl group, a (C 3 to C 6 ) cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) alkenyl group, a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl group , a (C 2 to C 4 ) -polyhydroxyalkyl group, an aryl- (C 1 -C 4 ) -alkyl group,
  • G represents a hydroxy group or a group -NG G, in which G and G independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group, a (C 3 to C 6 ) -cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) alkenyl group, a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) polyhydroxyalkyl group,
  • G 30 is a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom or a (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl group, with the proviso that G 29 in the meta position or ortho position to the structural fragment NG 28 of
  • Particularly preferred indoline derivatives are selected from at least one compound of the group formed from 4-hydroxyindoline, 6-hydroxyindoline and 7-hydroxyindoline and the physiologically acceptable salts of the aforementioned compounds.
  • Preferred pyrimidine derivatives are selected from at least one compound of the group formed from 4,6-diaminopyrinnidine, 4-amino-2,6-dihydroxypyrimidine, 2,4-diamino-6-hydroxypyrimidine, 2,4,6-trihydroxypyrimidine, 2 -Amino-4-niethylpyrinnidin, 2-amino-4-hydroxy-6-methylpyrimidine and 4,6-dihydroxy-2-methylpyrinnidin and the physiologically acceptable salts of the aforementioned compounds.
  • coupler components according to the invention are selected from m-aminophenol, 5-amino-2-naphthylphenol, 3-amino-2-chloro-6-naphthylphenol, 2-hydroxy-4-aminophenoxyethanol, 5-amino-4-chloro-2-naphthylphenol , 5- (2'-hydroxyethyl) amino-2-methylphenol, 2,4-dichloro-3-aminophenol, o-aminophenol, m-phenylenediamine, 2- (2,4-diaminophenoxy) ethanol, 1,3-bis (2,4-diaminophenoxy) propane, 1-methoxy-2-amino-4- (2'-hydroxyethylamino) benzene, 1, 3-bis (2,4-diaminophenyl) propane, 2,6-bis (2'-bis) hydroxyethylamino) -1-methylbenzene, 2 - ( ⁇ 3 - [(2-hydroxyethoxye
  • the coupler components are preferably used in an amount of 0.005 to 20 wt .-%, preferably 0.1 to 5 wt .-%, each based on the ready-to-use oxidation colorant.
  • developer components and coupler components are generally used in approximately molar amounts to each other.
  • a certain excess of individual oxidation dye precursors is not disadvantageous, so that developer components and coupler components in a molar ratio of 1: 0.5 to 1: 3, in particular 1: 1 to 1: 2 , can stand.
  • the following are examples of the radicals mentioned as substituents of the compounds of the formulas (K1) to (K6): Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radicals are the groups -CH 3 ,
  • Inventive examples of (C 3 to C 6 ) -cycloalkyl groups are the cyclopropyl, the
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy radicals according to the invention are -OCH 3 , -OCH 2 CH 3 ,
  • a particularly preferred example of a (C 2 to C 4 ) polyhydroxyalkyl group is 1, 2
  • halogen atoms are F, Cl or Br atoms, Cl atoms are very particularly preferred examples.
  • nitrogen-containing groups are in particular -NH 2 , (C 1 to C 4 ) -
  • Trialkylammonium groups (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkylamino groups, imidazolinium and
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -monoalkylamino groups are -NHCH 3 , -NHCH 2 CH 3 , -NHCH 2 CH 2 CH 3 ,
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -dialkylamino group are -N (CH 3 ) 2 , -N (CH 2 CH 3 ) 2 .
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy- (C 1 -C 4 ) -alkyl groups are the groups -CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH 3 ,
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy (C 1 -C 4 ) -alkoxy groups are the groups -O-CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH 3 ,
  • hydroxy (C 1 -C 4 ) -alkoxy radicals are -O-CH 2 OH, -O-CH 2 CH 2 OH, -O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH,
  • Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -aminoalkyl radicals are -CH 2 NH 2 , -CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 ,
  • aryl groups is the phenyl group, which may also be substituted.
  • composition of the invention can be used as color-modifying component in the form of the Oxofarbstoffvor. At least one combination of at least one compound of the component
  • Compounds according to the invention having a reactive carbonyl group have at least one carbonyl group as reactive group which reacts with the compounds of component 2 to form a chemical bond linking both components. These are preferably aldehydes and / or ketones. Further, according to the invention, those compounds are also included as component 1 in which the reactive carbonyl group is derivatized or masked in such a way that the reactivity of the carbon atom of the derivatized or masked carbonyl group with respect to the component 2 is always present.
  • These derivatives are preferably condensation compounds of reactive carbonyl compounds with a) amines and their derivatives to form imines or oximes as a condensation compound b) alcohols to form acetals or ketals as a condensation compound c) water to form hydrates as a condensation compound of aldehydes.
  • Component 1 is preferably selected from the group formed from acetophenone, propiophenone, 2-hydroxyacetophenone, 3-hydroxyacetophenone, 4-hydroxyacetophenone, 2-hydroxypropiophenone, 3-hydroxypropiophenone, 4-hydroxypropiophenone, 2-hydroxybutyrophenone, 3 Hydroxybutyrophenone, 4-hydroxybutyrophenone, 2,4-dihydroxyacetophenone, 2,5-dihydroxyacetophenone, 2,6-dihydroxyacetophenone, 2,3,4-trihydroxyacetophenone, 3,4,5-trihydroxyacetophenone, 2,4,6-dihydroxyacetophenone Trihydroxyacetophenone, 2,4,6-trimethoxyacetophenone, 3,4,5-trimethoxyacetophenone, 3,4,5-trimethoxyacetophenone diethyl ketal, 4-hydroxy-3-methoxy-acetophenone, 3,5-dimethoxy-4- hydroxyacetophenone, 4-aminoacetophenone, 4-dimethylamino
  • Benzylideneacetone 4-hydroxybenzylideneacetone, 2-hydroxybenzylideneacetone, 4-methoxybenzylideneacetone, 4-hydroxy-3-methoxybenzylideneacetone, 4-dimethylanninobenzylideneacetone, 3,4-methylenedioxybenzylideneacetone, 4-pyrrolidinobenzylideneacetone, 4-piperidinobenzylideneacetone, A-morpholinobenzylideneacetone, 4- Diethylaminobenzylideneacetone, 3-benzylidene-2,4-pentanedione, 3- (4'-hydroxybenzylidene) -2,4-pentanedione, 3- (4'-dimethylanninobenzylidene) -2,4-pentanedione, 2-benzylidenecyclohexanone, 2- (4 '-Hydroxybenzylidene) cyclohexanone, 2- (4'-di
  • CH-acidic compounds are generally considered to carry a bound to an aliphatic carbon atom hydrogen atom, wherein due to electron-withdrawing substituents activation of the corresponding carbon-hydrogen bond is effected.
  • CH-acidic compounds also include enamines which are formed by alkaline treatment of quaternized N-heterocycles with a CH-acidic alkyl group in conjugation with the quaternary nitrogen.
  • the CH-acidic compounds of component 2 are preferably selected from the group consisting of 1, 2,3,3-tetramethyl-3H-indolium iodide, 1, 2,3,3-tetramethyl-3H-indolium p-toluenesulfonate, 1, 2,3,3-tetramethyl-3H-indolium methanesulfonate, 1,3,3-trimethyl-2-methylenindoline (Fischer's base), 2,3-dimethylbenzothiazolium iodide, 2,3-dimethylbenzothiazolium p-toluenesulfonate, 2,3-dimethyl-naphtho [1,2-d] thiazolium p-toluenesulfonate, 3-ethyl-2-methylnaphtho [1,2-d] thiazolium p-toluenesulfonate, rhodanine, rhodanine-3-acetic acid
  • Preferred primary or secondary aromatic amines of component 2 are selected from N, N-dimethyl-p-phenylenediamine, N, N-diethyl-p-phenylenediamine, N- (2-hydroxyethyl) -N-ethyl-p-phenylenediamine, N, N-bis (2-hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, N- (2-methoxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, 2,3-dichloro-p-phenylenediamine, 2,4-dichloro-p-phenylenediamine, 2.5- Dichloro-p-phenylenediamine, 2-chloro-p-phenylenediamine, 2,5-dihydroxy-4-morpholinoaniline, 2-aminophenol, 3-aminophenol, 4-aminophenol, 2-aminomethyl-4-aminophenol, 2-hydroxymethyl-4- aminophenol, o-phenylenediamine, m-phen
  • R 7 represents a hydroxy or an amino group represented by CI_ 4 alkyl, Ci. 4 -Hydroxyalkyl-, Ci_ 4 - alkoxy- or Ci. 4- alkoxy-Ci. 4- alkyl groups may be substituted,
  • R 8, R 9, R 10, R 11 and R 12 independently represent a hydrogen atom, a hydroxy or an amino group by C 4 alkyl, C- ⁇ -C 4 hydroxyalkyl, C 1 -C 4 -Alkoxy-, C 1 -C 4 - aminoalkyl or CiC ⁇ alkoxy-CiC ⁇ alkyl groups may be substituted, and
  • P is a direct bond, a saturated or unsaturated, optionally substituted by hydroxy groups carbon chain having 1 to 4 carbon atoms, a carbonyl, sulfoxy, sulfonyl or imino group, an oxygen or sulfur atom, or a group having the formula II
  • Q signifies a direct bond, a CH 2 or CHOH group, • Q 'and Q "are each independently an oxygen atom, an NR 13 group wherein R 13 is a hydrogen atom, a C-
  • O is a number from 1 to 4,
  • the abovementioned compounds can be used both in free form and in the form of their physiologically acceptable salts, in particular as salts of inorganic acids, such as hydrochloric or sulfuric acid.
  • Suitable nitrogen-containing heterocyclic compounds are, for. B. 2-aminopyridine, 3-aminopyridine, 4-aminopyridine, 2-amino-3-hydroxy-pyridine, 2,6-diamino-pyridine, 2,5-diamino-pyridine, 2- (aminoethylamino) -5-aminopyridine, 2,3-diamino-pyridine, 2-dimethylamino-5-amino-pyridine, 2-methylamino-3-amino-6-methoxy-pyridine, 2,3-diamino-6-methoxy-pyridine, 2,6-dimethoxy 3,5-diamino-pyridine, 2,4,5-triamino-pyridine, 2,6-dihydroxy-3,4-dimethyl-pyridine, N- [2- (2,4-diaminophenyl) aminoethyl] -N- (5- amino-2-pyridyl) amine, N- [2- (4-aminopheny
  • heterocyclic compounds according to the invention can be used in DE-U1-299 08 573 disclosed hydroxypyrimidines.
  • the aforementioned compounds can be used both in free form and in the form of their physiologically acceptable salts, for. B. as salts of inorganic acids, such as hydrochloric or sulfuric acid, are used.
  • Suitable aromatic hydroxy compounds are, for. 2-methylresorcinol, 4-methylresorcinol, 5-methylresorcinol, 2,5-dimethylresorcinol, resorcinol, 3-methoxyphenol, pyrocatechol, hydroquinone, pyrogallol, phloroglucinol, hydroxyhydroquinone, 2-methoxyphenol, 3-methoxyphenol, A-methoxyphenol, 3- Dimethylaminophenol, 2- (2-hydroxyethyl) phenol, 3,4-methylenedioxyphenol, 2,4-dihydroxybenzoic acid, 3,4-dihydroxybenzoic acid, 2,4-dihydroxy-phenylacetic acid, 3,4-dihydroxyphenylacetic acid, gallic acid, 2,4 , 6-trihydroxybenzoic acid, 2,4,6-trihydroxyace- tophenone, 2-chlororesorcinol, 4-chlororesorcinol, 1-naphthol, 1, 5-dihydroxynaphthalene, 2,3
  • the compounds of component 1 and the compounds of component 2 are preferably used in the cosmetic compositions in each case in an amount of 0.03 to 65 mmol, in particular from 1 to 40 mmol, based on 100 g of the total Nuancierstoffs used.
  • the molar ratio of the compound of component 1 and the compound of component 2 may range from 0.5 to 2.0, preferably using equimolar amounts.
  • the ready-to-use agent is prepared by separate mixing of components 1 and 2 immediately prior to application.
  • the agents according to the invention can contain as additional color-modifying component at least one substantive dye.
  • These are dyes that raise directly on the hair and do not require an oxidative process to form the color.
  • Direct dyes are usually nitrophenylenediamines, nitroaminophenols, azo dyes, anthraquinones or indophenols.
  • the substantive dyes are each preferably used in an amount of 0.001 to 20% by weight, based on the total application preparation. The total amount of substantive dyes is preferably at most 20% by weight.
  • Direct dyes can be subdivided into anionic, cationic and nonionic substantive dyes.
  • Particularly suitable anionic direct dyes are 6-hydroxy-5 - [(4-sulfophenyl) azo] -2-naphthalenesulfonic acid disodium salt (CI 15.985, Food Yellow No. 3, FD & C Yellow No. 6), 2,4-dinitro-1 -naphthol-7-sulfonic acid disodium salt (Cl.10.316; Acid Yellow 1, Food Yellow No. 1), 2- (indan-1, 3-dion-2-yl) quinoline-x, x-sulfonic acid (mixture of mono and disulfonic acid) (CI 47,005, D & C Yellow No. 10, Food Yellow No.
  • Phenylamino) -phenyl] -azobenzenesulfonic acid sodium salt (CI 13,065; Ki406; Acid Yellow 36), 9- (2-carboxyphenyl) -6-hydroxy-3H-xanthen-3-one (CI 45,350; Acid Yellow 73; D & C Yellow No 8), 5 - [(2,4-dinitrophenyl) amino] -2-phenylaminobenzenesulfonic acid, sodium salt (Cl.10, 385; Acid Orange 3), 4 - [(2,4-dihydroxyphenyl) azo] -benzenesulfonic acid, sodium salt (Cl Acid Orange 6), 4 - [(2-hydroxynaphth-1-yl) azo] -benzenesulfonic acid, sodium salt (Cl 15.510, Acid Orange 7), 4 - [(2,4-dihydroxy-3 - [( 2,4-dimethylphenyl) azo] -phenyl) azo] -benz
  • Acid Red 4 4-hydroxy-3 - [(4-sulfonaphth-1-yl) azo] -1-naphthalenesulfonic acid disodium salt (Cl 14.720; Acid Red No.14), 6-hydroxy-5 - [(4-sulfonaphth-1-yl) azo] -2,4-naphthalenedisulfonic acid trisodium salt (Cl 16,255, Ponceau 4R, Acid Red 18), 3-hydroxy-4 - [(4-sulfonaphth-1) yl) azo] -2,7-naphthalene-disulfonic acid trinatriu Msalz (Cl.
  • Acid Red 27 8-amino-1-hydroxy-2- (phenylazo) -3,6-naphthalenedisulfonic acid disodium salt (Cl 17,200, Acid Red 33, Red 33), 5- (acetylamino) -4-hydroxy 3 - [(2-methylphenyl) azo] -2,7-naphthalenedisulfonic acid disodium salt (Cl 18.065, Acid Red 35), 2- (3-hydroxy-2,4,5,7-tetraiododibenzopyran- 6-on-9-yl) benzoic acid disodium salt (Cl.45,430; Acid Red 51), N- [6- (diethylamino) -9- (2,4-disulfophenyl) -3H-xanthen-3-ylidene] - N-ethyleneamine ammonium hydroxide, inner salt, sodium salt (CI 45, 100, Acid Red 52), 8 - [(4- (phenylazo) phenyl) azo] -7-
  • Acid Red 95 2-hydroxy-3 - ((2-hydroxynaphth-1-yl) azo) -5-nitrobenzenesulfonic acid, sodium salt
  • Acid Red 184 3-hydroxy-4- (3-methyl-5-oxo-1-phenyl-4,5-dihydro-1H-pyrazol-4-ylazo) -naphthalene-1-sulfonic acid sodium salt, chromium complex (Acid Red 195), 3-hydroxy-4 - [(4-methyl-2-sulfophenyl) azo-naphthalenecarboxylic acid calcium salt (Cl 15.850: 1, Pigment Red 57: 1), 3 [(2,4-dimethyl-5-sulfophenyl) azo] -4-hydroxy-1-naphthalenesulfonic acid disodium salt (Cl 14.700, Food Red No.
  • Acid Blue 1 bis [4- (diethylamino) phenyl] (5-hydroxy-2,4-disulfophenyl) carbenium inner salt, calcium salt (2: 1) (CI 42,051, Acid Blue 3), N- [ 4 - [(2,4-Disulfophenyl) [4- [ethyl (phenylmethyl) amino) phenyl] methylene] -2,5-cyclohexadiene-1-ylidene] -N-ethylbenzene methanaminium hydroxide, inner salt, sodium salt (CI 42,080 Acid Blue 7), (2-sulfophenyl) di [4- (ethyl ((4-sulfophenyl) methyl) amino) phenyl] -carbenium disodium salt
  • Betaine (CI 42,090, Acid Blue 9, FD & C Blue No. 1), 1-amino-4- (phenylamino) -9,10-anthraquinone-2-sulfonic acid (CI 62,055, Acid Blue 25), 1-amino 4- (cyclohexylamino) -9,10-anthraquinone-2-sulfonic acid, sodium salt (CI 62045, Acid Blue 62), 2- (1,3-dihydro-3-oxo-5-sulfo-2H-indole-2-one ylidene) -2,3-dihydro-3-oxo-1H-indole-5-sulfonic acid disodium salt (CI 73.015, Acid Blue 74), 9- (2-carboxyphenyl) -3 - [(2-methylphenyl) amino ] -6 - [(2-methyl-4-sulfophenyl) amino] xanthylium inner salt, sodium salt (CI 45
  • Preferred anionic substantive dyes are those having the international designations or trade names Acid Yellow 1, Yellow 10, Acid Yellow 23, Acid Yellow 36, Acid Orange 7, Acid Red 33, Acid Red 52, Pigment Red 57: 1, Acid Blue 7, Acid Green 50, Acid Violet 43, Acid Black 1 and Acid Black 52 known compounds.
  • Particularly suitable cationic direct dyes are 9- (dimethylannino) benzo [a] phenoxazine-7-ium chloride (Cl 51, 175, Basic Blue 6), di [4- (diethylamino) phenyl] [4- (ethylamino ) naphthyl] carbenium chloride (Cl 42,595; Basic Blue 7), di- (4- (dimethylannino) phenyl) - (4- (methylphenylamino) naphthalen-1-yl) carbenium chloride (CI 42,563; Basic Blue 8), 3,7-di (dimethylamino) -phenothiazine-5-ium chloride (CI 52.015 Basic Blue 9), di [4- (dimethylamino) phenyl] [4- (phenylamino) naphthyl] carbenium chloride ( Cl.44,045; Basic Blue 26), 2 - [(4- (ethyl (2-
  • aromatic systems substituted with a quaternary nitrogen group such as Basic Yellow 57, Basic Red 76, Basic Blue 99, Basic Brown 16 and Basic Brown 17, as well as
  • Preferred cationic substantive dyes of group (c) are in particular the following compounds:
  • the compounds of the formulas (DZ1), (DZ3) and (DZ5) which are also known by the names Basic Yellow 87, Basic Orange 31 and Basic Red 51, are very particularly preferred cationic substantive dyes of group (c).
  • the cationic direct dyes which are sold under the trademark Arianor ®, according to the invention are also very particularly preferred cationic direct dyes.
  • Nonionic substantive dyes are:
  • Suitable nonionic substantive dyes are in particular nonionic nitro and quinone dyes and neutral azo dyes.
  • Suitable blue nitro dyes are in particular:
  • Suitable red nitro dyes are in particular:
  • Suitable yellow nitro dyes are in particular:
  • 1,2-diamino-4-nitrobenzene (CI 76,020), 1 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -2-nitrobenzene (HC Yellow 2), 1- (2-hydroxyethoxy) -2 - [(2-hydroxyethyl ) amino] -5-nitrobenzene (HC Yellow 4), 1-amino-2 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -5-nitrobenzene (HC Yellow 5), 4 - [(2,3-dihydroxypropyl) amino] 3-nitro-1-trifluoromethylbenzene (HC Yellow 6), 2- [di (2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -5-nitrophenol, 2 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -1-methoxy-5-nitrobenzene , 2-amino-3-nitrophenol, 2-amino-4-nitrophenol, 1-amino-2-methyl-6-nitrobenzene, 1- (2-hydroxyethoxy) -3-methylannino-4-nitrobenzene, 2,3- ( Di
  • Suitable quinone dyes are in particular:
  • suitable neutral azo dyes are: 1- [di (2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -3-methyl-4 - [(4-nitrophenyl) azo] benzene (CI 11, 210, Disperse Red 17), 1- [di (2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -4 - [(4-nitrophenyl) azo] benzene (Disperse Black 9), 4 - [(4-aminophenyl) azo] -1- [di (2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -3 methylbenzene (HC Yellow 7), 2,6-diamino-3 - [(pyridin-3-yl) azo] pyridine, 2 - ⁇ [4- (acetylamino) phenyl] azo ⁇ -4-naphthylphenol (CI, 11855 Disperse Yellow 3), 4 - [(4-nitrophenyl) azo] aniline (CI 11, 005, Disperse Orange 3).
  • Preferred nonionic substantive dyes are those under the international designations or trade names HC Yellow 2, HC Yellow 4, HC Yellow 5, HC Yellow 6, HC Yellow 12, HC Orange 1, Disperse Orange 3, HC Red 1, HC Red 3, HC HC Red 11, HC Red 11, HC Red 11, HC Blue 11, HC Blue 2, HC Blue 11, HC Blue 12, Disperse Blue 3, HC Violet 1, Disperse Violet 1, Disperse Violet 4, Disperse Black 9 well-known compounds, as well 1, 4-diamino-2-nitrobenzene, 2-amino-4-nitrophenol, 1,4-bis (2-hydroxyethyl) amino-2-nitrobenzene, 3-nitro-4- (2-hydroxyethyl) aminophenol, 2- (2-hydroxyethyl) amino-4,6-dinitrophenol, 4 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -3-nitro-1-methylbenzene, 1-amino-4- (2-hydroxyethyl) amino-5- Chloro-2-nitrobenzene, 4-amino-3-nitrophenol,
  • the substantive dyes each represent uniform compounds. Rather, due to the production process for the individual dyes, minor amounts of other components may be included, as far as they do not adversely affect the coloring result or for other reasons, e.g. toxicological, must be excluded.
  • direct dyes also naturally occurring dyes may be used, as for example in henna red, henna neutral, henna black, chamomile flower, sandalwood, black tea, buckthorn bark, sage, bluewood, madder root, Catechu, Sedre and alkano root are included.
  • the dyestuff precursors of naturally-analogous dyes are preferably indoles and indolines which have at least two groups selected from hydroxy and / or amino groups, preferably as a substituent on the six-membered ring. These groups may carry further substituents, e.g. Example in the form of an etherification or esterification of the hydroxy group or an alkylation of the amino group.
  • the agents additionally contain at least one such indole and / or indoline derivative.
  • Compositions according to the invention which comprise precursors of naturally-analogous dyes are preferably used as air-oxidative colorants. Thus, in this embodiment, said compositions are preferably not added with an additional oxidizing agent.
  • Particularly suitable precursors of natural-analogous hair dyes are derivatives of the 5,6-dihydroxyindole of the formula (RN 1),
  • R 1 is hydrogen, a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group or a C 1 -C 4 -hydroxy-alkyl group
  • R 2 is hydrogen or a -COOH group, wherein the -COOH group may also be present as a salt with a physiologically compatible cation,
  • R 3 is hydrogen or a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group
  • R 4 is hydrogen, a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group or a group -CO-R 6 , in which R 6 is a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group, and
  • R 5 is one of the groups mentioned under R 4 , as well as physiologically acceptable salts of these compounds with an organic or inorganic acid.
  • Particularly preferred derivatives of indole are 5,6-dihydroxyindole, N-methyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole, N-ethyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole, N-propyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole,
  • N-methyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole N-ethyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole, N-propyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole, N-butyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole and especially 5, 6-dihydroxyindole.
  • Derivatives of 5,6-dihydroxyindoline of the formula (RN2) are also outstandingly suitable as precursors of naturally-analogous hair dyes.
  • R 1 is hydrogen, a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group or a C 1 -C 4 -hydroxyalkyl group
  • R 2 is hydrogen or a -COOH group, wherein the -COOH group may also be present as a salt with a physiologically compatible cation
  • R 3 is hydrogen or a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group
  • R 4 is hydrogen, a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group or a group -CO-R 6 , in which R 6 is a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group, and
  • R 5 is one of the groups mentioned under R 4 , as well as physiologically acceptable salts of these compounds with an organic or inorganic acid.
  • Particularly preferred derivatives of indole are 5,6-dihydroxyindoline, N-methyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline, N-ethyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline, N-propyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline, N-butyl-5, 6-dihydroxyindoline, 5,6-dihydroxyindoline-2-carboxylic acid.
  • N-methyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline N-ethyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline, N-propyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline, N-butyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline, and especially the 5,6 -Dihydroxyindolins.
  • the usable oxidizing agents are different from atmospheric oxygen and have such an oxidation potential which makes it possible to lighten the natural color pigment melanin oxidatively and / or to oxidize a developer-type oxidation dye precursor.
  • Such oxidizing agents are, for example, hydrogen peroxide and its addition products, organic percarboxylic acids or organic peroxides.
  • Suitable organic percarboxylic acids according to the invention are in particular monoperphthalic acid, peracetic acid or 6- (phthalimidoperoxy) hexanoic acid (CAS No .: 128275-31-0).
  • hydrogen peroxide and / or at least one addition product thereof, in particular inorganic or organic compounds are preferred.
  • the suitable addition products of hydrogen peroxide are in turn preferably selected from at least one compound of the group consisting of sodium perborate,
  • the oxidizing agents can also be used together with a catalyst.
  • the catalyst activates the oxidation of the substrate, such as oxidation of the oxidation dye precursors or melanin.
  • Such catalysts are, for example, metal ions, iodides, quinones or certain enzymes.
  • Suitable metal ions are, for example, Zn 2+ , Cu 2+ , Fe 2+ , Fe 3+ , Mn 2+ , Mn 4+ , Li + , Mg 2+ , Ca 2+ and Al 3+ . Particularly suitable are Zn 2+ , Cu 2+ and Mn 2+ .
  • the metal ions can in principle be used in the form of any physiologically acceptable salt or in the form of a complex compound.
  • Preferred salts are the acetates, sulfates, halides, lactates and tartrates.
  • Suitable enzymes are e.g. Peroxidases that can significantly increase the effect of small amounts of hydrogen peroxide. Furthermore, such enzymes are suitable according to the invention, which generate with the aid of atmospheric oxygen in situ small amounts of hydrogen peroxide and biocatalytically activate the oxidation of the dye precursors in this way.
  • Particularly suitable catalysts for the oxidation of dye precursors are the so-called 2-electron oxidoreductases in combination with the specific substrates, e.g. Pyranose oxidase and e.g. D-glucose or galactose,
  • Pyruvate oxidase and pyruvic acid or its salts - alcohol oxidase and alcohol (MeOH, EtOH), lactate oxidase and lactic acid and its salts, tyrosinase oxidase and tyrosine, uricase and uric acid or their salts, choline oxidase and choline, amino acid oxidase and amino acids.
  • the oxidizing agent is preferably contained in an amount of from 1.0 to 20% by weight, in particular from 3.0 to 15.0% by weight, in each case based on the weight of the ready-to-use agent, in an agent which can be used according to the invention.
  • the ready-to-use composition is conveniently prepared immediately prior to use by mixing a composition containing the oxidizing agent with the composition containing the color-changing components. If the agent according to the invention is present, for example, as an oxidative colorant, the actual oxidative colorant is prepared by separate mixing of the dye precursors and the oxidizing agent immediately before use.
  • the agent according to the invention is therefore mixed prior to application from a composition comprising said luminescent pigments in a cosmetic carrier and at least one additional color-modifying component, and a further composition containing at least one oxidizing agent in a cosmetic carrier.
  • the resulting ready-to-use preparation should preferably have a pH in the range from 6 to 12, in particular from pH 7.5 to 10.
  • At least one bleaching booster is preferably used in the cosmetic compositions according to the invention.
  • Bleach boosters are preferably used to increase the bleaching action of the oxidizing agent, in particular the hydrogen peroxide. Suitable bleach boosters are
  • (BV-i) compounds which give aliphatic peroxycarboxylic acids and / or perbenzoic acid or their derivatives under perhydrolysis conditions, and / or
  • bleach amplifiers it is possible to use compounds which, under perhydrolysis conditions, give aliphatic peroxycarboxylic acids having preferably 1 to 10 C atoms, in particular 2 to 4 C atoms, and / or optionally substituted perbenzoic acid.
  • Suitable substances are the oxygen- and / or nitrogen-bonded acyl groups with the mentioned Number of carbon atoms and / or optionally substituted benzoyl groups bear.
  • polyacylated alkylenediamines in particular tetraacetylethylenediamine (TAED), acylated triazine derivatives, in particular 1,5-diacetyl-2,4-dioxohexahydro-1,3,5-triazine (DADHT), acylated glycolurils, in particular tetraacetylglycoluril (TAGU), N- Acylimides, in particular N-nonanoylsuccinimide (NOSI), acylated phenolsulfonates, in particular n-nonanoyl or isononanoyloxybenzenesulfonate (n- or iso-NOBS), carboxylic anhydrides, in particular phthalic anhydride, acylated polyhydric alcohols, in particular triacetin, ethylene glycol diacetate and 2,5-diacetoxy- 2,5-dihydrofuran.
  • TAED tetraacet
  • the carbonate or bicarbonate salts are preferably selected from at least one compound of the group consisting of ammonium, alkali (especially sodium and potassium), and alkaline earth (especially calcium), carbonate salts and bicarbonate salts. Particularly preferred carbonate or bicarbonate salts are
  • Ammonium bicarbonate ammonium carbonate, sodium bicarbonate,
  • Disodium carbonate, potassium bicarbonate, dipotassium carbonate and calcium carbonate are particularly preferred salts. These particularly preferred salts can be used alone or in their mixtures of at least two representatives as bleaching amplifiers.
  • Preferably usable organic carbonates are selected from at least one compound of the group of carbonic acid monoesters and / or from at least one compound of the group of carbonic acid monoamides.
  • carbonic acid monoesters are the carbonic acid monoesters of the formula (BV-1),
  • R is a saturated or unsaturated, straight-chain, branched, or cyclic, substituted or unsubstituted hydrocarbon radical, or a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group or a substituted or unsubstituted heterocycle.
  • R preferably represents a substituted or unsubstituted, straight-chain or branched alkyl, alkenyl or alkynyl radical, preference being given to hydroxy, amino, nitro, sulfonic acid groups or halogens as substituents.
  • Further preferred radicals R are phenyl and benzyl radicals and further substituted representatives. More preferably, R is a Ci_ 6 alkyl group.
  • CrC 6 -alkyl groups are the groups methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, isopropyl, n-butyl, sec-butyl, isobutyl, tert-butyl, pentyl, isopentyl and hexyl.
  • compositions particularly preferably used according to the invention are characterized in that the radical R in formula (BV-1) is selected from methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, iso-propyl, n-butyl, iso-butyl, tert Butyl and hydroxymethyl and hydroxyethyl radicals.
  • Preferred carbonic acid monoamides are the compounds of the formula (BV-2),
  • R is a saturated or unsaturated, straight-chain, branched, or cyclic, substituted or unsubstituted hydrocarbon radical, or a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group or a substituted or unsubstituted heterocycle.
  • R preferably represents a substituted or unsubstituted, straight-chain or branched alkyl, alkenyl or alkynyl radical, preference being given to hydroxy, amino, nitro, sulfonic acid groups or halogens as substituents.
  • Further preferred radicals R are phenyl and benzyl radicals and further substituted representatives. More preferably R is a C-. 6- alkyl group.
  • C 1 -C 6 -alkyl groups are the groups methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, isopropyl, n-butyl, sec-butyl, isobutyl, tert-butyl, pentyl, isopentyl and hexyl.
  • Bleach enhancers of the formula (BV-2) which are particularly preferred according to the invention are characterized in that the radical R in formula (BV-2) is selected from methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, isopropyl, n-butyl, Iso-butyl, tert-butyl and hydroxymethyl and hydroxyethyl radicals.
  • the acidic H atom of the carbonic acid monoester or monoamide can also be present in neutralized form, ie according to the invention it is also possible to use salts of carbonic acid monoesters or carbonic acid monoamides.
  • the bleach-enhancing carboxylic acid in the compositions of the present invention, at least one compound selected from the group consisting of acetic acid, lactic acid, tartaric acid, citric acid, salicylic acid and orthophthalic acid may preferably be contained.
  • Bleach boosters are preferably peroxo compounds, in particular inorganic peroxo compounds.
  • the bleach-enhancing peroxy compounds according to the invention there are no addition products of hydrogen peroxide to other components and also not hydrogen peroxide itself.
  • the choice of peroxo compounds is subject to no restrictions.
  • Preferred peroxo compounds are peroxydisulfate salts, persulfate salts, peroxydiphosphate salts (in particular ammonium peroxydisulfate, potassium peroxodisulfate, sodium peroxodisulfate, ammonium persulfate, potassium persulfate, sodium persulfate,
  • potassium peroxide phosphate potassium peroxide
  • peroxides such as barium peroxide and magnesium peroxide
  • the peroxydisulfates in particular ammonium peroxydisulfate, are preferred.
  • the bleach boosters are contained in the compositions according to the invention preferably in amounts of from 5 to 30% by weight, in particular in amounts of from 8 to 20% by weight, based in each case on the weight of the ready-to-use agent.
  • the cosmetic agents of the invention when acting as a bleaching agent, contain as preferred alkalizing agent at least one compound selected from ammonium, alkali metal and alkaline earth metal hydroxides, metasilicates and carbamides, as well as alkali phosphates.
  • the cosmetic agents used in the process according to the invention may furthermore contain all active substances, additives and auxiliaries known for such preparations:
  • the washing with a shampoo is eliminated if a strong surfactant-containing carrier was used.
  • the agents according to the invention for improved use additionally contain at least one surfactant, with both anionic and zwitterionic, ampholytic, nonionic and cationic surfactants being suitable in principle.
  • anionic surfactants in many cases, however, it has proved to be advantageous to select the surfactants from anionic, zwitterionic or nonionic surfactants.
  • Suitable anionic surfactants in the cosmetic compositions are all anionic surfactants suitable for use on the human body. These are characterized by a water-solubilizing, anionic group such. Example, a carboxylate, sulfate, sulfonate or phosphate group and a lipophilic alkyl group with about 10 to 22 C-men men.
  • glycol or polyglycol ether groups, ester, ether and amide groups and hydroxyl groups may be present in the molecule.
  • suitable anionic surfactants are, in each case in the form of the sodium, potassium and ammonium as well as mono-, di- and trialkanol ammonium salts with 2 or 3 C atoms in the alkanol group, linear fatty acids having 10 to 22 C atoms (Soap),
  • G glycoside unit which is derived from a sugar containing 5 or 6 carbon atoms, p number from 1 to 10, in particular the Laurylglucosidcarboxylat, such as is available as Plantapon ® LGC from Cognis Germany, Mixtures of surface-active hydroxysulfonates according to DE-A-37 25 030, sulfated hydroxyalkylpolyethylene and / or hydroxyalkylene glycol ethers according to
  • esters of tartaric acid and citric acid with alcohols the addition products of about
  • Preferred anionic surfactants are alkyl sulfates, alkyl polyglycol ether sulfates and ether carboxylic acids having 10 to 18 carbon atoms in the alkyl group and up to 12 glycol ether groups in the molecule and in particular salts of saturated and in particular unsaturated C 8 -C 22 carboxylic acids, such as oleic acid, stearic acid, isostearic acid and palmitic acid.
  • Nonionic surfactants contain as hydrophilic group z.
  • Such compounds are, for example
  • Alkylphenols having 8 to 15 C atoms in the alkyl group having 8 to 15 C atoms in the alkyl group
  • Preferred nonionic surfactants are alkyl polyglycosides of the general formula R 1 O- (Z) x . These connections are identified by the following parameters.
  • the alkyl radical R 1 contains 6 to 22 carbon atoms and may be both linear and branched. Preference is given to primary linear and methyl-branched in the 2-position aliphatic radicals.
  • Such alkyl radicals are, for example, 1-octyl, 1-decyl, 1-lauryl, 1-myristyl, 1-cetyl and 1-stearyl. Particularly preferred are 1-octyl, 1-decyl, 1-lauryl, 1-myristyl.
  • oxo-alcohols compounds with an odd number of carbon atoms in the alkyl chain predominate.
  • the alkyl polyglycosides which can be used according to the invention can contain, for example, only one particular alkyl radical R 1 .
  • these compounds are prepared starting from natural fats and oils or mineral oils.
  • the alkyl radicals R are mixtures corresponding to the starting compounds or corresponding to the particular work-up of these compounds.
  • R 1 consists essentially of C 8 and C 10 alkyl groups, essentially of C 12 and C 14 alkyl groups, essentially of C 8 to C 16 alkyl groups or essentially of C 12 - to C 16 alkyl groups.
  • sugar building block Z it is possible to use any desired mono- or oligosaccharides.
  • sugars with 5 or 6 carbon atoms and the corresponding oligosaccharides are used.
  • Such sugars are, for example, glucose, fructose, galactose, arabinose, ribose, xylose, lyxose, allose, altrose, mannose, gulose, idose, talose and sucrose.
  • Preferred sugar building blocks are glucose, fructose, galactose, arabinose and sucrose; Glucose is particularly preferred.
  • alkyl polyglycosides which can be used according to the invention contain on average from 1.1 to 5 sugar units. Alkyl polyglycosides having x values of 1.1 to 1.6 are preferred. Very particular preference is given to alkyl glycosides in which x is 1: 1 to 1, 4.
  • the alkyl glycosides can also serve to improve the fixation of fragrance components on the hair.
  • this substance class as a further constituent of the preparations according to the invention in the event that an effect of the perfume oil on the hair which exceeds the duration of the hair treatment is desired.
  • alkoxylated homologs of said alkyl polyglycosides can also be used according to the invention. These homologs may contain on average up to 10 ethylene oxide and / or propylene oxide units per alkyl glycoside unit.
  • zwitterionic surfactants can be used, in particular as cosurfactants.
  • zwitterionic surfactants such surface-active compounds are referred to in the Molecule at least one quaternary ammonium group and at least one -COO () - or -SO 3 () - group wear.
  • Particularly suitable zwitterionic surfactants are the so-called betaines such as N-alkyl-N, N-dimethylammonium glycinates, for example cocoalkyldimethylammonium glycinate, N-acylaminopropyl-N, N-dimethylammonium glycinates, for example cocoacylaminopropyl-dimethylammonium glycinate, and 2-alkyl-3-carboxylmethyl-3-hydroxyethyl imidazolines having in each case 8 to 18 C atoms in the alkyl or acyl group and the coco acylaminoethylhydroxyethylcarboxymethylglycinate.
  • a preferred zwitterionic surfactant is the fatty acid amide derivative known by the INCI name Cocamidopropyl Betaine.
  • ampholytic surfactants are understood as meaning those surface-active compounds which contain, in addition to a C 8 -C -alkyl or acyl group in the molecule, at least one free amino group and at least one -COOH or -SO 3 H group and for the formation of internal salts are capable.
  • ampholytic surfactants are N-alkylglycines, N-alkylpropionic acids, N-alkylaminobutyric acids, N-alkyliminodipropionic acids, N-hydroxyethyl-N-alkylamidopropylglycines, N-alkyltaurines, N-alkylsarcosines, 2-alkylaminopropionic acids and alkylaminoacetic acids each having about 8 to 18 C atoms in the alkyl group.
  • Particularly preferred ampholytic surfactants are N-cocoalkylaminopropionate, cocoacylaminoethyl aminopropionate and C 12 - 18 - sarcosine.
  • the cationic surfactants used are, in particular, those of the quaternary ammonium compound type, the esterquats and the amidoamines.
  • Preferred quaternary ammonium compounds are ammonium halides, especially chlorides and bromides, such as alkyltrimethylammonium chlorides, dialkyldimethylammonium chlorides and trialkylmethylammonium chlorides, e.g.
  • alkyltrimethylammonium chlorides dialkyldimethylammonium chlorides and trialkylmethylammonium chlorides, e.g.
  • cetyltrimethylammonium chloride, stearyltrimethylammonium chloride, distearyldimethylammonium chloride, lauryldimethylammonium chloride, lauryldimethylbenzylammonium chloride and tricetylmethylammonium chloride as well as the imidazolium compounds known under the INCI names Quaternium-27 and Quaternium-83.
  • the long alkyl chains of the above-mentioned surfactants preferably have 10 to 18 carbon atoms.
  • Esterquats are known substances which contain both at least one ester function and at least one quaternary ammonium group as a structural element.
  • Preferred ester quats are quaternized ester salts of fatty acids with triethanolamine, quaternized Ester salts of fatty acids with Diethanolalkylaminen and quaternized ester salts of fatty acids with 1, 2-Dihydroxypropyldialkylaminen.
  • Such products are marketed under the trade names Stepantex® ®, ® and Dehyquart® Armocare® ®.
  • the alkylamidoamines are usually prepared by amidation of natural or synthetic fatty acids and fatty acid cuts with dialkylaminoamines.
  • An inventively particularly suitable compound from this group of substances under the name Tegoamid ® S 18 commercial stearamidopropyl dimethylamine is.
  • cationic surfactants which can be used according to the invention are the quaternized protein hydrolysates.
  • cationic silicone oils such as, for example, the commercially available products Q2-7224 (manufacturer: Dow Corning, a stabilized trimethylsilylamodimethicone), Dow Corning 929 emulsion (containing a hydroxylamino-modified silicone, also referred to as amodimethicones), SM -2059 (manufacturer: General Electric), SLM-55067 (manufacturer: Wacker) and Abil ® quat 3270 and 3272 (manufacturer: Th Goldschmidt; diquaternary polydimethylsiloxanes, quaternium-80.).
  • Glucquat ® 100 is, according to INCI nomenclature a "lauryl methyl Gluceth-10 Hydroxypropyl Dimonium Chloride”.
  • the compounds used as surfactant with alkyl groups may each be uniform substances. However, it is generally preferred to use native vegetable or animal raw materials in the production of these substances, so that substance mixtures having different alkyl chain lengths depending on the respective raw material are obtained.
  • both products with a "normal” homolog distribution and those with a narrow homolog distribution can be used.
  • "normal” homolog distribution are mixtures of Homologs obtained in the reaction of fatty alcohol and alkylene oxide using alkali metals, alkali metal hydroxides or alkali metal alcoholates as catalysts. Narrowed homolog distributions are obtained when, for example, hydrotalcites, alkaline earth metal salts of ether carboxylic acids, alkaline earth metal oxides, hydroxides or alkoxides are used as catalysts.
  • the use of products with narrow homolog distribution may be preferred.
  • the agents according to the invention may additionally contain at least one silicone.
  • the silicones if they are present in the agents according to the invention, preferably in amounts of 0.05 to 5 wt .-%, preferably from 0.2 to 5 wt .-%, each based on the ready-to-use agent.
  • the silicones are selected from at least one member of the
  • polyalkyl siloxanes polyaryl siloxanes, polyalkylaryl siloxanes which are volatile or nonvolatile, straight chain, branched or cyclic, crosslinked or uncrosslinked;
  • grafted polysiloxane backbone silicone polymers having grafted thereto non-silicone-containing organic monomers having a polysiloxane backbone to which at least one organic macromer containing no silicone has been grafted in the chain, and optionally at least at one of its ends , such as the commercial product Abil B 8832 from Degussa marketed under the INCI name Bis-PEG / PPG-20/20 dimethicone;
  • Particularly preferred cosmetic or dermatological preparations according to the invention are characterized in that they contain at least one silicone of the formula (Si-1)
  • x is a number from 0 to 100, preferably from 0 to 50, more preferably from 0 to 20 and in particular 0 to 10.
  • the inventively preferred cosmetic or dermatological preparations contain a silicone of the above formula (Si-1). These silicones are referred to as dimethicones according to the INCI nomenclature. It is in the context of the present invention as the silicone of the formula (Si-1), preferably the compounds:
  • Preferred silicones according to invention have at 2O 0 C to viscosities of 0.2 to 2 mmV 1, wherein silicones having viscosities of 0.5 to 1 mmV 1 are particularly preferred.
  • Particularly preferred agents according to the invention contain one or more amino-functional silicones.
  • Such silicones may e.g. by the formula (Si-2)
  • R is a hydrocarbon or a hydrocarbon radical having from 1 to about 6
  • Q is a polar radical of the general formula -R 1 HZ, in which
  • R 1 is a divalent linking group bonded to hydrogen and the radical Z composed of carbon and hydrogen atoms, carbon, hydrogen and oxygen atoms or carbon, hydrogen and nitrogen atoms, and
  • Z is an organic, amino-functional group containing at least one amino-functional group; a assumes values in the range of about 0 to about 2, b takes values in the range of about 1 to about 3, a + b is less than or equal to 3, and c is a number in the range of about 1 to about 3, and x a number ranging from 1 to about 2,000, preferably from about 3 to about 50, and most preferably from about 3 to about 25; and y is a number ranging from about 20 to about 10,000, preferably from about 125 to about 10,000 and most preferred is from about 150 to about 1000, and M is a suitable silicone end group as known in the art, preferably trimethylsiloxy.
  • Non-limiting examples of the groups represented by R in formula (Si-2) include alkyl groups such as methyl, ethyl, propyl, isopropyl, isopropyl, butyl, isobutyl, amyl, isoamyl, hexyl, isohexyl and the like; Alkenyl radicals such as vinyl, halovinyl, alkylvinyl, allyl, haloallyl, alkylallyl; Cycloalkyl radicals such as cyclobutyl, cyclopentyl, cyclohexyl and the like; Phenyl radicals, benzyl radicals, halohydrocarbon radicals such as 3-chloropropyl, 4-bromobutyl, 3,3,3-trifluoropropyl, chlorocyclohexyl, bromophenyl, chlorophenyl and the like, as well as sulfur-containing radicals such as mercaptoethyl,
  • R 1 examples include methylene, ethylene, propylene, hexamethylene, decamethylene, - CH 2 CH (CH 3 ) CH 2 -, phenylene, naphthylene, -CH 2 CH 2 SCH 2 CH 2 -, -CH 2 CH 2 OCH 2 - , -OCH 2 CH 2 -, - OCH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -, -CH 2 CH (CH 3 ) C (O) OCH 2 -, - (CHz) 3 CC (O) OCH 2 CH 2 -, -C 6 H 4 C 6 H 4 -, -C 6 H 4 CH 2 C 6 H 4 -; and - (CH 2 ) 3 C (O) SCH 2 CH 2 -.
  • Z is according to formula (Si-2) an organic, amino-functional radical containing at least one functional amino group.
  • a possible formula for said Z is NH (CH 2 ) Z NH 2 , where z is an integer greater than or equal to 1.
  • Another possible formula for said Z is -NH (CH 2 ) Z (CH 2 ) zz NH, wherein both z and zz independently of one another are an integer greater than or equal to 1, this structure comprising diamino ring structures, such as piperazinyl.
  • Said Z is most preferably an -NHCH 2 CH 2 NH 2 radical.
  • Z is - N (CH 2 ) Z (CH 2 ) ZZ NX 2 or -NX 2 , wherein each X of X 2 is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen and alkyl groups of 1 to 12 carbon atoms, and zz is 0.
  • Q according to formula (Si-2) is most preferably a polar amino-functional radical of formula - CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 .
  • assumes values in the range of 0 to 2
  • b takes values in the range of 2 to 3
  • a + b is less than or equal to 3
  • c is a number in the range of 1 to 3.
  • the molar ratio of the R a Q b SiO (4 a a b) / 2 units to the R 0 SiO (4 C) 2 units in formula (Si-2) is in the range of about 1: From 2 to 1: 65, preferably from about 1: 5 to about 1:65, and most preferably from about 1:15 to about 1: 20. If one or more of the above formula (Si-2) silicones are used then the various variable substituents in the above formula may be different for the various silicone components present in the silicone blend.
  • Preferred cosmetic or dermatological preparations according to the invention contain an amino-functional silicone of the formula (Si-3)
  • G is -H, a phenyl group, -OH, -O-CH 3 , -CH 3 , -O-CH 2 CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 3 , -O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 3 , -C / H 2 C / H2C / H3, -L) ⁇ C / H (C / H3) 2) ⁇ C / H (L / H3) 2 -O ⁇ J C / ⁇ 2C / H2C / ⁇ 2C / H3, -C / H2C / H2C / ⁇ 2C / ⁇ 3, -O-CH 2 CH (CH 3) 2, -CH 2 CH (CHs) 2, -0-CH (CH 3) CH 2 CH 3, -CH (CH 3) CH 2 CH 3, -OC (CH 3 ) 3 , -C (CH 3 ) 3 ; a is a number between 0 and 3, in particular 0; b is a number between 0 and
  • R ' is a monovalent radical selected from -QN (R ") - CH 2 -CH 2 -N (R") 2 -QN (R 11 J 2 -QN + (R ") 3 A- -QN + H (R ") 2 a" QN + H 2 (R ") a" -QN (R ”) - CH 2 -CH 2 -N + R" H 2 a ", each Q is a chemical bond, -CH 2 - , -CH 2 -CH 2 -, -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -, -C (CHs) 2 -, -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -, -CH 2 C (CH 3 ) 2 -, -CH (CH 3 ) CH 2 CH 2 -, R "represents the same or different radicals from the group of -H, -phenyl, -benzyl, -CH 2 -CH (CH 3) Ph, the CI_ 20 -alkyl
  • Cationic silicone oils such as the commercially available Dow Corning 929 emulsion (containing a hydroxylamino-modified silicone referred to as amodimethicone), DC 2-2078 (manufacturer Dow Corning, INCI name: Aminopropyl Phenyl Trimethicone), DC 5 are suitable according to the invention -7113 (manufacturer Dow Corning, INCI name: Silicone Quaternium 16), SM-2059 (manufacturer: General Electric), SLM-55067 (manufacturer: Wacker) and Abil ® quat 3270 and 3272 (manufacturer: Th Goldschmidt; diquaternary. Polydimethylsiloxanes, quaternium-80).
  • Particularly preferred agents according to the invention are characterized in that they contain at least one amino-functional silicone of the formula (Si 3-a)
  • n and n are numbers whose sum (m + n) is between 1 and 2000, preferably between 50 and 150, where n preferably values of 0 to 1999 and in particular of 49 to 149 and m preferably values of 1 to 2000 , in particular from 1 to 10 assumes.
  • silicones are referred to as trimethylsilylamodimethicones according to the INCI declaration and are available, for example, under the name Q2-7224 (manufacturer: Dow Corning, a stabilized trimethylsilylamodimethicone).
  • compositions according to the invention which contain at least one amino-functional silicone of the formula (Si-3b)
  • R is -OH, an (optionally ethoxylated and / or propoxylated) (Ci to C 2 o) -
  • R ' is -OH, a (Ci to C 2 o) alkoxy group or a -CH 3 group and m, n1 and n2 are numbers whose sum (m + n1 + n2) is between 1 and 2000, preferably between 50 and Is 150, wherein the sum (n1 + n2) preferably takes values from 0 to 1999 and in particular from 49 to 149 and m preferably values from 1 to 2000, in particular from 1 to 10.
  • silicones are according to the INCI declaration as Amodimethicone, or as functionalized Amodimethicone, such as bis (C13-15 alkoxy) PG Amodimethicone (for example, as a commercial product: DC 8500 from Dow Corning available), trideceth-9 PG-amodimethicones (for example as a commercial product Silcare Silicone SEA available from Clariant).
  • Amodimethicone or as functionalized Amodimethicone, such as bis (C13-15 alkoxy) PG Amodimethicone (for example, as a commercial product: DC 8500 from Dow Corning available), trideceth-9 PG-amodimethicones (for example as a commercial product Silcare Silicone SEA available from Clariant).
  • amino-functional silicones preference is given to cosmetic or dermatological preparations according to the invention which contain an amino-functional silicone whose amine number is above 0.25 meq / g, preferably above 0.3 meq / g and in particular above 0.4 meq / g is.
  • the amine number stands for the milliequivalents of amine per gram of the amino-functional silicone. It can be determined by titration and also expressed in mg KOH / g.
  • Cosmetic or dermatological preparations preferred according to the invention are characterized in that, based on their weight, they contain 0.01 to 10% by weight, preferably 0.1 to 8% by weight, particularly preferably 0.25 to 7.5% by weight and in particular from 0.5 to 5% by weight of amino-functional silicone (s).
  • cyclic dimethicones designated as cyclomethicones according to INCI are also preferably used according to the invention.
  • cosmetic or dermatological preparations according to the invention are preferred which contain at least one silicone of the formula (Si-4)
  • x is a number from 0 to 200, preferably from 0 to 10, more preferably from 0 to 7 and in particular 0, 1, 2, 3, 4, 5 or 6 stands.
  • the silicones described above have a backbone composed of -Si-O-Si units.
  • these Si-O-Si units may also be interrupted by carbon chains.
  • Appropriate molecules are accessible by chain extension reactions and are preferably used in the form of silicone-in-water emulsions.
  • silicone-in-water emulsions which can be used according to the invention can be prepared by known processes, as disclosed, for example, in US Pat. No. 5,998,537 and EP 0 874 017 A1.
  • this method of preparation comprises the emulsifying mixture of components, one of which contains at least one polysiloxane, the other of which contains at least one organosilicone material which reacts with the polysiloxane in a chain extension reaction, with at least one metal ion-containing catalyst for the chain extension reaction, at least one surfactant and water present are.
  • the chain extension reaction may also include the reaction of an Si-OH group (e.g., a hydroxy-terminated polysiloxane) with an alkoxy group (e.g., alkoxysilanes, silicates, or alkoxysiloxanes) in the presence of a metal-containing catalyst to form polysiloxanes.
  • an Si-OH group e.g., a hydroxy-terminated polysiloxane
  • an alkoxy group e.g., alkoxysilanes, silicates, or alkoxysiloxanes
  • each R independently represents a hydrocarbon radical having up to 20 carbon atoms, preferably having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, such as an alkyl group (for example, methyl, ethyl, propyl or butyl), an aryl group (for example, phenyl), or group required for the chain extension reaction ("reactive group", for example, Si-bonded H atoms, aliphatic unsaturated groups such as vinyl, allyl or hexenyl, hydroxy, alkoxy such as methoxy, ethoxy or propoxy, alkoxy-alkoxy, acetoxy, amino, etc.), with the proviso that on average one to two reactive groups are present per polymer, n is a positive number> 1.
  • n is numbers describing polysiloxanes having viscosities between 1 and 1,000,000 mm 2 / s, more preferably viscosities between 1,000 and 100,000 mm 2 / s.
  • the polysiloxanes may be branched to a low degree (for example, ⁇ 2 mol% of the siloxane units), but the polymers are substantially linear, more preferably fully linear.
  • the substituents R may in turn be substituted, for example with N-containing groups (for example amino groups), epoxy groups, S-containing groups, Si-containing groups, O-containing groups, etc.
  • N-containing groups for example amino groups
  • epoxy groups for example amino groups
  • S-containing groups for example amino groups
  • Si-containing groups for example O-containing groups
  • O-containing groups etc.
  • at least 80% of the radicals R are alkyl radicals, especially preferably methyl groups.
  • the organosilicone material that reacts with the polysiloxane in the chain extension reaction may be either a second polysiloxane or a molecule that acts as a chain extender.
  • the organosilicone material is a polysiloxane, it has the above-mentioned general structure. In these cases, one polysiloxane in the reaction has (at least) one reactive group, and a second polysiloxane has (at least) a second reactive group that reacts with the first.
  • the organosilicone material comprises a chain-extending agent
  • it may be a material such as a silane, a siloxane (e.g. disiloxane or trisiloxane) or a silazane.
  • a composition which comprises a polysiloxane according to the above-described general structure which comprises at least one Si-OH group has been chain extended by reacting with an alkoxysilane (for example, a dialkoxysilane or trialkoxysilane) in the presence of tin or titanium-containing catalysts.
  • an alkoxysilane for example, a dialkoxysilane or trialkoxysilane
  • the metal-containing catalysts in the chain extension reaction are usually specific for a particular reaction.
  • Such catalysts are known in the art and include, for example, metals such as platinum, rhodium, tin, titanium, copper, lead, etc.
  • a polysiloxane having at least one aliphatically unsaturated group, preferably an end group is reacted with an organosilicone material
  • a hydrosilylation catalyst which is a siloxane or polysiloxane having at least one (preferably terminal) Si-H group.
  • the polysiloxane has at least one aliphatically unsaturated group and satisfies the general formula given above in which R and n are as defined above, with an average of between 1 and 2 groups R having one aliphatically unsaturated group per polymer.
  • the organosilicone material having at least one Si-H group preferably has the above-mentioned structure, wherein R and n are as defined above and wherein, on average, between 1 and 2 groups R is hydrogen and n is 0 or a positive integer.
  • This material may be a polymer or a low molecular weight material such as a siloxane (for example, a disiloxane or a trisiloxane).
  • a siloxane for example, a disiloxane or a trisiloxane
  • the polysiloxane having at least one aliphatic unsaturated group and the organosilicone material having at least one Si-H group react in the presence of a hydrosilylation catalyst.
  • a hydrosilylation catalyst include, for example, platinum and rhodium-containing materials.
  • the catalysts may take any known form, for example platinum or rhodium coated on support materials (such as silica gel or activated carbon) or other suitable compounds such as platinum chloride, salts of platinum or chloroplatinic acids.
  • Chloroplatinic acid either as a commercially available hexahydrate or in anhydrous form is a preferred catalyst because of good dispersibility in organosilicone systems and low color change.
  • a polysiloxane having at least one Si-OH group, preferably an end group is added with an organosilicone material Reaction having at least one alkoxy group, preferably a siloxane having at least one Si-OR group or an alkoxysilane having at least two alkoxy groups.
  • the catalyst used is again a metal-containing catalyst.
  • organometallic compounds such as organotin salts, titanates or titanium chelates or complexes.
  • organometallic compounds such as organotin salts, titanates or titanium chelates or complexes.
  • organometallic compounds such as organotin salts, titanates or titanium chelates or complexes.
  • organometallic compounds such as organotin salts, titanates or titanium chelates or complexes.
  • organometallic compounds such as organotin salts, titanates or titanium chelates or complexes.
  • organometallic compounds such as organotin salts, titanates or titanium chelates or complexes.
  • examples include stannous octoate, dibutyltin dilaurate, dibutyltin diacetate, dimethyltin dineodecanoate, dibutyltin dimethoxide, isobutyltin triceroate, dimethyltin dibutyrate, dimethyltin dineo
  • Agents which are likewise preferred according to the invention are characterized in that they contain at least one silicone of the formula (Si-5)
  • R is identical or different radicals from the group -H, -phenyl, -benzyl, -CH 2 -CH (CH 3 ) Ph, the d_ 2 o-alkyl radicals, preferably -CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 3 , -CH (CH 3 ) 2 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 H 3 , -CH 2 CH (CH 3 ) 2 , -CH (CH 3 ) CH 2 CH 3 , -C (CH 3 J 3) , x or y is a number from 0 to 200, preferably from 0 to 10, more preferably from 0 to 7 and in particular 0, 1, 2, 3, 4, 5 or 6, and n is a number from 0 to 10, preferably from 1 to 8 and in particular from 2, 3, 4, 5, 6.
  • the silicones are preferably water-soluble. According to preferred means of the embodiment with a silicone are characterized in that the silicone is water-soluble.
  • Corresponding hydrophilic silicones are selected, for example, from the compounds of the formulas (Si-6) and / or (Si-7).
  • Particularly preferred water-soluble silicone-based surfactants are selected from the group of dimethicone copolyols which are preferably alkoxylated, in particular polyethoxylated or polypropoxylated.
  • Dimethicone copolyols are understood according to the invention as meaning preferably polyoxyalkylene-modified dimethylpolysiloxanes of the general formulas (Si-6) or (Si-7):
  • Alkoxy group having 1 to 12 carbon atoms or a hydroxyl group the radicals R 'and R "are alkyl groups having 1 to 12 carbon atoms
  • x is an integer from 1 to 100, preferably from 20 to 30
  • y is a integer from 1 to 20, preferably from 2 to 10
  • a and b are integers from 0 to 50, preferably from 10 to 30.
  • dimethicone copolyols according to the invention are, for example, the products sold commercially under the trade name SILWET (Union Carbide Corporation) and DOW CORNING (Dow).
  • Dimethicone copolyols particularly preferred according to the invention are Dow Corning 190 and Dow Corning 193 (Dow).
  • the agents according to the invention may contain at least one protein hydrolyzate.
  • the protein hydrolysates are product mixtures obtained by acid, alkaline or enzymatically catalyzed degradation of proteins (proteins).
  • protein hydrolysates of both vegetable and animal origin can be used.
  • Animal protein hydrolysates are, for example, elastin, collagen, keratin, silk and milk protein protein hydrolysates, which may also be present in the form of salts.
  • Such products are, for example, under the trademarks keratin DEC ® (Vincience) Dehylan ® (Cognis), Promois® ® (Interorgana) Collapuron ® (Cognis), Nutrilan® ® (Cognis), Gelita-Sol ® (German Gelatinefabriken Stoess & Co) distributed Lexein ® (Inolex) and kerasol tm ® (Croda).
  • Preferred according to the invention is the use of protein hydrolysates of plant origin, eg. Soybean, almond, rice, pea, potato and wheat protein hydrolysates.
  • Such products are, for example, under the trademarks Gluadin ® (Cognis), diamine ® (Diamalt) ® (Inolex) and Crotein ® (Croda) available.
  • protein hydrolysates amino acid mixtures or individual amino acids obtained otherwise, such as, for example, arginine, lysine, histidine or pyrroglutamic acid, may also be used in their place.
  • derivatives of protein hydrolysates for example in the form of their fatty acid condensation products. Such products are marketed for example under the names Lamepon ® (Cognis), Gluadin ® (Cognis), Lexein ® (Inolex), Crolastin ® (Croda) or Crotein ® (Croda).
  • the protein hydrolysates in an amount of 0.05 to 5 wt .-%, particularly preferably from 0.5 to 2.0 wt .-%, each based on the weight of the ready-to-use agent included.
  • the agents according to the invention additionally contain at least one cationic and / or at least one amphoteric polymer.
  • Cationic polymers are polymers which have groups in the main and / or side chain which may be “temporary” or “permanent” cationic.
  • “permanently cationic” refers to those polymers which have a cationic group independently of the pH of the agent These are generally polymers containing a quaternary nitrogen atom, for example in the form of an ammonium group.
  • Preferred cationic groups are quaternary ammonium groups.
  • those polymers in which the quaternary Ammoniunnen are bonded via a CI_ 4 hydrocarbon group to a synthesized from acrylic acid, methacrylic acid or derivatives thereof, polymer backbone have been found to be particularly suitable.
  • R 18 -H or -CH 3
  • R 18 is a methyl group - R 19
  • R 20 and R 21 are methyl groups m is 2.
  • Suitable physiologically acceptable counterions X ' are, for example, halide ions, sulfate ions, phosphate ions, methosulfate ions and organic ions such as lactate, citrate, tartrate and acetate ions. Preference is given to halide ions, in particular chloride.
  • a particularly suitable homopolymer is, if desired, crosslinked, poly (methacryloyloxyethyltrimethylammoniumchlorid) with the INCI name Polyquaternium- 37.
  • the crosslinking if desired, using poly olefinically unsaturated compounds, for example divinylbenzene, tetraallyloxyethane, methylenebisacrylamide, diallyl ether, polyallylpolyglycerylether, or allyl ethers of sugars or Sugar derivatives such as erythritol, pentaerythritol, arabitol, mannitol, sorbitol, sucrose or glucose.
  • Methylenebisacrylamide is a preferred crosslinking agent.
  • the homopolymer is preferably used in the form of a nonaqueous polymer dispersion which should not have a polymer content of less than 30% by weight.
  • Such polymer dispersions are under the names Salcare ® SC 95 (about 50% polymer content, other components: mineral oil (INCI name: Mineral OiI) and tridecyl-polyoxypropylene-polyoxyethylene ether (INCI name: PPG-1-Trideceth-6)) and Salcare ® SC 96 (about 50% polymer content, other components: mixture of diesters of propylene glycol with a mixture of caprylic and capric acid (INCI name: Propylene Glycol Dicaprylate / Dicaprate) and tridecyl polyoxypropylene polyoxyethylene ether (INCI name : PPG-1-trideceth-6)) are commercially available.
  • Copolymers with monomer units of the formula (P1) contain, as nonionic monomer units, preferably acrylamide, methacrylamide, acrylic acid-C-. 4- alkyl esters and methacrylic acid-C- ⁇ - 4 -alkyl ester. Among these nonionic monomers, the acrylamide is particularly preferred. These copolymers can also be crosslinked, as described above in the case of the homopolymers. A copolymer preferred according to the invention is the crosslinked acrylamide-methacryloyloxyethyltrimethylammonium chloride copolymer. Such copolymers in which the monomers are present in a weight ratio of about 20:80, are commercially available as approximately 50% non-aqueous polymer dispersion 92 under the name Salcare ® SC.
  • quaternized cellulose derivatives such as are available under the names of Celquat ® and Polymer JR ® commercially.
  • the compounds Celquat ® H 100, Celquat ® L 200 and Polymer JR ® 400 are preferred quaternized cellulose derivatives, cationized honey, for example the commercial product Honeyquat ® 50, cationic guar derivatives, in particular under the trade name Cosmedia ® guar and Jaguar ® distributed products,
  • Polysiloxanes having quaternary groups such as the commercially available products Q2-7224 (manufactured by Dow Corning, a stabilized trimethylsilylamodimethicone), Dow Corning® 929 emulsion (containing a hydroxylamino-modified silicone, also referred to as amodimethicones), SM -2059 (manufacturer: General Electric), SLM-55067 (manufacturer: Wacker) and Abil ® quat 3270 and 3272 (manufacturer: Th Goldschmidt; di- quaternary polydimethylsiloxanes, quaternium-80).
  • Q2-7224 manufactured by Dow Corning, a stabilized trimethylsilylamodimethicone
  • Dow Corning® 929 emulsion containing a hydroxylamino-modified silicone, also referred to as amodimethicones
  • SM -2059 manufactured by Dow Corning, a stabilized trimethylsilylamodimethicon
  • Such compounds are sold under the names Gafquat ® 734 and Gafquat ® 755 commercially,
  • Vinylpyrrolidone-vinyl imidazolium copolymers such as those offered under the names Luviquat ® FC 370, FC 550, FC 905 and HM 552, quaternized polyvinyl alcohol,
  • Polyquaternium 2 e.g., Mirapol® A-15 from Rhodia
  • Polyquaternium 17 Polyquaternium 18 and
  • Polyquaternium 27 known polymers with quaternary nitrogen atoms in the polymer main chain.
  • Can be used as cationic polymers are sold under the names Polyquaternium-24 (commercial product z. B. Quatrisoft ® LM 200), known polymers.
  • Gaffix ® VC 713 manufactured by ISP:
  • the copolymers of vinylpyrrolidone such as the commercial products Copolymer 845 (ISP manufacturer) are Gafquat ® ASCP 1011, Gafquat ® HS 110, Luviquat ® 8155 and Luviquat ® MS 370 available are.
  • cationic polymers of the present invention are usually contain an amino group present at certain pH values as a quaternary ammonium group and hence cationic.
  • chitosan and its derivatives are preferred, such as for example, under the trade designations Hydagen ® CMF, Hydagen® ® HCMF, Kytamer ® PC and Chitolam ® NB / 101 are freely available commercially.
  • chitosans are deacetylated, in different degrees of deacetylation and varying degrees of degradation (molecular weights) are commercially available. Their preparation is, for example, in DE 44 40 625 A1 and described in DE 1 95 03 465 A1.
  • Particularly suitable chitosans have a degree of deacetylation of at least 80% and a molecular weight of 5 10 5 to 5 10 6 (g / mol).
  • the chitosan must be converted into the salt form. This can be done by dissolving in dilute aqueous acids.
  • Suitable acids are both mineral acids such as hydrochloric acid, sulfuric acid and phosphoric acid and organic acids, for example low molecular weight carboxylic acids, polycarboxylic acids and hydroxycarboxylic acids.
  • higher molecular weight alkyl sulfonic acids or alkyl sulfuric acids or organophosphoric acids can be used, provided that they have the required physiological compatibility.
  • Suitable acids for converting the chitosan into the salt form are, for example, acetic acid, glycolic acid, tartaric acid, malic acid, citric acid, lactic acid, 2-pyrrolidinone-5-carboxylic acid, benzoic acid or salicylic acid. Preference is given to using low molecular weight hydroxycarboxylic acids, for example glycolic acid or lactic acid.
  • amphoteric polymers is understood as meaning those polymers which contain both free amino groups and free -COOH or SO 3 H groups in the molecule and are capable of forming internal salts, zwitterionic polymers having in the molecule quaternary ammonium groups and -COO groups or -SO 3 " groups, as well as
  • the quaternary ammonium polymers mentioned in the list are preferably used according to the invention as amphoteric polymers.
  • amphopolymer suitable is the acrylic resin commercially available as Amphomer ®, which is a copolymer of tert-butylaminoethyl methacrylate, N- (1, 1, 3,3-tetramethylbutyl) -acrylamide and two or more monomers from the group of acrylic acid, Represents methacrylic acid and its simple esters.
  • Amphomer ® is a copolymer of tert-butylaminoethyl methacrylate, N- (1, 1, 3,3-tetramethylbutyl) -acrylamide and two or more monomers from the group of acrylic acid, Represents methacrylic acid and its simple esters.
  • amphoteric polymers which can be used according to the invention are the compounds mentioned in British Patent Application 2,104,091, European Patent Application 47,714, European Offenlegungsschrift 217,274, European Offenlegungsschrift 283,817 and German Offenlegungsschrift 28 17 369.
  • Amphoteric and / or cationic polymers preferred according to the invention are those polymers in which a cationic group is derived from at least one of the following monomers:
  • R 1 -CH CR 2 -CO-Z- (C n H 2n ) -N (+) R 3 R 4 R 5 A () (M 1)
  • R 1 and R 2 independently of one another are hydrogen or a methyl group and R 3 , R 4 and R 5 independently of one another are alkyl groups having 1 to 4 carbon atoms, Z is an NH group or an oxygen atom, n is an integer of 2 to 5 and A () is the anion of an organic or inorganic acid,
  • R 6 and R 7 are independently a (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl group, in particular a methyl group and A "is the anion of an organic or inorganic acid.
  • the radicals R 3 , R 4 and R 5 in the formula (M 1) are preferably methyl groups, Z is preferably an NH group and A () preferably denotes a halide, methoxysulfate or ethoxysulfate ion. It is particularly preferred in this case to use acrylamidopropyltrimethylammonium chloride as the monomer (M1).
  • a ' is preferably a halide ion, in particular chloride or bromide.
  • Preferred amphoteric polymers according to the invention are polymers whose anionic group is derived from at least one monomer of the formula (M3)
  • R 8 and R 9 are independently hydrogen or methyl groups.
  • acrylic acid is used for the amphoteric polymers preferred according to the invention.
  • amphoteric polymers are copolymers of at least one monomer (M 1) or (M2) with the monomer (M3), in particular copolymers of the monomers (M2) and (M3).
  • amphoteric polymers are copolymers of diallyl dimethyl ammonium chloride and acrylic acid. These copolymers are sold under the INCI name Polyquaternium-22, among others, with the trade name Merquat ® 280 (Nalco).
  • amphoteric polymers according to the invention may additionally comprise a monomer (M4)
  • R 10 -CH CR 11 -CNR 12 (M 4) IIHO in which R 10 and R 11 are independently hydrogen or methyl groups and R 12 is a hydrogen atom or a (C 1 to C 8 ) alkyl group.
  • comonomer based on a comonomer are terpolymers of diallyldimethylammonium chloride, acrylamide and acrylic acid. These copolymers are marketed ® under the INCI name Polyquaternium-39, among others, with the trade name Merquat Plus 3330 (Nalco).
  • amphoteric polymers are those polymers which are composed essentially
  • R 8 -CH CR 9 -COOH (M3) in which R 0 and R 9 are independently hydrogen or methyl groups.
  • amphoteric polymers can generally be used both directly and in salt form, which is obtained by neutralization of the polymers, for example with an alkali metal hydroxide, according to the invention.
  • Film-forming polymers are to be understood as meaning those polymers which, after application in a liquid carrier, leave a continuous film on the substrate during drying, in particular on the skin, hair or fingernails.
  • film formers can be used in a wide variety of administration forms or product categories of the agent according to the invention, such as, for example, face masks, make-up, hair fixatives, hair sprays, hair gels, hair dyes, hair waxes, hair treatments, shampoos or nail varnishes.
  • Examples of common film formers are Abies Balsamea (Balsam Canada) Resin, Acetylenediurea / Formaldehyde / Tosylamide Crosspolymer, Acrylamide / Ammonium Acrylate Copolymer, Acrylamide Copolymer, Acrylamide / DMAPA Acrylate / Methoxy PEG Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylamide / Sodium Acrylate Copolymer, Acrylamidopropyltrimoniunn Chloride / Acrylamide Copolymer, Acrylamidopropyltrimoniunn Chloride / Acrylates Copolymer, Acrylates / Acetoacetoxyethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates / Acrylamide Copolymer, Acrylates / Ammonium Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates / Behenyl Methacrylates / Dimethicone Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates /
  • Isophorone Diamine / Isophthalic Acid / Pentaerythritol Copolymer Isophorone Diamine / Isophthalic Acid / Trimethylolpropane Copolymer, Isopropyl Ester of PVM / MA Copolymer, 4,4'-Isopropylidenediphenol / Epichlorohydrin Copolymer, Lauryl Acrylate / VA Copolymer, Lauryl Methacrylate / Glycol Dimethacrylate Crosspolymer, Maltodextrin, Mannan, Melia Azadirachta Conditioned Media / Culture, Methacrylic Acid / Sodium Acrylamidomethyl Propane Sulfonate Copolymer, Methacryloyl Ethyl Betaine / Acrylate Copolymer, Methacryloyl Propyltrimethoxysilane, Methoxypolyoxymethylene Melamine, Methyl Ethyl Cellulose,
  • Trimethylsiloxysilicate / Dimethiconol Crosspolymer Trimethylsiloxysilylcarbamoyl Pullulan, Triticum Vulgary (Wheat) Protein, Tromethamine Acrylates / Acrylonitrogen Copolymer, VA / Butyl Maleate / Isobornyl Acrylate Copolymer, VA / Crotonates Copolymer,
  • the film-forming polymers are preferably present in an amount of from 0.05 to 10.0% by weight, in particular from 1.0 to 6.0% by weight, based in each case on the weight of the composition according to the invention.
  • the effect can be further optimized by adding at least one fatty substance.
  • Fatty substances are to be understood as meaning fatty acids, fatty alcohols, natural and synthetic waxes, which can be in solid form as well as liquid in aqueous dispersion, and natural and synthetic cosmetic oil components.
  • the fatty acids used can be linear and / or branched, saturated and / or unsaturated fatty acids having 6 to 30 carbon atoms. Preference is given to fatty acids having 10 to 22 carbon atoms. These include, for example, the isostearic acids, such as Commercial products Emersol 871 and Emersol 875, and isopalmitic acids such as the commercial product Edenor ® IP 95, and all other products sold under the trade names Edenor ® (Cognis) fatty acids.
  • fatty acids are caproic acid, caprylic acid, 2-ethylhexanoic acid, capric acid, lauric acid, isotridecanoic acid, myristic acid, palmitic acid, palmitoleic acid, stearic acid, isostearic acid, oleic acid, elaidic acid, petroselinic acid, linoleic acid, linolenic acid, elaeostearic acid, arachidic acid, gadoleic acid, behenic acid and erucic acid and their technical mixtures, which are obtained, for example, in the pressure splitting of natural fats and oils, in the oxidation of aldehydes from Roelen's oxo synthesis or the dimerization of unsaturated fatty acids.
  • Particularly preferred are usually the fatty acid cuttings obtainable from coconut oil or palm oil; In particular, the use of stearic acid is usually preferred.
  • the amount used is 0.1 - 15 wt.%, Based on the total mean. In a preferred embodiment, the amount is 0.5-10% by weight, very particularly preferably amounts of 1-5% by weight.
  • Fatty alcohols which may be used are saturated, mono- or polyunsaturated, branched or unbranched fatty alcohols with C 6 - C 30 -, preferably C 0 - C 22 - and particularly preferably C 2 - C 22 - carbon atoms.
  • Decanols, octanols, dodecadienol, decadienol, oleyl alcohol, eruca alcohol, ricinoleic alcohol, stearyl alcohol, isostearyl alcohol, cetyl alcohol, lauryl alcohol, myristyl alcohol, arachidyl alcohol, caprylic alcohol, capric alcohol, linoleyl alcohol, linolenyl alcohol and behenyl alcohol are, for example, decanol, octanolol, dodecadienol, decadienol , as well as their Guerbet alcohols, this list should have exemplary and non-limiting character.
  • the fatty alcohols are derived from preferably natural fatty acids, which can usually be based on recovery from the esters of fatty acids by reduction.
  • those fatty alcohol cuts which are produced by reducing naturally occurring triglycerides such as beef tallow, palm oil, peanut oil, rapeseed oil, cottonseed oil, soybean oil, sunflower oil and linseed oil or fatty acid esters formed from their transesterification products with corresponding alcohols, and thus represent a mixture of different fatty alcohols.
  • Such substances are, for example, under the names Stenol ® such as Stenol ® 1618 or Lanette ® such as Lanette ® O or Lorol ®, for example, Lorol ® C8, Lorol C14 ®, Lorol C18 ®, ® Lorol C8-18, HD-Ocenol ®, Crodacol ® such as Crodacol ® CS, Novol ®, Eutanol ® G, Guerbitol ® 16, Guerbitol ® 18, Guerbitol ® 20, Isofol ® 12, Isofol ® 16, Isofol ® 24, Isofol ® 36, Isocarb ® 12, Isocarb ® 16 or acquire Isocarb® ® 24 for sale.
  • Stenol ® such as Stenol ® 1618 or Lanette ® such as Lanette ® O or Lorol ®
  • Lorol ® C8 Lorol C8-18
  • Wollwachsalkohole also how they can be purchased, for example, under the names of Corona ®, White Swan ®, Coronet ® or Fluilan ® can be used.
  • the fatty alcohols are used in amounts of from 0.1 to 20% by weight, based on the total preparation, preferably in amounts of from 0.1 to 10% by weight.
  • the natural or synthetic waxes used according to the invention are solid paraffins or isoparaffins, carnauba waxes, beeswaxes, candelilla waxes, ozokerites, ceresin, spermaceti, sunflower wax, fruit waxes such as apple wax or citrus wax, microwaxes of PE or PP.
  • Such waxes are available, for example, from Kahl & Co., Trittau.
  • the natural and synthetic cosmetic oil bodies which can increase the action of the active ingredient according to the invention include, for example: vegetable oils.
  • vegetable oils examples include sunflower oil, olive oil, soybean oil, rapeseed oil, almond oil, jojoba oil, orange oil, wheat germ oil, peach kernel oil and the liquid portions of coconut oil.
  • triglyceride oils such as the liquid portions of beef tallow as well as synthetic triglyceride oils.
  • Ester oils are to be understood as meaning the esters of C 6 - C 30 fatty acids with C 2 - C 30 fatty alcohols. The monoesters of the fatty acids with alcohols having 2 to 24 carbon atoms are preferred.
  • fatty acid components used in the esters are caproic, caprylic, 2-ethylhexanoic, capric, lauric, isotridecanoic, myristic, palmitic, palmitoleic, stearic, isostearic, oleic, elaidic, petroselic, linoleic, linolenic Behenic acid and erucic acid and their technical mixtures which are obtained, for example, in the pressure splitting of natural fats and oils, in the oxidation of aldehydes from Roelen's oxo synthesis or the dimerization of unsaturated fatty acids.
  • fatty alcohol components in the ester oils are isopropyl alcohol, caproic alcohol, Caprylic alcohol, 2-ethylhexyl alcohol, capric alcohol, lauryl alcohol, isotridecyl alcohol, myristyl alcohol, cetyl alcohol, palmoleyl alcohol, stearyl alcohol, isostearyl alcohol, oleyl alcohol, elaidyl alcohol, petroselinyl alcohol, linolyl alcohol, linolenyl alcohol, elaeostearyl alcohol, arachyl alcohol, gadoleyl alcohol, behenyl alcohol, erucyl alcohol and brassidyl alcohol, and technical mixtures thereof, for example, in the high-pressure hydrogenation of technical methyl esters based on fats and oils or aldehydes from the Roelen oxo synthesis and as a monomer fraction in the dimerization of unsaturated fatty alcohols incurred.
  • isopropyl myristate IPM Rilanit ®
  • isononanoic acid C16-18 alkyl ester Cetiol ® SN
  • 2-ethylhexyl palmitate Cegesoft ® 24
  • stearic acid-2-ethylhexyl ester Cetiol ® 868
  • cetyl oleate glycerol tricaprylate, Kokosfettalkohol- caprate / caprylate (Cetiol ® LC)
  • n-butyl stearate oleyl erucate
  • isopropyl palmitate IPP Rilanit ®
  • oleyl Oleate Cetiol ®
  • hexyl laurate Cetiol ® A
  • di-n-butyl adipate Cetiol ® B
  • myrist IPM Rilanit ®
  • Dicarboxylic acid esters such as di-n-butyl adipate, di- (2-ethylhexyl) adipate, di- (2-ethylhexyl) succinate and di-isotridecyl acelate
  • diol esters such as ethylene glycol dioleate, ethylene glycol diisotridecanoate, propylene glycol di (2- ethylhexanoate), propylene glycol diisostearate,
  • Mono, - di- and trifatty acid esters of saturated and / or unsaturated linear and / or branched fatty acids with glycerol such as Monomuls 90-018 ®, Monomuls 90 L12 ® or Cutina ® MD.
  • the amount used is 0.1-50 wt.% Based on the total agent, preferably 0.1 to 20 wt.% And particularly preferably 0.1 to 15 wt.% Based on the total agent.
  • the total amount of oil and fat components in the compositions according to the invention is usually from 6 to 45% by weight, based on the total agent. Amounts of 10-35% by weight are preferred according to the invention.
  • the agents according to the invention additionally contain at least one hydroxycarboxylic acid ester.
  • Preferred hydroxycarboxylic acid esters are full esters of glycolic acid, lactic acid, malic acid, Tartaric acid or citric acid.
  • Further basically suitable hydroxycarboxylic esters are esters of ⁇ -hydroxypropionic acid, tartronic acid, D-gluconic acid, sugar acid, mucic acid or glucuronic acid.
  • Suitable alcohol components of these esters are primary, linear or branched aliphatic alcohols having 8-22 C atoms, ie, for example, fatty alcohols or synthetic fatty alcohols.
  • the esters of Ci 2 -Ci 5 fatty alcohols are particularly preferred.
  • Esters of this type are commercially available, eg under the trademark Cosmacol® ® EniChem, Augusta Industriale.
  • the amount of hydroxycarboxylic acid ester used is 0.1-15% by weight, based on the agent, preferably 0.1-10% by weight, and very particularly preferably 0.1-5% by weight.
  • the agents additionally contain at least one alkalizing agent.
  • the alkalizing agents usable in the present invention are preferably selected from the group consisting of ammonia, basic amino acids, alkali hydroxides, alkanolamines, alkali metal metasilicates, urea, morpholine, N-methylglucamine, imidazole, alkali phosphates and alkali hydrogen phosphates.
  • the alkali metal ions used are preferably lithium, sodium, potassium, in particular sodium or potassium.
  • the basic amino acids which can be used as alkalizing agents according to the invention are preferably selected from the group formed from L-arginine, D-arginine, D, L-arginine, L-histidine, D-histidine, D, L-histidine, L-lysine, D-lysine, D, L-lysine, more preferably L-arginine, D-arginine, D, L-arginine used as an alkalizing agent according to the invention.
  • the alkali metal hydroxides which can be used as the alkalizing agent according to the invention are preferably selected from the group formed from sodium hydroxide and potassium hydroxide.
  • alkanolamines which can be used as alkalizing agents according to the invention are preferably selected from primary amines having a C 2 -C 6 -alkyl basic body which carries at least one hydroxyl group.
  • Particularly preferred alkanolamines are selected from the group formed from 2-aminoethan-1-ol (monoethanolamine), 3-aminopropan-1-ol, 4-aminobutan-1-ol, 5-aminopentan-1-ol, 1 -Aminopropan-2-ol, 1-aminobutan-2-ol, 1-aminopentan-2-ol, 1-aminopentan-3-ol, 1-aminopentan-4-ol, 3-amino-2-methylpropan-1-ol , 1-amino-2-methylpropan-2-ol, 3-aminopropane-1, 2-diol, 2-amino-2-methylpropane-1,3-diol.
  • Very particularly preferred alkanolamines according to the invention are selected from the group consisting of 2-aminoethane-1-ol, 2-amino-2-methylpropan-1-ol and 2-amino-2-methylpropane-1,3-diol.
  • the alkalizing agent is more preferably selected from at least one compound from the group formed from 2-aminoethanol, 2-amino-2-methylpropan-1-ol, 2-amino-2-methyl-propane-1,3-diol, Potassium hydroxide, L-arginine, D-arginine, DL-arginine, N-methylglucamine, morpholine, imidazole and urea.
  • the agents according to the invention should additionally contain at least one UV light protection filter.
  • UV light protection filters are meant organic substances capable of absorbing ultraviolet rays and absorbing the absorbed energy in the form of longer wavelength radiation, e.g. Heat again.
  • UVB filters can be oil-soluble or water-soluble. As oil-soluble substances are e.g. to call:
  • 4-aminobenzoic acid derivatives preferably 2-ethylhexyl 4- (dimethylamino) benzoate, 2-octyl 4- (dimethylamino) benzoate and A-
  • esters of cinnamic acid preferably 2-ethylhexyl 4-methoxycinnamate, A-
  • Esters of salicylic acid preferably 2-ethylhexyl salicylate, 4-isopropylbenzyl salicylate, homomenthyl salicylate;
  • Esters of benzalmalonic acid preferably di-2-ethylhexyl 4-methoxybenzmalonate
  • Triazine derivatives e.g. 2,4,6-Trianilino- (p-carbo-2'-ethyl-1'-hexyloxy) -1, 3,5-triazine and
  • Propane-1,3-diones e.g. 1- (4-tert-butylphenyl) -3- (4'-methoxyphenyl) propane-1,3-dione;
  • Suitable water-soluble substances are:
  • Sulfonic acid derivatives of benzophenones preferably 2-hydroxy-4-methoxybenzophenone-5-sulfonic acid and its salts
  • Sulfonic acid derivatives of 3-Benzylidencamphers such as 4- (2-oxo-3-bornylidenemethyl) benzenesulfonic acid and 2-methyl-5- (2-oxo-3-bomylidene) sulfonic acid and salts thereof.
  • UV-A filter in particular derivatives of benzoylmethane come into question, such as 1- (4'-tert-butylphenyl) -3- (4'-methoxyphenyl) propane-1, 3-dione or 1-phenyl-3 (4'-isopropylphenyl) -propane-1,3-dione.
  • the UV-A and UV-B filters can also be used in mixtures.
  • insoluble pigments are also suitable for this purpose, namely finely dispersed metal oxides or salts, for example titanium dioxide, zinc oxide, iron oxide, aluminum oxide, cerium oxide, zirconium oxide, silicates (talc), barium sulfate and zinc stearate.
  • the particles should have an average diameter of less than 100 nm, preferably between 5 and 50 nm and in particular between 15 and 30 nm. They may have a spherical shape, but it is also possible to use those particles which have an ellipsoidal or otherwise deviating shape from the spherical shape.
  • secondary light stabilizers of the antioxidant type which interrupt the photochemical reaction chain which is triggered when UV radiation penetrates into the skin. Typical examples are superoxide dismutase, tocopherols (vitamin E) and ascorbic acid (vitamin C).
  • Suitable plant extracts are obtained by extraction with organic solvents (such as, for example, ethanol, isopropanol, diethyl ether, benzene, benzene, chloroform) or by steam distillation.
  • organic solvents such as, for example, ethanol, isopropanol, diethyl ether, benzene, benzene, chloroform
  • preferred plant extracts are extracts of flowers (linden flowers, camomiles, lily, lavender, roses, jasmine, neroli, ylang-ylang), stems and leaves (cassis, horse chestnut, rooibos, birch, lemon balm, clover, grape leaves, geranium, patchouli, petitgrain ), Fruits (anise, cassis, coriander, caraway, juniper), fruit peel (bergamot, lemon, orange), roots (mace, angelica, celery, cardamom, costus, iris, calmus), wood (
  • the plant extracts are particularly preferably selected from at least one extract from the group hamamelis (Hamamelis virginiana L.), vine leaves (Vitis vinifera L.), roses (Rosa gallica L.), sandalwood (Pterocarpus Santalinus), rooibos (Aspalathus linearis), horse chestnut (Aesculus Hippocastanum L.), clover (especially red clover, Trifolium pratense), cinnamon (Cinnamomum zeylanicum nees) and cassis (especially from Cassis leaves, Ribes nigrum L).
  • Such extracts are preferably used are marketed under the names Herbasol ® by the company Cosmetochem or Extrapone ® by the company Symrise.
  • the plant extracts are contained in the agent according to the invention preferably in an amount of 0.05 to 5 wt .-%, in particular 0.1 to 2 wt .-%, each based on the weight of the total composition.
  • the cosmetic agents may contain further active ingredients, auxiliaries and additives, such as, for example, nonionic polymers such as, for example, vinylpyrrolidone / vinyl acrylate copolymers,
  • Structural agents such as maleic acid and lactic acid, hair conditioning compounds such as phospholipids, for example soya lecithin, egg lecithin and cephalins,
  • Solvents and mediators such as ethanol, isopropanol, ethylene glycol, propylene glycol, glycerol and diethylene glycol, fiber structure-improving agents, in particular mono-, di- and oligosaccharides such as glucose, galactose, fructose, fructose and lactose, quaternized amines such as methyl-1-alkylamidoethyl -2-alkylimidazolinium methosulfate
  • Anti-dandruff agents such as Piroctone Olamine, Zinc Omadine and Climbazole,
  • Active ingredients such as allantoin, pyrrolidonecarboxylic acids and their salts, and bisabolol, Vitamins, provitamins and vitamin precursors, in particular those of groups A, B 3 , B 5 , B 6 ,
  • Plant extracts such as extracts of green tea, oak bark, stinging nettle, witch hazel,
  • Spruce needle horse chestnut, sandalwood, juniper, coconut, mango, apricot, lime,
  • Bodying agents such as sugar esters, polyol esters or polyol alkyl ethers,
  • Swelling and penetration substances such as glycerol, propylene glycol monoethyl ether, carbonates,
  • Opacifiers such as latex, styrene / PVP and styrene / acrylamide copolymers
  • Pearlescing agents such as ethylene glycol mono- and distearate and PEG-3-distearate,
  • Propellants such as propane-butane mixtures, N 2 O, dimethyl ether, CO 2 and air,
  • a second aspect of the invention is the use of luminescent pigments which have a visible light excitable luminescence for dyeing substrates, in particular for dyeing textiles and / or for coloring human hair and / or for coloring skin and / or for coloring fingernails.
  • a third object of the invention is the use of luminescent pigments, which exhibit a visible light excitable luminescence, to increase the color brilliance of Dyeings, in particular dyeings on textiles and / or dyeings on human hair and / or dyeings on the skin and / or dyeings on fingernails.
  • a fourth object of the invention is the use of luminescent pigments that exhibit visible light excitable luminescence to improve the luster of keratinous fibers, especially human hair.
  • a fifth object of the invention is the use of luminescent pigments which exhibit visible light excitable luminescence for the optical whitening of substrates, in particular of textiles and / or human hair and / or skin.
  • a sixth aspect of the invention is a process for the color change of substrates, in particular of textiles and / or of human hair and / or the skin, characterized in that an agent of the first subject of the invention is applied to the substrate.
  • the substrate may be sprayed for fixing with an agent containing at least one film-forming polymer, preferably sprayed.
  • a spectrometer of the type "Fluorolog-3 Spectrofluorometer FL3-22" from Jobin Yvon (USA) with photomultiplier, two monochromators and a 450 W xenon light source was used.
  • the diagrams of Figure 1 and Figure 2 show the resulting absorption-emission spectra.
  • the respective emission curve corresponds to the complete emission of the luminescence pigments when irradiated with light in the wavelength range of 300 nm to 800 nm.
  • the wavelength of the irradiated light was successively changed and the intensity of the emission of light of the wavelength of the emission maximum (here always 640 nm ) is plotted against the wavelength of the incident light. It can be clearly seen that when the light is irradiated with a wavelength of 540 nm, the excited emission has an intensity maximum. 3.0 recipes
  • Stenol 16/18 ® C 16-i 8 fatty alcohol (INCI name: Cetearyl Alcohol) (Cognis) 16 Lorol ® INCI name: Cetyl Alcohol (Cognis) Eumulgin ® B1 Cetylstearylakohol with 12 EO units
  • Eumulgin ® B2 Cetylstearylalkohol with about 20 EO units (INCI name: Ceteareth-20) (Cognis Germany)
  • Laurylmyristylethersulfat sodium salt (ca. 68% to 73% active substance content '; INCI name: Sodium Myreth Sulfate) (Cognis)
  • Disponil FES 77 IS ® fatty alcohol ether sulfate (ca. 31-33% active substance content in water; INCI name: Sodium Sulfate Coceth-30) (Cognis) Akypo Soft 45 NV ® 2- (C 12 -i 4 fatty alcohol ethoxylate (4.5 EO)) acetic acid sodium salt; 21% active substance; INCI name: Sodium Laureth-5 Carboxylate (KAO)
  • Gluadin ® W 40 wheat protein hydrolyzate (at least 40% solids, INCI name: Aqua (Water), Hydrolyzed Wheat Protein, Sodium Benzoate, Phenoxyethanol, Methylparaben, Propylparaben) (Cognis)
  • Plantacare ® 1200 UP C 12 fatty alcohol -i 6-1.4-glucoside (approximately 50-53% active substance content; INCI name: Lauryl Glucoside, Aqua (Water)) (Cognis) Lamesoft ® PO 65 alkylpolyglucoside monoglyceride mixture (about 65 -70% solids; INCI name: Coco-Glucoside, Glyceryl Oleate, Aqua (Water)) (Cognis) Table continued Aculyn ® 33 30 wt .-% of active substance in water (INCI name: Acrylates Copolymer) (Rohm & Haas)
  • the quantities are, unless otherwise indicated, wt .-% based on the total weight of the respective recipe.
  • Bleaching agents B1, B2 and B3 each consist of a bleaching cream and an associated developer, and a bleach booster.
  • 50 g of the bleaching agent were added to 50 g of the corresponding bleaching cream. With stirring, 20 g of the corresponding developer was added. When applied to hair and exposed for 30 minutes, excellent rinsing was observed after rinsing and drying.
  • a tinting cream of Table 3.2.1 50 g were mixed with stirring with 50 g of a developer according to Table 3.2.2. From each staining cream, three different mixtures were prepared with the help of one of the three developers according to Table 3.2.2. It resulted from each dyeing cream 3 different application mixtures, which differed only in the content of hydrogen peroxide. When applied to the hair of the head and with a contact time of 30 minutes, after rinsing and drying with each application mixture, an excellent dyeing result or for F6 brightening result was achieved.

Abstract

The invention relates to colouring agents which contain as least one luminescent pigment in a carrier as a chromophoric component. The luminescence of the pigment is stimulated by absorption of visible light thus producing brilliant, luminous colours giving a gloss effect. The invention relates to, in particular, inorganic pigments comprising host materials from sulfides or oxide sulfides of lanthanoids which are in turn doted with at least one rare earth metal. Said colouring agents can be used, in particular, in the cosmetic industry for colouring materials containing keratin such as skin, hair and finger nails.

Description

"Färbemittel, enthaltend durch sichtbares Licht anregbare Lumineszenzpigmente" "Colorants containing visible light excitable luminescent pigments"
Die vorliegende Erfindung betrifft Färbemittel, die in einem Träger als farbgebende Komponente Lumineszenzpigmente enthalten, wobei eine Lumineszenz der Lumineszenzpigmente durch Absorption von sichtbarem Licht angeregt wird. Ferner betrifft die Erfindung ein Färbeverfahren und die Verwendung dieser Lumineszenzpigmente zur Färbung, Glanzverbesserung, optischen Aufhellung sowie zur Verbesserung der Farbbrillanz von Substraten.The present invention relates to colorants which contain luminescent pigments in a carrier as the colorant component, wherein luminescence of the luminescent pigments is excited by absorption of visible light. Furthermore, the invention relates to a dyeing process and the use of these luminescent pigments for coloring, gloss improvement, optical brightening and to improve the color brilliance of substrates.
Oftmals verspüren wir aus modischem oder technischem Ansporn heraus die Notwendigkeit, Substrate in Ihrer Farbe zu verändern. Besondere Beachtung finden im Rahmen einer solchen Farbveränderung häufig leuchtende Farben, da diese die Aufmerksamkeit des Betrachters auf sich ziehen. Dies gilt insbesondere auf dem Gebiet der Sicherheit, der Textilveredelung oder der Kosmetik.Often we feel the need to change substrates in your color, for fashionable or technical reasons. Particular attention is given in the context of such a color change often bright colors, as they attract the attention of the beholder. This applies in particular in the field of safety, textile finishing or cosmetics.
Die Beschichtung beziehungsweise Färbung von Gegenständen wie z.B. von Verkehrsschildern oder Sicherheitskleidung mit Lichtreflektoren leistet bisher einen Beitrag zur gesteigerten Erkennung von Gefahren oder von Gegenständen in der Dunkelheit. Dies funktioniert jedoch nur dann, wenn die Gegenstände mit Licht angestrahlt werden. Wenn das von den auf diese Weise markierten Gegenständen zurückgestrahlte Licht eine stärkere Intensität oder etwa Rot als eine bestimmte Signalfarbe besäße, dann ließe sich der Warneffekt erhöhen.The coating or coloring of articles such as e.g. Road signs or safety clothing with light reflectors has so far made a contribution to the increased detection of hazards or objects in the dark. However, this only works if the objects are illuminated with light. If the light reflected back from the objects marked in this way had a stronger intensity or red than a certain signal color, then the warning effect could be increased.
In der Textilbehandlung ist die optische Aufhellung von insbesondere weißen Textilien im Rahmen einer Textilwäsche von Interesse. Optische Aufheller (sogenannte „Weißtöner") können Wasch- oder Reinigungsmitteln zugesetzt werden, um Vergrauungen und Vergilbungen der behandelten textilen Flächengebilde zu beseitigen. Diese Stoffe ziehen auf die Faser auf und bewirken eine Aufhellung und vorgetäuschte Bleichwirkung, indem sie unsichtbare Ultraviolettstrahlung in sichtbares längerwelliges Licht umwandeln, wobei das aus dem Sonnenlicht absorbierte ultraviolette Licht als schwach bläuliche Fluoreszenz abgestrahlt wird und mit dem Gelbton der vergrauten bzw. vergilbten Wäsche reines Weiß ergibt. Geeignete Verbindungen stammen beispielsweise aus den Substanzklassen der 4,4'-Diamino-2,2'- stilbendisulfonsäuren (Flavonsäuren), 4,4'-Distyryl-biphenylen, Methylumbelliferone, Cumarine, Dihydrochinolinone, 1 ,3-Diarylpyrazoline, Naphthalsäureimide, Benzoxazol-, Benzisoxazol- und Benzimidazol-Systeme sowie der durch Heterocyclen substituierten Pyrenderivate. Kosmetische Farbveränderungen gehen meist mit der Färbung der Haut, wie z.B. den Wangen, dem Lid sowie den Lippen, oder den Nägeln bzw. den Haaren mit Farbveränderungsmitteln einher. Brillante Färbungen mit Leuchtkraft oder Glanzeffekten finden durch den Verbraucher den Vorzug. Leuchteffekte können auf verschiedenen Wegen, etwa durch Lichtreflexion oder durch aktive Emission von sichtbarem Licht hervorgerufen werden. Für Kosmetika, die unter UV-Licht (Schwarzlicht) den in der Literatur häufig beschriebenen Leuchteffekt in der Disko bewirken können, eignen sich Farbstoffe oder Pigmente, deren sichtbare Lumineszenz sich ausschließlich durch Licht im Wellenlängenbereich des UV-Lichts anregen lässt. Eine Färbung von Substraten unter Verwendung UV-aktiver Lumineszenzpigmente ist dem Fachmann folglich bekannt.In textile treatment, the optical brightening of, in particular, white textiles in the context of textile washing is of interest. Optical brighteners (so-called "whiteners") may be added to detergents to remove graying and yellowing of the treated fabrics which will attract the fiber and cause brightening and fake bleaching by turning invisible ultraviolet radiation into visible longer wavelength light convert the absorbed from sunlight ultraviolet light is radiated as a pale blue fluorescence and the yellow shade of the grayed or yellowed laundry to yield pure white Suitable compounds originate for example from the substance classes of the 4,4 'diamino-2,2'. - stilbenedisulfonic (flavonic), 4,4'-biphenylene -Distyryl, Methylumbelliferone, coumarins, dihydroquinolinones, 1, 3-diaryl pyrazolines, naphthalimides, benzoxazole, benzisoxazole, and benzimidazole systems, and pyrene derivatives substituted by heterocycles. Cosmetic color changes are usually associated with the coloring of the skin, such as the cheeks, the eyelid and the lips, or the nails or hair with color-changing agents. Brilliant colors with luminosity or gloss effects are preferred by the consumer. Luminous effects can be caused in various ways, such as by light reflection or by active emission of visible light. For cosmetics that can cause the often described in the literature under UV light (black light) glow effect in the disco dyes or pigments whose visible luminescence can be excited only by light in the wavelength range of UV light are. Coloring of substrates using UV-active luminescent pigments is therefore known to the person skilled in the art.
In der Druckschrift W0-A1 -2004/108108 werden kosmetische Zubereitungen beschrieben, die einen Farbstoff enthalten, welcher in unpolaren und polaren Lösemitteln unlöslich ist und unter UV-Licht Fluoreszenzeffekte ergibt.The document WO-A1-2004 / 108108 describes cosmetic preparations which contain a dye which is insoluble in non-polar and polar solvents and gives fluorescence effects under UV light.
Die Druckschrift EP-A1-1 129 701 betrifft kosmetische Mittel, die mindestens einen Chemolumineszenz-Farbstoff und ein Oxidationsmittel zur Auslösung der Chemolumineszenz enthalten.The document EP-A1-1 129 701 relates to cosmetic compositions containing at least one chemiluminescent dye and an oxidizing agent for triggering the chemiluminescence.
Aus der Druckschrift DE-A1-102 25 819 sind dem Fachmann Kosmetika bekannt, die einen Gehalt von oxidischen Nanoteilchen aufweisen, wobei diese Teilchen eine Fluoreszenz zeigen sollen.From the document DE-A1-102 25 819, the person skilled in cosmetics are known, which have a content of oxide nanoparticles, said particles are to show fluorescence.
Die Druckschrift W0-A1 -2006/011014 betrifft kosmetische Mittel, die mineralische, photolumineszierende Nanopartikel enthalten, welche aus lediglich einem anorganischen Material beschaffen sind, d.h. die betroffenen Nanopartikel stellen kein Agglomerat aus zwei unterschiedlichen Materialien dar.Document WO-A1-2006 / 011014 relates to cosmetic compositions containing mineral photoluminescent nanoparticles which are composed of only one inorganic material, i. the affected nanoparticles do not represent an agglomerate of two different materials.
Die Druckschrift FR-A1-2 885 521 hat kosmetische Mittel zum Gegenstand, die in einem physiologisch verträglichen Träger photolumineszierende Nanopigmente mit einem mittleren Teilchendurchmesser von höchstens 500 nm enthalten, wobei die besagten Nanopigmente mindestens ein Element der Seltenerdmetalle enthalten.The document FR-A1-2 885 521 relates to cosmetic compositions containing in a physiologically acceptable carrier photoluminescent nanopigments having an average particle diameter of at most 500 nm, wherein said nanopigments contain at least one element of rare earth metals.
Zusätzlich zu den bereits bekannten Lösungen wünscht sich der Anwender, Leuchteffekte oder Glanzeffekte auch in tagheller Umgebung erzielen zu können. Der Erfindung liegt folglich die Aufgabe zugrunde, die Leuchtkraft von existierenden oder frisch applizierten Färbungen, sowie die Brillanz von existierenden oder frisch applizierten Färbungen zu verbessern und/oder dem Substrat einen Glanzeffekt zu verleihen. Der Glanz- oder Leuchteffekt, sowie die Farbbrillanz soll insbesondere im Tageslicht oder im Licht handelsüblicher Leuchtmittel sichtbar sein. Diese Aufgabe vermögen die Zusammensetzungen des zitierten Standes der Technik nicht in hinreichendem Maße zu lösen.In addition to the already known solutions, the user wishes to be able to achieve luminous effects or gloss effects even in daylight surroundings. The invention is therefore based on the object to improve the luminosity of existing or freshly applied dyeings, as well as the brilliance of existing or freshly applied dyeings and / or to give the substrate a gloss effect. The gloss or luminous effect, as well as the color brilliance should be visible especially in daylight or in the light of commercial bulbs. This task can not sufficiently solve the compositions of the cited prior art.
Es wurde nun überraschenderweise gefunden, daß sich die Aufgabe in hervorragendem Maße durch Farbveränderungen mit Zusammensetzungen lösen lässt, die Lumineszenzpigmente umfassen, welche eine Lumineszenzanregung durch sichtbares Licht erfahren. Diese Mittel erlauben, daß die damit behandelten Substrate sogar bei Tageslicht eine erhöhte Aufmerksamkeit auf sich ziehen.It has now surprisingly been found that the problem can be solved to a great extent by color changes with compositions comprising luminescent pigments which undergo luminescence excitation by visible light. These agents allow the treated substrates to attract increased attention even in daylight.
Ein erster Gegenstand der Erfindung ist daher ein Mittel, enthaltend in einem Träger als farbgebende Komponente Lumineszenzpigmente, wobei eine Lumineszenz der Pigmente durch Absorption von sichtbarem Licht angeregt wird.A first subject of the invention is therefore an agent containing in a carrier as a coloring component luminescent pigments, wherein a luminescence of the pigments is excited by absorption of visible light.
Die erfindungsgemäß eingesetzten Lumineszenzpigmente werden in den erfindungsgemäßen Mitteln in einen Träger eingebettet. Dieser Träger kann bei den Anwendungsbedingungen als Feststoff oder in flüssiger Form vorliegen. Bevorzugt wird ein kosmetischer Träger verwendet, der physiologisch verträglich ist und bei topischer Anwendung auf bzw. topischem Kontakt mit einem gesunden, lebenden Organismus diesem keinen gesundheitlichen Schaden zufügt. Als kosmetische Träger eignen sich erfindungsgemäß besonders Cremes, Emulsionen, Gele oder auch tensidhaltige schäumende Lösungen, wie beispielsweise Shampoos, Schaumaerosole oder andere Zubereitungen, die insbesondere für die Anwendung auf Oberflächen, auf Haut und/oder auf dem Haar geeignet sind. Es ist aber auch denkbar, die Inhaltsstoffe in eine pulverförmige oder auch tablettenförmige Formulierung zu integrieren, welche vor der Anwendung in Wasser gelöst wird. Die kosmetischen Träger können insbesondere wässrig oder im speziellen Falle wässrig- alkoholisch sein.The luminescent pigments used according to the invention are embedded in a carrier in the compositions according to the invention. This support may be in the conditions of use as a solid or in liquid form. Preference is given to using a cosmetic carrier which is physiologically compatible and, when applied topically or topically to a healthy, living organism, does not cause any damage to its health. According to the invention, cosmetic creams, emulsions, gels or surfactant-containing foaming solutions, for example shampoos, foam aerosols or other preparations which are particularly suitable for use on surfaces, on the skin and / or on the hair, are particularly suitable as cosmetic carriers. But it is also conceivable to integrate the ingredients in a powdered or tablet-like formulation, which is dissolved in water before use. The cosmetic carriers may be aqueous or, in particular, aqueous-alcoholic, in particular.
Ein wässriger kosmetischer Träger enthält mindestens 40 Gew.-% Wasser.An aqueous cosmetic carrier contains at least 40% by weight of water.
Unter wässrig-alkoholischen kosmetischen Trägern sind im Sinne der vorliegenden Erfindung wasserhaltige Zusammensetzungen enthaltend 3 bis 70 Gew.-% eines Ci-C4-AIkOhOIs, insbesondere Ethanol bzw. Isopropanol, zu verstehen. Die erfindungsgemäßen Mittel können zusätzlich weitere organische Lösemittel, wie beispielsweise Methoxybutanol, Benzylalkohol, Ethyldiglykol oder 1 ,2-Propylenglykol, enthalten. Bevorzugt sind dabei alle wasserlöslichen organischen Lösemittel.For the purposes of the present invention, aqueous-alcoholic cosmetic carriers are to be understood as meaning water-containing compositions containing from 3 to 70% by weight of a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl alcohol, in particular ethanol or isopropanol. The agents according to the invention can additionally contain other organic solvents, such as methoxybutanol, benzyl alcohol, ethyl diglycol or 1, 2-propylene glycol. Preference is given to all water-soluble organic solvents.
Die Lumineszenz der bekannten Lumineszenzpigmente wird durch eine Anregung mit UV-Licht hervorgerufen. Der Fachmann kennt verschiedene Arten des UV-Lichts, nämlich UV A-Strahlung (315-400 nm), UV B-Strahlung (280-315nm) und UVC-Strahlung (<280 nm). Eine Lumineszenz der in den erfindungsgemäßen Mitteln enthaltenen Pigmente wird durch Absorption von sichtbarem Licht angeregt.The luminescence of the known luminescent pigments is caused by excitation with UV light. The person skilled in the art knows various types of UV light, namely UVA radiation (315-400 nm), UVB radiation (280-315 nm) and UVC radiation (<280 nm). A luminescence of the pigments contained in the agents according to the invention is excited by absorption of visible light.
Als „sichtbares Licht" im Sinne der Erfindung wird der Ausschnitt des Lichtspektrums definiert, der dem visuellen Bereich entspricht, d.h. Licht in einem Wellenlängenbereich zwischen 400 nm und 800 nm. Es ist jedoch bevorzugt, wenn sich eine Lumineszenz der Pigmente durch Absorption von Licht mit einer Wellenlänge zwischen 420 nm und 750 nm, insbesondere zwischen 450 nm und 750 nm, anregen lässt.As "visible light" in the context of the invention, the section of the light spectrum is defined, which corresponds to the visual range, ie light in a wavelength range between 400 nm and 800 nm. However, it is preferred if a luminescence of the pigments by absorption of light with a wavelength between 420 nm and 750 nm, in particular between 450 nm and 750 nm, can stimulate.
Darüber hinaus kann in den erfindungsgemäßen Pigmenten neben der beschriebenen Lumineszenzanregung durch sichtbares Licht zusätzlich eine Lumineszenz durch Absorption von Licht im UV-Bereich mit Wellenlängen von höchstens 400 nm angeregt werden.In addition, in the pigments according to the invention, in addition to the described luminescence excitation by visible light, luminescence can additionally be excited by absorption of light in the UV range with wavelengths of at most 400 nm.
Die Lumineszenz der erfindungsgemäß in den Mitteln enthaltenen Lumineszenzpigmente erfolgt durch Emission von sichtbarem Licht, d.h. Licht innerhalb eines Wellenlängenbereichs zwischen 400 nm und 800 nm. Die Wellenlänge des emittierten sichtbaren Lichts hat eine längere Wellenlänge als das zur Anregung der korrespondierenden Emission absorbierte sichtbare Licht.The luminescence of the luminescent pigments present in the compositions according to the invention is effected by emission of visible light, i. Light within a wavelength range between 400 nm and 800 nm. The wavelength of the emitted visible light has a longer wavelength than the visible light absorbed to excite the corresponding emission.
„Lumineszenzpigmente" sind im Sinne der Erfindung definiert als im Träger praktisch unlösliche, anorganische oder organische, bunte oder unbunte Verbindungen, die Energie absorbieren und dann als Licht emittieren."Luminescent pigments" are defined in the sense of the invention as in the carrier practically insoluble, inorganic or organic, colorful or achromatic compounds that absorb energy and then emit as light.
Unter „Lumineszenz" verstehen sich erfindungsgemäß Phosphoreszenz und/oder Fluoreszenz.By "luminescence" according to the invention phosphorescence and / or fluorescence.
Im Sinne der Erfindung bevorzugt eignen sich anorganische Lumineszenzpigmente, die mindestens ein Metallion aus der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus den Lanthanoiden, Lanthan, Scandium und Yttrium, enthalten. Die erfindungsgemäß bevorzugt nutzbaren Lumineszenzpigmente können amorph oder kristallin sein, oder zumindest kristalline Bereiche umfassen. Bevorzugt weisen die Lumineszenzpigmente kristalline Bereiche auf, in denen sich die Gitterelemente (z.B. Moleküle, Atome oder Ionen) in sich regelmäßig wiederholenden Elementarzellen räumlich unter Bildung eines dreidimensionalen Gitters anordnen.For the purposes of the invention, inorganic luminescent pigments which contain at least one metal ion from the group formed by the lanthanides, lanthanum, scandium and yttrium are preferred. The luminescence pigments preferably usable according to the invention may be amorphous or crystalline, or at least comprise crystalline regions. Preferably, the luminescent pigments have crystalline regions in which the lattice elements (eg molecules, atoms or ions) are arranged spatially in regularly repeating unit cells to form a three-dimensional lattice.
Besonders bevorzugt verwendbare Lumineszenzpigmente umfassen ein Wirtsmaterial und mindestens ein Dotierungselement. Ein Wirtsmaterial ist erfindungsgemäß definiert als Material, dessen Elemente in Teilen durch sogenannte Dotierungselemente ersetzt werden. Dotierungselemente sind von den das Wirtsmaterial formenden Elementen verschieden. Ist das Wirtsmaterial ganz oder teilweise kristallin, so werden dessen kristalline Bereiche als Wirtsgitter bezeichnet.Particularly preferably usable luminescent pigments comprise a host material and at least one doping element. A host material is defined according to the invention as a material whose elements are replaced in parts by so-called doping elements. Doping elements are different from the elements forming the host material. If the host material is wholly or partly crystalline, its crystalline regions are referred to as host lattices.
Es ist erfindungsgemäß bevorzugt, wenn das Wirtsmaterial des Lumineszenzpigments ausgewählt wird aus Sulfiden (insbesondere der Alpha-Phase, Beta-Phase oder Gamma-Phase der Sulfide) oder Oxidsulfiden eines Metalls, ausgewählt aus Scandium (bevorzugt Sc3+), Yttrium (bevorzugt Y3+), Lanthan (bevorzugt La3+), Cer (bevorzugt Ce3+), Praseodym (bevorzugt Pr3+), Neodym (bevorzugt Nd3+), Samarium (bevorzugt Sm3+), Europium (bevorzugt Eu2+oder Eu3+), Gadolinium (bevorzugt Gd3+), Terbium (bevorzugt Tb3+), Dysprosium (bevorzugt Dy3+), Holmium (bevorzugt Ho3+), Erbium (bevorzugt Er3+), Thulium (bevorzugt Tm3+), Ytterbium (bevorzugt Yb3+) oder Lutetium (bevorzugt Lu3+). Die erfindungsgemäßen Oxidsulfide umfassen dabei bevorzugt pro Formeleinheit eine größere Stoffmenge Schwefel als Sauerstoff. Das erfindungsgemäße Mittel kann eines oder mehrere Lumineszenzpigmente mit diesen vorgenannten Wirtsmaterialien enthalten.It is preferred according to the invention if the host material of the luminescence pigment is selected from sulfides (in particular the alpha phase, beta phase or gamma phase of the sulfides) or oxide sulfides of a metal selected from scandium (preferably Sc 3+ ), yttrium (preferably Y. 3+ ), lanthanum (preferably La 3+ ), cerium (preferably Ce 3+ ), praseodymium (preferably Pr 3+ ), neodymium (preferably Nd 3+ ), samarium (preferably Sm 3+ ), europium (preferably Eu 2+ or Eu 3+ ), gadolinium (preferably Gd 3+ ), terbium (preferably Tb 3+ ), dysprosium (preferably Dy 3+ ), holmium (preferably Ho 3+ ), erbium (preferably Er 3+ ), thulium (preferably Tm 3+ ), ytterbium (preferably Yb 3+ ) or lutetium (preferably Lu 3+ ). The oxide sulfides according to the invention preferably comprise per unit of formula a larger amount of sulfur than oxygen. The agent according to the invention may contain one or more luminescent pigments with these aforementioned host materials.
Besonders bevorzugt wird das Wirtsmaterial ausgewählt aus Sulfiden des Lanthans, des Scandiums, des Yttriums, des Praseodyms, des Neodyms, des Cers, des Samariums, des Gadoliniums oder des Lutetiums (insbesondere der Alpha-Phase, Beta-Phase oder Gamma- Phase der Sulfide) oder Oxidsulfiden des Lanthans, des Scandiums, des Yttriums, des Praseodyms, des Neodyms, des Cers, des Samariums, des Gadoliniums oder des Lutetiums. Besonders bevorzugt wird das Wirtsmaterial ausgewählt aus YSx, YS, Y2S3 , Y2OS2, Y2S3Oi2, oCo, oC-| 37θ, 0C2O3, 0C2O2O, OC2O3Oi2, Lao, Laoi594, La4Oz, La2O3, Lao2, Lasoz, (La2o3)5i333, (La2S3)5 4, (La2S3)s 24, La2 6OzS4, La2O6S, La2O2S2, La2O2S, La-i ,90O2 ,i3,Oo,84, La-ιoOo,45S-ι4i55, LaioOo,5Si4 5, La-ιoOS-14, GdS, GdS2, Gd3S4, Gd2S3, Gdo.gszS, Gd2OS2, Gd2O2S, Gd-ιoOSi4, LuS, Lu2S3, Lu3S4, Lu36 32S48 oder Lu2O2S. Die erfindungsgemäßen Oxidsulfide umfassen dabei bevorzugt pro Formeleinheit eine größere Stoffmenge Schwefel als Sauerstoff.The host material is particularly preferably selected from sulfides of lanthanum, scandium, yttrium, praseodymium, neodymium, cerium, samarium, gadolinium or lutetium (in particular the alpha phase, beta phase or gamma phase of the sulfides ) or oxide sulfides of lanthanum, scandium, yttrium, praseodymium, neodymium, cerium, samarium, gadolinium or lutetium. Particularly preferably, the host material is selected from YS x , YS, Y 2 S 3 , Y 2 OS 2 , Y 2 S 3 Oi 2 , oCo, oC- | 37 θ, 0C 2 O 3 , 0C 2 O 2 O, OC 2 O 3 Oi 2 , Lao, Laoi 594 , La 4 Oz, La 2 O 3 , Lao 2 , Lasoz, (La 2 O 3 ) 5i333 , (La 2 S 3 ) 5 4 , (La 2 S 3 ) s 24 , La 2 6O zS 4 , La 2 O 6 S, La 2 O 2 S 2 , La 2 O 2 S, La-i , 90 O 2, i 3 , Oo , 84 , La-OoOo , 45 S- 4i55 , LaioOo , 5 Si 4 5 , La-IOOS- 14 , GdS, GdS 2 , Gd 3 S 4 , Gd 2 S 3 , Gdo.gszS, Gd 2 OS 2 , Gd 2 O 2 S, Gd-IOOSi 4 , LuS, Lu 2 S 3 , Lu 3 S 4 , Lu 36 32 S 48 or Lu 2 O 2 S. The oxide sulfides according to the invention preferably comprise per unit of formula a larger amount of sulfur than oxygen.
Die Beta-Phase der Sulfide der Metalle Scandium (bevorzugt Sc3+), Yttrium (bevorzugt Y3+), Lanthan (bevorzugt La3+), Cer (bevorzugt Ce3+), Praseodym (bevorzugt Pr3+), Neodym (bevorzugt Nd3+), Samarium (bevorzugt Sm3+), Europium (bevorzugt Eu3+), Gadolinium (bevorzugt Gd3+), Terbium (bevorzugt Tb3+), Dysprosium (bevorzugt Dy3+), Holmium (bevorzugt Ho3+), Erbium (bevorzugt Er3+), Thulium (bevorzugt Tm3+), Ytterbium (bevorzugt Yb3+) oder Lutetium (bevorzugt Lu3+) (insbesondere die Beta-Phase der Sulfide der Metalle Lanthan (bevorzugt La3+), Cer (bevorzugt Ce3+), Praseodym (bevorzugt Pr3+), Neodym (bevorzugt Nd3+), Gadolinium (bevorzugt Gd3+), Samarium (bevorzugt Sm3+), eignen sich dabei wiederum besonders gut als Wirtsmaterial. Das erfindungsgemäße Mittel kann eines oder mehrere Lumineszenzpigmente mit diesen vorgenannten Wirtsmaterialien enthalten.The beta phase of the sulfides of the metals scandium (preferably Sc 3+ ), yttrium (preferably Y 3+ ), lanthanum (preferably La 3+ ), cerium (preferably Ce 3+ ), praseodymium (preferably Pr 3+ ), neodymium ( preferably Nd 3+ ), samarium (preferably Sm 3+ ), europium (preferably Eu 3+ ), gadolinium (preferably Gd 3+ ), terbium (preferably Tb 3+ ), dysprosium (preferably Dy 3+ ), holmium (preferably Ho 3+ ), erbium (preferably Er 3+ ), thulium (preferably Tm 3+ ), ytterbium (preferably Yb 3+ ) or lutetium (preferably Lu 3+ ) (in particular the beta phase of the sulfides of the metals lanthanum (preferably La 3 + ), Cerium (preferably Ce 3+ ), praseodymium (preferably Pr 3+ ), neodymium (preferably Nd 3+ ), gadolinium (preferably Gd 3+ ), samarium (preferably Sm 3+ ), are again particularly well suited The agent according to the invention may contain one or more luminescent pigments with these aforementioned host materials.
Die Beta-Phase („ß-M2S3") der Metalle M = Lanthan (bevorzugt La3+), Cer (bevorzugt Ce3+), Praseodym (bevorzugt Pr3+), Neodym (bevorzugt Nd3+), Gadolinium (bevorzugt Gd3+) oder Samarium (bevorzugt Sm3+), insbesondere M = Lanthan (bevorzugt La3+), stellen im Sinne der Erfindung ganz besonders bevorzugte Wirtsmaterialien dar. Die Beta-Phase der oben genannten Metalle charakterisiert sich dadurch, daß sie aufgrund Ihrer Affinität zu Sauerstoff pro Formeleinheit stets ein Sauerstoffatom pro 10 Metallatome und pro 14 Schwefelatome enthält. Die Beta-Phase der oben genannten Metalle gehorcht daher korrekterweise der Summenformel M10OSi4 (mit bevorzugt M = La, Ce, Pr, Nd oder Sm).The beta phase ("β-M 2 S 3 ") of the metals M = lanthanum (preferably La 3+ ), cerium (preferably Ce 3+ ), praseodymium (preferably Pr 3+ ), neodymium (preferably Nd 3+ ), Gadolinium (preferably Gd 3+ ) or samarium (preferably Sm 3+ ), in particular M = lanthanum (preferably La 3+ ), represent very particularly preferred host materials in the context of the invention. The beta phase of the abovementioned metals is characterized by that it always contains one oxygen atom per 10 metal atoms and per 14 sulfur atoms owing to its affinity for oxygen per formula unit The beta phase of the abovementioned metals therefore obeys the molecular formula M 10 OSi 4 (with preferably M = La, Ce, Pr, Nd or Sm).
Besonders bevorzugte Lumineszenzpigmente basierend auf der Beta-Phase der vorgenannten Sulfide umfasst wiederum bevorzugt kristalline Bereiche von M10OS14, mit Kristalliten, die eine Elementarzelle der tetragonalen Raumgruppe der Nummer 142 (I 4-ι/acd) (Nummerierung gemäß International Tables for Christallography, Vol.A, Ed. Theo Hahn, 4th revised Edition, Kluwer Academic Publishers, Dordecht, Boston, London, 1995, Seiten 476-480) mit 8 Formeleinheiten M10OS14 pro Elementarzelle aufweisen. Die Gitterkonstanten der Elementarzelle dieser bevorzugten kristallinen Bereiche betragen: a im Bereich von 1485 bis 1537 pm, c im Bereich von 1974 bis 2038 pm und das Volumen im Bereich von 328 bis 362 cm3/mol. In dieser bevorzugten Elementarzelle existieren drei kristallographisch unterscheidbare Metallzentren.Particularly preferred luminescent pigments based on the beta phase of the abovementioned sulfides in turn preferably comprise crystalline regions of M 10 OS 14 , with crystallites having a unit cell of the tetragonal space group number 142 (I 4-ι / acd) (numbering according to International Tables for Christallography Vol. A, Ed. Theo Hahn, 4th revised Edition, Kluwer Academic Publishers, Dordecht, Boston, London, 1995, pages 476-480) with 8 formula units M 10 OS 14 per unit cell. The lattice constants of the unit cell of these preferred crystalline regions are: a in the range of 1485 to 1537 pm, c in the range of 1974 to 2038 pm and the volume in the range of 328 to 362 cm 3 / mol. In this preferred unit cell exist three crystallographically distinguishable metal centers.
Das Wirtsmaterial [insbesondere der Sulfide oder Oxidsulfide eines Metalls, ausgewählt aus Scandium (bevorzugt Sc3+), Yttrium (bevorzugt Y3+), Lanthan (bevorzugt La3+), Cer (bevorzugt Ce3+), Praseodym (bevorzugt Pr3+), Neodym (bevorzugt Nd3+), Samarium (bevorzugt Sm3+), Europium (bevorzugt Eu3+), Gadolinium (bevorzugt Gd3+), Terbium (bevorzugt Tb3+), Dysprosium (bevorzugt Dy3+), Holmium (bevorzugt Ho3+), Erbium (bevorzugt Er3+), Thulium (bevorzugt Tm3+), Ytterbium (bevorzugt Yb3+) oder Lutetium (bevorzugt Lu3+), (besonders bevorzugt ausgewählt aus Scandium (bevorzugt Sc3+), Yttrium (bevorzugt Y3+), Lanthan (bevorzugt La3+), Praseodym (bevorzugt Pr3+), Neodym (bevorzugt Nd3+), Samarium (bevorzugt Sm3+), Gadolinium (bevorzugt Gd3+) oder Lutetium (bevorzugt Lu3+))] wird bevorzugt mit Dotierungselementen dotiert, die ausgewählt werden aus mindestens einem Metallion mindestens eines Metalls des Periodensystems der Elemente, das aus einer oder mehrerer der Gruppen 3, 4, 5, 6, 7, 8, 9, 10, 11 , 12 und/oder aus den Lanthanoiden stammt. Es ist selbstredend gemäß Definition eines Dotierungselements, dass das als Dotierungselement gewählte Metall verschieden von dem Metall des Wirtsmaterials ist.The host material [in particular the sulfides or oxide sulfides of a metal selected from scandium (preferably Sc 3+ ), yttrium (preferably Y 3+ ), lanthanum (preferably La 3+ ), cerium (preferably Ce 3+ ), praseodymium (preferably Pr 3 + ), Neodymium (preferably Nd 3+ ), samarium (preferably Sm 3+ ), Europium (preferably Eu 3+ ), gadolinium (preferably Gd 3+ ), terbium (preferably Tb 3+ ), dysprosium (preferably Dy 3+ ), holmium (preferably Ho 3+ ), erbium (preferably Er 3+ ), thulium ( preferably Tm 3+ ), ytterbium (preferably Yb 3+ ) or lutetium (preferably Lu 3+ ), (particularly preferably selected from scandium (preferably Sc 3+ ), yttrium (preferably Y 3+ ), lanthanum (preferably La 3+ ) , Praseodymium (preferably Pr 3+ ), neodymium (preferably Nd 3+ ), samarium (preferably Sm 3+ ), gadolinium (preferably Gd 3+ ) or lutetium (preferably Lu 3+ ))] are preferably doped with doping elements selected are from at least one metal ion of at least one metal of the Periodic Table of the Elements, which originates from one or more of the groups 3, 4, 5, 6, 7, 8, 9, 10, 11, 12 and / or from the lanthanides. It is of course, according to the definition of a doping element, that the metal chosen as the doping element is different from the metal of the host material.
Mindestens ein Dotierungselement wird bevorzugt ausgewählt aus mindestens einem Metallion mindestens eines der Metalle Cer, Praseodym, Neodym, Samarium, Europium, Gadolinium, Terbium, Dysprosium, Holmium, Erbium, Thulium, Ytterbium.At least one doping element is preferably selected from at least one metal ion of at least one of the metals cerium, praseodymium, neodymium, samarium, europium, gadolinium, terbium, dysprosium, holmium, erbium, thulium, ytterbium.
Dabei ist es wiederum bevorzugt, wenn das Dotierungselement ausgewählt wird aus mindestens einem Metallion aus Mn2+, Ce3+, Pr3+, Nd3+, Sm3+, Eu2+ , Eu3+, Gd3+, Tb3+, Dy3+, Ho3+, Er3+, Tm3+, Yb3+ oder Lu3+, ganz besonders bevorzugt aus mindestens einem Metallion aus Mn2+, Ce3+, Tb3+, Eu2+ oder Eu3+.In this case, it is again preferred if the doping element is selected from at least one metal ion of Mn 2+ , Ce 3+ , Pr 3+ , Nd 3+ , Sm 3+ , Eu 2+ , Eu 3+ , Gd 3+ , Tb 3 + , Dy 3+ , Ho 3+ , Er 3+ , Tm 3+ , Yb 3+ or Lu 3+ , most preferably from at least one metal ion of Mn 2+ , Ce 3+ , Tb 3+ , Eu 2+ or Eu 3+ .
Es ist ganz besonders bevorzugt, wenn das erfindungsgemäße Mittel solche Lumineszenzpigmente enthält, in denen als Wirtsmaterial die Beta-Phase des Lanthansulfids ist, die mit mindestens einem der oben genannten Metalle als Dotierungselement dotiert wurde.It is very particularly preferred if the agent according to the invention contains such luminescence pigments in which the host phase is the beta phase of the lanthanum sulfide which has been doped with at least one of the abovementioned metals as doping element.
Bei den erfindungsgemäß bevorzugten Dotierungen ist es wiederum bevorzugt, daß bei Metallbzw. Metallionen-haltigen Wirtsmaterialien einige Metalle bzw. Metallionen des Wirtsmaterials durch mindestens eines der zuvor genannten bevorzugten Dotierungselemente ersetzt werden. Wenn dieses Wirtsmaterial kristallin ist oder kristalline Bereiche besitzt, so können alle in dem Wirtsgitter kristallographisch unterscheidbaren Positionen der Metalle bzw. Metallionen des Wirtsgitters durch die Dotierung, das heißt durch einen Austausch mit dem Dotierungselement, betroffen sein.In the case of the inventively preferred dopants, it is again preferred that in Metallbzw. Metal ion-containing host materials some metals or metal ions of the host material are replaced by at least one of the aforementioned preferred doping elements. If this host material is crystalline or has crystalline regions, all crystallographically distinguishable positions of the metals or metal ions of the host lattice in the host lattice may be affected by the doping, that is, by exchange with the doping element.
Zur Lösung des Problems sind bevorzugt solche Lumineszenzpigmente mit Wirtsmaterial und Dotierungselement heranzuziehen, die einen Dotierungsgrad von 0,01 % bis 50,0 % aufweisen. Der Dotierungsgrad ist definiert als Stoffmenge all derjenigen Elemente des Wirtsmaterials angegeben in Molprozent, die durch Dotierungselemente ersetzt wurden. Eine ganz besonders effektive Lösung des Problems ergeben Färbungen mit Mitteln, die Lumineszenzpigmente enthalten, deren Wirtsmaterial mit einem Dortierungsgrad von 1 ,0 % bis 10,0 % mit Metallionen des Cers (bevorzugt Ce3+) dotiert ist. In dieser Ausführungsform ist es wiederum bevorzugt, solche Lumineszenzpigmente zu verwenden, deren Wirtsmaterial zusätzlich zur besagten 1 ,0 % bis 10,0 %igen Dotierung mit Metallionen des Cers mit einem Dotierungsgrad von 1 ,0 % bis 20,0 % mit Metallionen des Mangans dotiert sind.To solve the problem, preference is given to using those luminescent pigments with host material and doping element which have a degree of doping of 0.01% to 50.0%. The doping level is defined as the molar amount of all those elements of the host material expressed in mole percent that have been replaced by doping elements. A particularly effective solution to the problem is staining with agents containing luminescent pigments whose host material is doped with metal ions of the cerium (preferably Ce 3+ ) at a degree of leaching of 1.0% to 10.0%. In this embodiment, it is again preferable to use those luminescent pigments whose host material in addition to the said 1.0% to 10.0% doping with metal ions of the cerium with a degree of doping of 1.0% to 20.0% with metal ions of manganese are doped.
Weiterhin besonders ausgeprägte erfindungsgemäße Effekte können mit Mitteln erzielt werden, die Lumineszenzpigmente enthalten, deren Wirtsmaterial mit einem Dortierungsgrad von 1 ,0 % bis 15,0 % mit Metallionen des Europiums (bevorzugt Eu2+ oder Eu3+) dotiert ist.Furthermore, particularly pronounced effects of the invention can be achieved with agents containing luminescent pigments whose host material is doped with a degree of dosing of 1, 0% to 15.0% with metal ions of europium (preferably Eu 2+ or Eu 3+ ).
Ebenso besonders geeignet sind Mittel, die Lumineszenzpigmente enthalten, deren Wirtsmaterial mit einem Dortierungsgrad von 5,0 % bis 90,0 % mit Metallionen des Terbiums (bevorzugt Tb3+) dotiert ist.Also particularly suitable are agents which contain luminescent pigments whose host material is doped with a degree of doping of 5.0% to 90.0% with metal ions of terbium (preferably Tb 3+ ).
Im Sinne der Erfindung ganz besonders bevorzugte Lumineszenzpigmente mit Anregung durch sichtbares Licht sind solche, die als Wirtsmaterial La10 O Si4 umfassen, einen Dotierungsgrad von 0,01 % bis 20,0 %, insbesondere 2,0 % bis 15,0 %, aufweisen und mit mindestens einem Metallion als Dotierungselement dotiert sind, ausgewählt aus mindestens einem Metallion Ce3+, Pr3+, Nd3+, Sm3+, Eu2+, Eu3+, Gd3+, Tb3+, Dy3+, Ho3+, Er3+, Tm3+, Yb3+, Lu3+, ganz besonders bevorzugt aus mindestens einem Metallion ausgewählt aus Ce3+, Tb3+, Eu2+, Eu3+.Within the meaning of the invention very particularly preferred luminescent pigments with excitation by visible light are those which comprise La 10 O Si 4 as host material, a degree of doping of 0.01% to 20.0%, in particular 2.0% to 15.0%, and doped with at least one metal ion as doping element selected from at least one metal ion Ce 3+ , Pr 3+ , Nd 3+ , Sm 3+ , Eu 2+ , Eu 3+ , Gd 3+ , Tb 3+ , Dy 3 + , Ho 3+ , Er 3+ , Tm 3+ , Yb 3+ , Lu 3+ , most preferably from at least one metal ion selected from Ce 3+ , Tb 3+ , Eu 2+ , Eu 3+ .
Die besagten Lumineszenzpigmente besitzen bevorzugt einen mittleren Teilchendurchmesser von 1 103 m bis 1 10~10 m, insbesondere von 1 10~7 m bis 1 10~9 m.Said luminescent pigments preferably have an average particle diameter of 1 10 3 m to 1 10 ~ 10 m, in particular from 1 10 ~ 7 m to 1 10 ~ 9 m.
Das erfindungsgemäße Mittel enthält die besagten Lumineszenzpigmente bevorzugt in einer Menge von 0,01 Gew.-% bis 20,0 Gew.-%, besonders bevorzugt von 1 ,0 Gew.-% bis 10,0 Gew.- %, jeweils bezogen auf das Gewicht des anwendungsbereiten Mittels.The agent according to the invention preferably contains said luminescent pigments in an amount of from 0.01% by weight to 20.0% by weight, particularly preferably from 1.0% by weight to 10.0% by weight, based in each case on the weight of the ready-to-use agent.
Es können eine Art oder mehrere verschiedene Arten der erfindungsgemäß einsetzbaren Lumineszenzpigmente in den erfindungsgemäßen Mitteln enthalten sein. In dieser Ausführungsform unterscheiden sich die Arten der erfindungsgemäß einsetzbaren Lumineszenzpigmente in der Farbe des emittierten Lichts. Der gemeinsame Einsatz beispielsweise von rot lumineszierenden, blau lumineszierenden und grün lumineszierenden Lumineszenzpigmenten erscheint dem Betrachter als weißes Licht und wird erfindungsgemäß bevorzugt zur reinen optischen Aufhellung eingesetzt.One or more different types of luminescent pigments which can be used according to the invention can be present in the agents according to the invention. In this embodiment, the types of luminescent pigments which can be used according to the invention differ in the color of the emitted light. The common use of, for example, red luminescent, blue luminescent and green luminescent Luminescent pigments appear to the observer as white light and according to the invention are preferably used for pure optical brightening.
Es ist bevorzugt, das erfindungsgemäße Mittel mit einer herkömmlichen Farbveränderung diverser Substrate, beispielsweise als kosmetische Farbveränderung wie zum Beispiel die Färbung keratinhaltiger Fasern oder der Haut, zu kombinieren. Zu diesem Zweck enthalten die erfindungsgemäßen Mittel zusätzlich zu den zuvor beschriebenen Lumineszenzpigmenten mindestens eine weitere farbverändernde Komponente, die von den besagten Lumineszenzpigmenten verschieden ist. Die erzielten, konventionellen Färbungen erhalten auf diese Weise durch die Gegenwart der besagten Lumineszenzpigmente eine gesteigerte Leuchtkraft, eine höhere Brillanz und einen verbesserten Glanz.It is preferred to combine the composition according to the invention with a conventional color change of various substrates, for example as a cosmetic color change such as, for example, the coloring of keratin-containing fibers or of the skin. For this purpose, the agents according to the invention contain, in addition to the luminescence pigments described above, at least one further color-changing component which is different from said luminescent pigments. The obtained, conventional dyeings obtained in this way by the presence of said luminescent pigments increased luminosity, higher brilliance and improved gloss.
Die zusätzliche farbverändernde Komponente wird wiederum bevorzugt ausgewähltThe additional color-changing component is again preferably selected
(a) aus mindestens einem Oxidationsfarbstoffvorprodukt vom Typ der Entwicklerkomponenten und gegebenenfalls zusätzlich mindestens einer Kupplerkomponente und/oder(A) from at least one oxidation dye precursor of the type of developer components and optionally additionally at least one coupler component and / or
(b) aus Oxofarbstoffvorprodukten und/oder(b) from oxo dye precursors and / or
(c) aus mindestens einem direktziehenden Farbstoff und/oder(c) from at least one direct dye and / or
(d) aus mindestens einer Vorstufe naturanaloger Farbstoffe und/oder(D) from at least one precursor of natural dyes and / or
(e) aus mindestens einem Oxidationsmittel und gegebenenfalls mindestens einem Bleichverstärker.(e) at least one oxidizing agent and optionally at least one bleach booster.
Als Entwicklerkomponenten werden üblicherweise p-Phenylendiamin und seine Derivate, p- Aminophenol und seine Derivate, Pyrimidinderivate, Pyrazolderivate, Pyrazolopyrimidin-Derivate sowie heterozyklische Hydrazone eingesetzt.The developer components used are usually p-phenylenediamine and its derivatives, p-aminophenol and its derivatives, pyrimidine derivatives, pyrazole derivatives, pyrazolopyrimidine derivatives and heterocyclic hydrazones.
Es kann erfindungsgemäß bevorzugt sein, als Entwicklerkomponente ein p- Phenylendiaminderivat oder eines seiner physiologisch verträglichen Salze einzusetzen. Besonders bevorzugt sind p-Phenylendiaminderivate der Formel (E1 )
Figure imgf000011_0001
wobei
It may be preferred according to the invention to use as the developer component a p-phenylenediamine derivative or one of its physiologically acceptable salts. Particular preference is given to p-phenylenediamine derivatives of the formula (E1)
Figure imgf000011_0001
in which
G1 steht für ein Wasserstoffatom, einen (C1 bis C4)-Alkylrest, einen (C1 bis C4)- Monohydroxyalkylrest, einen (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylrest, einen (C1 bis C4)-Alkoxy-(C-ι bis C4)-alkylrest, einen 4'-Aminophenylrest oder einen (C1 bis C4)-Alkylrest, der mit einer stickstoffhaltigen Gruppe, einem Phenyl- oder einem 4'-Aminophenylrest substituiert ist; G2 steht für ein Wasserstoffatom, einen (C1 bis C4)-Alkylrest, einen (C1 bis C4)- Monohydroxyalkylrest, einen (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylrest, einen (C1 bis C4)-Alkoxy-(C-ι bis C4)-alkylrest oder einen (C1 bis C4)-Alkylrest, der mit einer stickstoffhaltigen Gruppe substituiert ist;G 1 represents a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 2 to C 4 ) -polyhydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy - (C 1 -C 4 ) -alkyl radical, a 4'-aminophenyl radical or a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical which is substituted by a nitrogen-containing group, a phenyl or a 4'-aminophenyl radical; G 2 represents a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 2 to C 4 ) -polyhydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy - (C 1 -C 4 ) -alkyl radical or a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical which is substituted by a nitrogen-containing group;
G3 steht für ein Wasserstoffatom, ein Halogenatom, wie ein Chlor-, Brom-, lod- oder Fluoratom, einen (C1 bis C4)-Alkylrest, einen (C1 bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylrest, einen (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylrest, einen (C1 bis C4)-Hydroxyalkoxyrest, einen (C1 bis C4)- Acetylaminoalkoxyrest, einen Mesylamino-(C-ι bis C4)-alkoxyrest oder einen (C1 bis C4)- Carbamoylaminoalkoxyrest;G 3 represents a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom such as a chlorine, bromine, iodine or fluorine atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 2 to alkoxy Acetylaminoalkoxyrest, a Mesylamino- (C-ι-C 4) or a (C 1 to C 4) - C 4) polyhydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4) -Hydroxyalkoxyrest, a (C 1 to C 4) - carbamoylaminoalkoxy radical;
G4 steht für ein Wasserstoffatom, ein Halogenatom oder einen (C1 bis C4)-Alkylrest oder wenn G3 und G4 in ortho-Stellung zueinander stehen, können sie gemeinsam eine verbrückende α,ω-Alkylendioxogruppe, wie beispielsweise eine Ethylendioxygruppe bilden.G 4 represents a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom or a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical or, when G 3 and G 4 are ortho to each other, they may together form a bridging α, ω-alkylenedioxo group, such as, for example, an ethylenedioxy group ,
Besonders bevorzugte p-Phenylendiamine der Formel (E1 ) werden ausgewählt aus einer oder mehrerer Verbindungen der Gruppe, die gebildet wird, aus p-Phenylendiamin, p-Toluylendiamin, 2-Chlor-p-phenylendiamin, 2,3-Dimethyl-p-phenylendiamin, 2,6-Dimethyl-p-phenylendiamin, 2,6- Diethyl-p-phenylendiamin, 2,5-Dimethyl-p-phenylendiamin, N,N-Dimethyl-p-phenylendiamin, N, N- Diethyl-p-phenylendiamin, N,N-Dipropyl-p-phenylendiamin, 4-Amino-3-methyl-(N,N-diethyl)-anilin, N,N-Bis-(ß-hydroxyethyl)-p-phenylendiamin, 4-N,N-Bis-(ß-hydroxyethyl)-amino-2-methylanilin, 4- N,N-Bis-(ß-hydroxyethyl)-amino-2-chloranilin, 2-(ß-Hydroxyethyl)-p-phenylendiamin, 2-(α,ß- Dihydroxyethyl)-p-phenylendiamin, 2-Fluor-p-phenylendiamin, 2-lsopropyl-p-phenylendiamin, N- (ß-Hydroxypropyl)-p-phenylendiamin, 2-Hydroxymethyl-p-phenylendiamin, N,N-Dimethyl-3- methyl-p-phenylendiamin, N,N-(Ethyl,ß-hydroxyethyl)-p-phenylendiamin, N-(ß,γ-Dihydroxypropyl)- p-phenylendiamin, N-(4'-Aminophenyl)-p-phenylendiamin, N-Phenyl-p-phenylendiamin, 2-(ß- Hydroxyethyloxy)-p-phenylendiamin, 2-(ß-Acetylaminoethyloxy)-p-phenylendiamin, N-(ß- Methoxyethyl)-p-phenylendiamin, N-(4-Amino-3-methylphenyl)-N-[3-(1 H-imidazol-1- yl)propyl]amin, 5,8-Diaminobenzo-1 ,4-dioxan sowie ihren physiologisch verträglichen Salzen.Particularly preferred p-phenylenediamines of formula (E1) are selected from one or more compounds of the group formed from p-phenylenediamine, p-toluenediamine, 2-chloro-p-phenylenediamine, 2,3-dimethyl-p-phenylenediamine , 2,6-dimethyl-p-phenylenediamine, 2,6-diethyl-p-phenylenediamine, 2,5-dimethyl-p-phenylenediamine, N, N-dimethyl-p-phenylenediamine, N, N-diethyl-p-phenylenediamine , N, N-dipropyl-p-phenylenediamine, 4-amino-3-methyl- (N, N-diethyl) -aniline, N, N-bis (β-hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, 4-N, N Bis (β-hydroxyethyl) amino-2-methylaniline, 4-N, N-bis (β-hydroxyethyl) amino-2-chloroaniline, 2- (β-hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, 2- (β-hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine α, β-dihydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, 2-fluoro-p-phenylenediamine, 2-isopropyl-p-phenylenediamine, N- (β-hydroxypropyl) -p-phenylenediamine, 2-hydroxymethyl-p-phenylenediamine, N, N Dimethyl 3-methyl-p-phenylenediamine, N, N- (ethyl, β-hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, N- (β, γ-dihydroxypropyl) -p-phenylenediamine, N- (4'-aminophenyl) p-phenylenediamine, N-phenyl p-phenylenediamine, 2- (β-hydroxyethyloxy) -p-phenylenediamine, 2- (β-acetylaminoethyloxy) -p-phenylenediamine, N- (β-) Methoxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, N- (4-amino-3-methylphenyl) -N- [3- (1H-imidazol-1-yl) propyl] amine, 5,8-diaminobenzo-1, 4-dioxane, and their physiologically acceptable salts.
Erfindungsgemäß ganz besonders bevorzugte p-Phenylendiaminderivate der Formel (E1 ) sind ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Gruppe p-Phenylendiamin, p-Toluylendiamin, 2-(ß-Hydroxyethyl)-p-phenylendiamin, 2-(α,ß-Dihydroxyethyl)-p-phenylendiamin, N,N-Bis-(ß- hydroxyethyl)-p-phenylendiamin, N-(4-Amino-3-methylphenyl)-N-[3-(1 H-imidazol-1-yl)propyl]amin, sowie den physiologisch verträglichen Salzen dieser Verbindungen.Very particularly preferred according to the invention p-phenylenediamine derivatives of the formula (E1) are selected from at least one compound of the group p-phenylenediamine, p-toluenediamine, 2- (ß-hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, 2- (α, ß-dihydroxyethyl) - p-phenylenediamine, N, N-bis- (β-hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, N- (4-amino-3-methylphenyl) -N- [3- (1H-imidazol-1-yl) propyl] amine , as well as the physiologically acceptable salts of these compounds.
Es kann erfindungsgemäß weiterhin bevorzugt sein, als Entwicklerkomponente Verbindungen einzusetzen, die mindestens zwei aromatische Kerne enthalten, die mit Amino- und/oder Hydroxylgruppen substituiert sind.It may further be preferred according to the invention to use as developer component compounds which contain at least two aromatic nuclei which are substituted by amino and / or hydroxyl groups.
Unter den zweikernigen Entwicklerkomponenten, die in den Färbezusammensetzungen gemäß der Erfindung verwendet werden können, kann man insbesondere die Verbindungen nennen, die der folgenden Formel (E2) entsprechen, sowie ihre physiologisch verträglichen Salze:Among the binuclear developer components which can be used in the dyeing compositions according to the invention, mention may be made in particular of the compounds corresponding to the following formula (E2) and their physiologically tolerated salts:
Figure imgf000012_0001
wobei:
Figure imgf000012_0001
in which:
Z1 und Z2 stehen unabhängig voneinander für einen Hydroxyl- oder NH2-ReSt, der gegebenenfalls durch einen (C1 bis C4)-Alkylrest, durch einen (C1 bis C4)-Hydroxyalkylrest und/oder durch eine Verbrückung Y substituiert ist oder der gegebenenfalls Teil eines verbrückenden Ringsystems ist, die Verbrückung Y steht für eine Alkylengruppe mit 1 bis 14 Kohlenstoffatomen, wie beispielsweise eine lineare oder verzweigte Alkylenkette oder einen Alkylenring, die von einer oder mehreren stickstoffhaltigen Gruppen und/oder einem oder mehreren Heteroatomen wie Sauerstoff-, Schwefel- oder Stickstoffatomen unterbrochen oder beendet sein kann und eventuell durch einen oder mehrere Hydroxyl- oder (C1 bis C8)-Alkoxyreste substituiert sein kann, oder eine direkte Bindung,Z 1 and Z 2 independently of one another represent a hydroxyl or NH 2 radical optionally substituted by a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, by a (C 1 to C 4 ) -hydroxyalkyl radical and / or by a bridge Y The bridging Y is an alkylene group having 1 to 14 carbon atoms, such as a linear or branched alkylene chain or an alkylene ring, which of one or more nitrogen-containing groups and / or one or more heteroatoms such as Oxygen, sulfur or nitrogen atoms may be interrupted or terminated and may be substituted by one or more hydroxyl or (C 1 to C 8 ) alkoxy, or a direct bond,
G5 und G6 stehen unabhängig voneinander für ein Wasserstoff- oder Halogenatom, einen (C1 bis C4)-Alkylrest, einen (C1 bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylrest, einen (C2 bis C4)- Polyhydroxyalkylrest, einen (Ci bis C4)-Anninoalkylrest oder eine direkte Verbindung zurG 5 and G 6 independently of one another represent a hydrogen or halogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -monohydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 2 to C 4 ) - Polyhydroxyalkyl, a (Ci to C 4 ) -Anninoalkylrest or a direct connection to
Verbrückung Y,Bridging Y,
G7, G8, G9, G10, G11 und G12 stehen unabhängig voneinander für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine direkte Bindung zur Verbrückung Y oder einen (Ci bis C4)-Alkylrest, mit der Maßgabe, dass die Verbindungen der Formel (E2) nur eine Verbrückung Y pro Molekül enthalten.G 7 , G 8 , G 9 , G 10 , G 11 and G 12 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a direct bond to the bridge Y or a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, with the proviso that the compounds of the formula (E2) contain only one bridging Y per molecule.
Die in Formel (E2) verwendeten Substituenten sind erfindungsgemäß analog zu den obigen Ausführungen definiert.The substituents used in formula (E2) are defined according to the invention analogously to the above statements.
Bevorzugte zweikernige Entwicklerkomponenten der Formel (E2) werden insbesondere aus mindestens einer der folgenden Verbindungen ausgewählt: N,N'-Bis-(ß-hydroxyethyl)-N,N'-bis-(4'- aminophenyl)-1 ,3-diamino-propan-2-ol, N,N'-Bis-(ß-hydroxyethyl)-N,N'-bis-(4'-aminophenyl)- ethylendiamin, N,N'-Bis-(4'-aminophenyl)-tetramethylendiamin, N,N'-Bis-(ß-hydroxyethyl)-N,N'- bis-(4'-aminophenyl)-tetramethylendiamin, N,N'-Bis-(4-(methylamino)phenyl)- tetramethylendiamin, N,N'-Diethyl-N,N'-bis-(4'-amino-3'-methylphenyl)-ethylendiamin, Bis-(2- hydroxy-5-aminophenyl)-methan, N,N'-Bis-(4'-aminophenyl)-1 ,4-diazacycloheptan, N,N'-Bis-(2- hydroxy-5-aminobenzyl)-piperazin, N-(4'-Aminophenyl)-p-phenylendiamin und 1 ,10-Bis-(2',5'- diaminophenyl)-1 ,4,7,10-tetraoxadecan sowie ihre physiologisch verträglichen Salze.Preferred binuclear developer components of the formula (E2) are in particular selected from at least one of the following compounds: N, N'-bis- (β-hydroxyethyl) -N, N'-bis- (4'-aminophenyl) -1,3-diamino -propan-2-ol, N, N'-bis (β-hydroxyethyl) -N, N'-bis (4'-aminophenyl) ethylenediamine, N, N'-bis (4'-aminophenyl) - tetramethylenediamine, N, N'-bis (β-hydroxyethyl) -N, N'-bis (4'-aminophenyl) tetramethylenediamine, N, N'-bis (4- (methylamino) phenyl) tetramethylenediamine, N , N'-diethyl-N, N'-bis (4'-amino-3'-methylphenyl) ethylenediamine, bis (2-hydroxy-5-aminophenyl) -methane, N, N'-bis (4 '-aminophenyl) -1, 4-diazacycloheptane, N, N'-bis (2-hydroxy-5-aminobenzyl) piperazine, N- (4'-aminophenyl) -p-phenylenediamine and 1, 10-bis ( 2 ', 5'-diaminophenyl) -1, 4,7,10-tetraoxadecane and their physiologically acceptable salts.
Ganz besonders bevorzugte zweikernige Entwicklerkomponenten der Formel (E2) werden ausgewählt unter N,N'-Bis-(ß-hydroxyethyl)-N,N'-bis-(4-aminophenyl)-1 ,3-diamino-propan-2-ol, Bis-(2-hydroxy-5-aminophenyl)-methan, 1 ,3-Bis-(2,5-diaminophenoxy)-propan-2-ol, N,N'-Bis-(4- aminophenyl)-1 ,4-diazacycloheptan, 1 , 10-Bis-(2,5-diaminophenyl)-1 ,4,7,10-tetraoxadecan oder eines der physiologisch verträglichen Salze dieser Verbindungen.Very particularly preferred binuclear developer components of the formula (E2) are selected from N, N'-bis (β-hydroxyethyl) -N, N'-bis (4-aminophenyl) -1,3-diamino-propan-2-ol , Bis (2-hydroxy-5-aminophenyl) -methane, 1, 3-bis (2,5-diaminophenoxy) -propan-2-ol, N, N'-bis (4-aminophenyl) -1, 4-diazacycloheptane, 1, 10-bis (2,5-diaminophenyl) -1, 4,7,10-tetraoxadecane or one of the physiologically acceptable salts of these compounds.
Weiterhin kann es erfindungsgemäß bevorzugt sein, als Entwicklerkomponente ein p- Aminophenolderivat oder eines seiner physiologisch verträglichen Salze einzusetzen. Besonders bevorzugt sind p-Aminophenolderivate der Formel (E3)Furthermore, it may be preferred according to the invention to use as the developer component a p-aminophenol derivative or one of its physiologically tolerable salts. Particular preference is given to p-aminophenol derivatives of the formula (E3)
Figure imgf000013_0001
wobei: G13 steht für ein Wasserstoffatom, ein Halogenatom, einen (Ci bis C4)-Alkylrest, einen (Ci bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylrest, einen (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylrest, einen (Ci bis C4)-Alkoxy- (Ci bis C4)-alkylrest, einen (Ci bis C4)-Aminoalkylrest, einen Hydroxy-(Ci bis C4)- alkylaminorest, einen (Ci bis C4)-Hydroxyalkoxyrest, einen (Ci bis C4)-Hydroxyalkyl-(Ci bis C4)-aminoalkylrest oder einen (Di-[(Ci bis C4)-alkyl]amino)-(Ci bis C4)-alkylrest, und G14 steht für ein Wasserstoff- oder Halogenatom, einen (Ci bis C4)-Alkylrest, einen (Ci bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylrest, einen (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylrest, einen (Ci bis C4)-Alkoxy- (C1 bis C4)-alkylrest, einen (C1 bis C4)-Aminoalkylrest oder einen (C1 bis C4)-Cyanoalkylrest, G15 steht für Wasserstoff, einen (C1 bis C4)-Alkylrest, einen (C1 bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylrest, einen (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylrest, einen Phenylrest oder einen Benzylrest, und G16 steht für Wasserstoff oder ein Halogenatom.
Figure imgf000013_0001
in which: G 13 represents a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a (Ci to C4) alkyl, a (Ci to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) polyhydroxyalkyl radical, a (Ci to C 4) alkoxy (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -aminoalkyl radical, a hydroxy (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkylamino radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -hydroxyalkoxy radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) - Hydroxyalkyl- (C 1 to C 4 ) -aminoalkyl radical or a (di - [(C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl] amino) - (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, and G 14 represents a hydrogen or halogen atom, a ( Ci to C 4) alkyl, a (Ci to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) polyhydroxyalkyl radical, a (Ci to C 4) alkoxy (C 1 to C 4) alkyl, a (C 1 to C 4 ) aminoalkyl radical or a (C 1 to C 4 ) cyanoalkyl radical, G 15 is hydrogen, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 2 to C 4 ) -polyhydroxyalkyl radical, a phenyl radical or a benzyl radical, and G 16 is hydrogen or a halogen atom.
Die in Formel (E3) verwendeten Substituenten sind erfindungsgemäß analog zu den obigen Ausführungen definiert.The substituents used in formula (E3) are defined according to the invention analogously to the above statements.
Bevorzugte p-Aminophenole der Formel (E3) sind insbesondere p-Aminophenol, N-Methyl-p- aminophenol, 4-Amino-3-methyl-phenol, 4-Amino-3-fluorphenol, 2-Hydroxymethylamino-4- aminophenol, 4-Amino-3-hydroxymethylphenol, 4-Amino-2-(ß-hydroxyethoxy)-phenol, 4-Amino-2- methylphenol, 4-Amino-2-hydroxymethylphenol, 4-Amino-2-methoxymethyl-phenol, 4-Amino-2- aminomethylphenol, 4-Amino-2-(ß-hydroxyethyl-aminomethyl)-phenol, 4-Amino-2-(α,ß- dihydroxyethyl)-phenol, 4-Amino-2-fluorphenol, 4-Amino-2-chlorphenol, 4-Amino-2,6- dichlorphenol, 4-Amino-2-(diethyl-aminomethyl)-phenol sowie ihre physiologisch verträglichen Salze.Preferred p-aminophenols of the formula (E3) are, in particular, p-aminophenol, N-methyl-p-aminophenol, 4-amino-3-methylphenol, 4-amino-3-fluorophenol, 2-hydroxymethylamino-4-aminophenol, 4 -Amino-3-hydroxymethylphenol, 4-amino-2- (β-hydroxyethoxy) -phenol, 4-amino-2-methylphenol, 4-amino-2-hydroxymethylphenol, 4-amino-2-methoxymethyl-phenol, 4-amino -2-aminomethylphenol, 4-amino-2- (β-hydroxyethyl-aminomethyl) phenol, 4-amino-2- (α, β-dihydroxyethyl) phenol, 4-amino-2-fluorophenol, 4-amino-2 -chlorophenol, 4-amino-2,6-dichlorophenol, 4-amino-2- (diethyl-aminomethyl) -phenol and their physiologically acceptable salts.
Ganz besonders bevorzugte Verbindungen der Formel (E3) sind p-Aminophenol, 4-Amino-3- methylphenol, 4-Amino-2-aminomethylphenol, 4-Amino-2-(α,ß-dihydroxyethyl)-phenol und A- Amino-2-(diethylaminomethyl)-phenol.Very particularly preferred compounds of the formula (E3) are p-aminophenol, 4-amino-3-methylphenol, 4-amino-2-aminomethylphenol, 4-amino-2- (α, β-dihydroxyethyl) -phenol and A-amino- 2- (diethylaminomethyl) -phenol.
Ferner kann die Entwicklerkomponente ausgewählt sein aus o-Aminophenol und seinen Derivaten, wie beispielsweise 2-Amino-4-methylphenol, 2-Amino-5-methylphenol oder 2-Amino-4- chlorphenol.Further, the developer component may be selected from o-aminophenol and its derivatives such as 2-amino-4-methylphenol, 2-amino-5-methylphenol or 2-amino-4-chlorophenol.
Weiterhin kann die Entwicklerkomponente ausgewählt sein aus heterocyclischen Entwicklerkomponenten, wie beispielsweise aus Pyrimidinderivaten, Pyrazolderivaten, Pyrazolopyrimidin-Derivaten bzw. ihren physiologisch verträglichen Salzen. Bevorzugte Pyrimidin-Derivate werden erfindungsgemäß ausgewählt aus Verbindungen gemäß Formel (E4) bzw. deren physiologisch verträglichen Salzen,Furthermore, the developer component may be selected from heterocyclic developer components, such as pyrimidine derivatives, pyrazole derivatives, pyrazolopyrimidine derivatives or their physiologically acceptable salts. Preferred pyrimidine derivatives are selected according to the invention from compounds of the formula (E4) or their physiologically tolerated salts,
Figure imgf000015_0001
worin
Figure imgf000015_0001
wherein
G17, G18 und G19 unabhängig voneinander für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine Hydroxygruppe, eineG 17 , G 18 and G 19 independently represent a hydrogen atom, a hydroxy group, a
(Ci bis C4)-Alkoxygruppe oder eine Aminogruppe steht und(C 1 to C 4 ) alkoxy group or an amino group and
G20 für eine Hydroxygruppe oder eine Gruppe -NG21G22 steht, worin G21 und G22 unabhängig voneinander stehen für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-G 20 represents a hydroxy group or a group -NG 21 G 22 , in which G 21 and G 22 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group, a (C 1 to C 4 )
Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, mit der Maßgabe, dass maximal zwei der Gruppen aus G17, G18, G19 und G20 eine Hydroxygruppe bedeuten und höchstens zwei der Reste G17, G18 und G19 für ein Wasserstoffatom stehen. Dabei ist es wiederum bevorzugt, wenn gemäß Formel (E4) mindestens zwei Gruppen aus G17, G18, G19 und G für eine Gruppe -NG G stehen und höchstens zwei Gruppen aus G , G , G und G für eine Hydroxygruppe stehen.Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, with the proviso that a maximum of two of the groups of G 17 , G 18 , G 19 and G 20 is a hydroxy group and at most two of the radicals G 17 , G 18 and G 19 is a hydrogen atom. In this case, it is again preferred if, according to formula (E4), at least two groups of G 17 , G 18 , G 19 and G stand for a group -NG G and at most two groups of G, G, G and G represent a hydroxy group.
Besonders bevorzugte Pyrimidin-Derivate sind insbesondere die Verbindungen 2,4,5,6-Tetra- aminopyrimidin, 4-Hydroxy-2,5,6-triaminopyrimidin, 2-Hydroxy-4,5,6-triaminopyrimidin, 2- Dimethylamino-4,5,6-triaminopyrimidin, 2,4-Dihydroxy-5,6-diaminopyrimidin und 2,5,6- Triaminopyrimidin.Particularly preferred pyrimidine derivatives are in particular the compounds 2,4,5,6-tetra-aminopyrimidine, 4-hydroxy-2,5,6-triaminopyrimidine, 2-hydroxy-4,5,6-triaminopyrimidine, 2-dimethylamino-4 , 5,6-triaminopyrimidine, 2,4-dihydroxy-5,6-diaminopyrimidine and 2,5,6-triaminopyrimidine.
Bevorzugte Pyrazol-Derivate werden erfindungsgemäß ausgewählt aus Verbindungen gemäß Formel (E5),Preferred pyrazole derivatives are selected according to the invention from compounds of the formula (E5),
Figure imgf000015_0002
worin
Figure imgf000015_0002
wherein
G , G , G stehen unabhängig voneinander für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine (C1 bis C4)- Alkylgruppe, eine (C1 bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxy- alkylgruppe, eine gegebenenfalls substituierte Arylgruppe oder eine gegebenenfalls substituierte Aryl-(Ci bis C4)-alkylgruppe, mit der Maßgabe dass, wenn G25 für einG, G, G are, independently, a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4) - alkyl group, a (C 1 to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) -Polyhydroxy- alkyl group, an optionally substituted Aryl group or an optionally substituted aryl (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl group, provided that when G 25 is a
Wasserstoffatom steht, G26 neben den vorgenannten Gruppen zusätzlich für eine Gruppe -Is hydrogen, G 26 in addition to the aforementioned groups additionally for a group -
NH2 stehen kann,NH 2 can stand,
G26 steht für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-G 26 represents a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -
Monohydroxyalkylgruppe oder eine (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe undMonohydroxyalkyl group or a (C 2 to C 4 ) polyhydroxyalkyl group and
G27 steht für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine gegebenenfalls substituierte Arylgruppe, eine (Ci bisG 27 represents a hydrogen atom, an optionally substituted aryl group, a (Ci to
C4)-Alkylgruppe oder eine (Ci bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, insbesondere für einC 4 ) alkyl group or a (Ci to C 4 ) -Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, in particular for a
Wasserstoffatom oder eine Methylgruppe.Hydrogen atom or a methyl group.
Bevorzugt bindet in Formel (E5) der Rest -NG G an die 5 Position und der Rest G an die 3 Position des Pyrazolzyklus.Preferably, in formula (E5) the radical -NG G binds to the 5-position and the radical G to the 3-position of the pyrazole cycle.
Besonders bevorzugte Pyrazol-Derivate sind insbesondere die Verbindungen, die ausgewählt werden unter 4,5-Diamino-1-methylpyrazol, 4,5-Diamino-1-(ß-hydroxyethyl)-pyrazol, 3,4- Diaminopyrazol, 4,5-Diamino-1-(4'-chlorbenzyl)-pyrazol, 4,5-Diamino-1 ,3-dimethylpyrazol, 4,5- Diamino-3-methyl-1-phenylpyrazol, 4,5-Diamino-1-methyl-3-phenylpyrazol, 4-Amino-1 ,3-dimethyl- 5-hydrazinopyrazol, 1-Benzyl-4,5-diamino-3-methylpyrazol, 4,5-Diamino-3-tert.-butyl-1- methylpyrazol, 4,5-Diamino-1-tert.-butyl-3-methylpyrazol, 4,5-Diamino-1-(ß-hydroxyethyl)-3- methylpyrazol, 4,5-Diamino-1-ethyl-3-methylpyrazol, 4,5-Diamino-1-ethyl-3-(4'-methoxyphenyl)- pyrazol, 4,5-Diamino-1-ethyl-3-hydroxymethylpyrazol, 4,5-Diamino-3-hydroxymethyl-1-methyl- pyrazol, 4,5-Diamino-3-hydroxymethyl-1-isopropylpyrazol, 4,5-Diamino-3-methyl-1-isopropyl- pyrazol, 4-Amino-5-(ß-aminoethyl)amino-1 ,3-dimethylpyrazol, sowie deren physiologisch verträglichen Salze.Particularly preferred pyrazole derivatives are in particular the compounds which are selected from 4,5-diamino-1-methylpyrazole, 4,5-diamino-1- (β-hydroxyethyl) pyrazole, 3,4-diaminopyrazole, 4,5- Diamino-1- (4'-chlorobenzyl) -pyrazole, 4,5-diamino-1,3-dimethylpyrazole, 4,5-diamino-3-methyl-1-phenylpyrazole, 4,5-diamino-1-methyl-3 phenylpyrazole, 4-amino-1,3-dimethyl-5-hydrazinopyrazole, 1-benzyl-4,5-diamino-3-methylpyrazole, 4,5-diamino-3-tert-butyl-1-methylpyrazole, 4 5-diamino-1-tert-butyl-3-methylpyrazole, 4,5-diamino-1- (β-hydroxyethyl) -3-methylpyrazole, 4,5-diamino-1-ethyl-3-methylpyrazole, 4.5 Diamino-1-ethyl-3- (4'-methoxyphenyl) pyrazole, 4,5-diamino-1-ethyl-3-hydroxymethylpyrazole, 4,5-diamino-3-hydroxymethyl-1-methylpyrazole, 4, 5-diamino-3-hydroxymethyl-1-isopropylpyrazole, 4,5-diamino-3-methyl-1-isopropylpyrazole, 4-amino-5- (β-aminoethyl) amino-1,3-dimethylpyrazole, and their physiological compatible salts.
Bevorzugte Pyrazolopyrimidin-Derivate sind insbesondere die Derivate des Pyrazolo[1 ,5- a]pyrimidin der folgenden Formel (E6) und dessen tautomeren Formen, sofern ein tautomeres Gleichgewicht besteht:Preferred pyrazolopyrimidine derivatives are, in particular, the derivatives of the pyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidine of the following formula (E6) and their tautomeric forms, if a tautomeric equilibrium exists:
(E6)
Figure imgf000016_0001
G28, G29 und G30, G31 unabhängig voneinander stehen für ein Wasserstoffatom, einen (Ci bis C4)-Alkylrest, einen Aryl-Rest, einen (Ci bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylrest, einen (C2 bis C4)- Polyhydroxyalkylrest einen (Ci bis C4)-Alkoxy-(Ci bis C4)-alkylrest, einen (Ci bis C4)- Aminoalkylrest, der gegebenenfalls durch ein Acetyl-Ureid- oder einen Sulfonyl-Rest geschützt sein kann, einen (Ci bis C4)-Alkylamino-(Ci bis C4)-alkylrest, einen Di-[(Ci bis C4)- alkyl]-(Ci bis C4)-aminoalkylrest, wobei die Dialkyl-Reste gegebenenfalls einen Kohlenstoffzyklus oder einen Heterozyklus mit 5 oder 6 Kettengliedern bilden, einen (Ci bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkyl- oder einen Di[(d bis C4)-Hydroxyalkyl]-(d bis C4)-aminoalkylrest, die X-Reste stehen unabhängig voneinander für ein Wasserstoffatom, einen (C1 bis C4)- Alkylrest, einen Aryl-Rest, einen (C1 bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylrest, einen (C2 bis C4)- Polyhydroxyalkylrest, einen (C1 bis C4)-Aminoalkylrest, einen (C1 bis C4)-Alkylamino-(C-ι bis C4)-alkylrest, einen Di-[(C-ι bis C4)alkyl]-(C-ι bis C4)-aminoalkylrest, wobei die Dialkyl-Reste gegebenenfalls einen Kohlenstoffzyklus oder einen Heterozyklus mit 5 oder 6 Kettengliedern bilden, einen (C1 bis C4)-Hydroxyalkyl- oder einen Di-[(d bis C4)-hydroxyalkyl]amino-(C-ι bis C4)-alkylrest, einen Aminorest, einen (C1 bis C4)-Alkyl- oder DK(C1 bis C4)- hydroxyalkyl]aminorest, ein Halogenatom, eine Carboxylsäuregruppe oder eine Sulfonsäuregruppe,
(E6)
Figure imgf000016_0001
G 28 , G 29 and G 30 , G 31 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, an aryl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -monohydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 2 to C 4 ) - Polyhydroxyalkylrest a (Ci to C 4 ) -Alkoxy- (Ci to C 4 ) -alkylrest, a (Ci to C 4 ) - Aminoalkylrest, which can be protected if necessary by a Acetyl Ureid or a Sulfonyl remainder, one (Ci to C 4) alkylamino alkyl (Ci to C 4), a di - [(Ci to C 4) - alkyl] - (Ci to C4) aminoalkyl radical, wherein the dialkyl residues optionally a carbon cycle or form a heterocycle with 5 or 6 chain members, a (Ci to C 4 ) -Monohydroxyalkyl- or a Di [(d to C 4 ) -hydroxyalkyl] - (d to C 4 ) -aminoalkylrest, the X-radicals independently of one another is a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radical, an aryl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 2 to C 4 ) -hydroxyalkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) - Aminoalkyl radical, a (C 1 to C 4) alkylamino (C-ι-C 4) alkyl, a di - aminoalkyl (C-ι-C 4), wherein the dialkyl residues optionally - [(C-ι-C 4) alkyl] form a carbon cycle or a heterocycle with 5 or 6 chain members, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -hydroxyalkyl or a di - [(d to C 4 ) -hydroxyalkyl] amino- (C 1 -C 4 ) -alkyl radical, an amino radical, a (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl or DK (C 1 to C 4 ) hydroxyalkyl] amino radical, a halogen atom, a carboxylic acid group or a sulfonic acid group,
- i hat den Wert 0, 1 , 2 oder 3, p hat den Wert 0 oder 1 , q hat den Wert 0 oder 1 und n hat den Wert 0 oder 1 , mit der Maßgabe, dass die Summe aus p + q ungleich 0 ist,- i has the value 0, 1, 2 or 3, p has the value 0 or 1, q has the value 0 or 1 and n has the value 0 or 1, with the proviso that the sum of p + q is not equal to 0 is
- wenn p + q gleich 2 ist, n den Wert 0 hat, und die Gruppen NG28G29 und NG30G31 belegen die Positionen (2,3); (5,6); (6,7); (3,5) oder (3,7);if p + q equals 2, n has the value 0, and the groups NG 28 G 29 and NG 30 G 31 occupy the positions (2, 3); (5,6); (6,7); (3,5) or (3,7);
- wenn p + q gleich 1 ist, n den Wert 1 hat, und die Gruppen NG28G29 (oder NG30G31) und die Gruppe OH belegen die Positionen (2,3); (5,6); (6,7); (3,5) oder (3,7);if p + q is 1, n is 1, and the groups NG 28 G 29 (or NG 30 G 31 ) and the group OH occupy the positions (2, 3); (5,6); (6,7); (3,5) or (3,7);
Die in Formel (E7) verwendeten Substituenten sind erfindungsgemäß analog zu den obigen Ausführungen definiert.The substituents used in formula (E7) are defined according to the invention analogously to the above statements.
Wenn das Pyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin der obenstehenden Formel (E6) eine Hydroxygruppe an einer der Positionen 2, 5 oder 7 des Ringsystems enthält, besteht ein tautomeres Gleichgewicht, das zum Beispiel im folgenden Schema dargestellt wird:
Figure imgf000018_0001
When the pyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidine of the above formula (E6) contains a hydroxy group at one of the 2, 5 or 7 positions of the ring system, there is a tautomeric equilibrium shown, for example, in the following scheme:
Figure imgf000018_0001
Unter den Pyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidinen der obenstehenden Formel (E7) kann man insbesondere nennen:Among the pyrazolo [1, 5-a] pyrimidines of the above formula (E7) may be mentioned in particular:
Pyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin-3,7-diamin;Pyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidine-3,7-diamine;
2,5-Dimethyl-pyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin-3,7-diamin;2,5-dimethyl-pyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidine-3,7-diamine;
Pyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin-3,5-diamin;Pyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidine-3,5-diamine;
2,7-Dimethyl-pyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin-3,5-diamin;2,7-dimethyl-pyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidine-3,5-diamine;
3-Aminopyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin-7-ol;3-aminopyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidin-7-ol;
3-Aminopyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin-5-ol;3-aminopyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidin-5-ol;
2-(3-Aminopyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin-7-ylamino)-ethanol;2- (3-aminopyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidin-7-ylamino) ethanol;
2-(7-Aminopyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin-3-ylamino)-ethanol;2- (7-aminopyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidin-3-ylamino) ethanol;
2-[(3-Aminopyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin-7-yl)-(2-hydroxy-ethyl)-amino]-ethanol;2 - [(3-aminopyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidin-7-yl) - (2-hydroxy-ethyl) -amino] -ethanol;
2-[(7-Aminopyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin-3-yl)-(2-hydroxy-ethyl)-amino]-ethanol;2 - [(7-aminopyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidin-3-yl) - (2-hydroxy-ethyl) -amino] -ethanol;
5,6-Dimethylpyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin-3,7-diamin;5,6-dimethylpyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidine-3,7-diamine;
2,6-Dimethylpyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin-3,7-diamin;2,6-dimethylpyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidine-3,7-diamine;
3-Amino-7-dimethylamino-2,5-dimethylpyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidin; sowie ihre physiologisch verträglichen Salze und ihre tautomeren Formen, wenn ein tautomers Gleichgewicht vorhanden ist.3-amino-7-dimethylamino-2,5-dimethylpyrazolo [1,5-a] pyrimidine; and their physiologically acceptable salts and their tautomeric forms when a tautomeric equilibrium is present.
Die Pyrazolo[1 ,5-a]pyrimidine der obenstehenden Formel (E6) können wie in der Literatur beschrieben durch Zyklisierung ausgehend von einem Aminopyrazol oder von Hydrazin hergestellt werden.The pyrazolo [1, 5-a] pyrimidines of the above formula (E6) can be prepared as described in the literature by cyclization from an aminopyrazole or from hydrazine.
Ganz besonders bevorzugte Entwicklerkomponenten werden ausgewählt, aus mindestens einer Verbindung aus der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus p-Phenylendiamin, p-Toluylendiamin, 2-(ß- Hydroxyethyl)-p-phenylendiamin, 2-(α,ß-Dihydroxyethyl)-p-phenylendiamin, N,N-Bis-(ß- hydroxyethyl)-p-phenylendiamin, N-(4-Amino-3-methylphenyl)-N-[3-(1 H-imidazol-1-yl)propyl]amin, N,N'-Bis-(ß-hydroxyethyl)-N,N'-bis-(4-aminophenyl)-1 ,3-diamino-propan-2-ol, Bis-(2-hydroxy-5- aminophenyl)-methan, 1 ,3-Bis-(2,5-diaminophenoxy)-propan-2-ol, N,N'-Bis-(4-aminophenyl)-1 ,4- diazacycloheptan, 1 ,10-Bis-(2,5-diaminophenyl)-1 ,4,7,10-tetraoxadecan, p-Aminophenol, 4- Amino-3-ιmethylphenol, 4-Amino-2-aminomethylphenol, 4-Amino-2-(α,ß-dihydroxyethyl)-phenol und 4-Amino-2-(diethylanninonnethyl)-phenol, 4,5-Diamino-1-(ß-hydroxyethyl)-pyrazol, 2,4,5,6- Tetraaminopyrinnidin, 4-Hydroxy-2,5,6-triaminopyrinnidin, 2-Hydroxy-4,5,6-triaminopyrinnidin, sowie den physiologisch verträglichen Salzen dieser Verbindungen.Very particularly preferred developer components are selected from at least one compound from the group formed from p-phenylenediamine, p-toluenediamine, 2- (β-hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, 2- (α, β-dihydroxyethyl) -p phenylenediamine, N, N-bis (β-hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, N- (4-amino-3-methylphenyl) -N- [3- (1 H -imidazol-1-yl) propyl] amine, N, N'-bis (β-hydroxyethyl) -N, N'-bis (4-aminophenyl) -1, 3-diamino-propan-2-ol, bis (2-hydroxy-5-aminophenyl) - methane, 1,3-bis- (2,5-diaminophenoxy) -propan-2-ol, N, N'-bis (4-aminophenyl) -1, 4-diazacycloheptane, 1, 10-bis- (2, 5-diaminophenyl) -1, 4,7,10-tetraoxadecane, p-aminophenol, 4- Amino-3-methylphenol, 4-amino-2-aminomethylphenol, 4-amino-2- (α, β-dihydroxyethyl) -phenol and 4-amino-2- (diethylanninonnethyl) -phenol, 4,5-diamino-1- (β-hydroxyethyl) pyrazole, 2,4,5,6-tetraaminopyrinnidine, 4-hydroxy-2,5,6-triaminopyrinnidine, 2-hydroxy-4,5,6-triaminopyrinnidine, and the physiologically acceptable salts of these compounds.
Entwicklerkomponenten sind bevorzugt in einer Menge von 0,005 bis 10 Gew.-%, vorzugsweise von 0,1 bis 5 Gew.-%, jeweils bezogen auf das Gewicht des anwendungsbereiten Mittels, enthalten.Developer components are preferably contained in an amount of 0.005 to 10 wt .-%, preferably from 0.1 to 5 wt .-%, each based on the weight of the ready-to-use agent.
Im folgenden werden Beispiele für die als Substituenten der Verbindungen der Formeln (E1 ) bisThe following are examples of the substituents of the compounds of the formulas (E1) to
(E6) genannten Reste aufgezählt: Beispiele für (C1 bis C4)-Alkylreste sind die Gruppen -CH3,(E6) radicals are mentioned: examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radicals are the groups -CH 3 ,
-CH2CH3, -CH2CH2CH3, -CH(CH3)2, -CH2CH2CH2CH3, -CH2CH(CH3)2, -CH(CH3)CH2CH3, --CH 2 CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 3 , -CH (CH 3 ) 2 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 3 , -CH 2 CH (CH 3 ) 2 , -CH (CH 3 ) CH 2 CH 3 , -
C(CH3)3. Erfindungsgemäße Beispiele für (C1 bis C4)-Alkoxyreste sind -OCH3, -OCH2CH3,C (CH 3 ) 3 . Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy radicals according to the invention are -OCH 3 , -OCH 2 CH 3 ,
-OCH2CH2CH3, -OCH(CHs)2, -OCH2CH2CH2CH3, -OCH2CH(CH3)2, -OCH(CH3)CH2CH3, --OCH 2 CH 2 CH 3 , -OCH (CH 2 ) 2 , -OCH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 3 , -OCH 2 CH (CH 3 ) 2 , -OCH (CH 3 ) CH 2 CH 3 ,
OC(CH3)3, insbesondere eine Methoxy- oder eine Ethoxygruppe.OC (CH 3 ) 3 , in particular a methoxy or an ethoxy group.
Weiterhin können als bevorzugte Beispiele für eine (C1 bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylgruppe -CH2OH,Furthermore, as preferred examples of a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl group, -CH 2 OH,
-CH2CH2OH, -CH2CH2CH2OH, -CH2CH(OH)CH3, -CH2CH2CH2CH2OH, wobei die Gruppe-CH 2 CH 2 OH, -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH, -CH 2 CH (OH) CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH, where the group
-CH2CH2OH bevorzugt ist.-CH 2 CH 2 OH is preferred.
Ein besonders bevorzugtes Beispiel einer (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe ist die 1 ,2-A particularly preferred example of a (C 2 to C 4 ) polyhydroxyalkyl group is 1, 2
Dihydroxyethylgruppe.Dihydroxyethyl.
Beispiele für Halogenatome sind F-, Cl- oder Br-Atome, Cl-Atome sind ganz besonders bevorzugte Beispiele.Examples of halogen atoms are F, Cl or Br atoms, Cl atoms are very particularly preferred examples.
Beispiele für stickstoffhaltige Gruppen sind insbesondere -NH2, (C1 bis C4)-Examples of nitrogen-containing groups are in particular -NH 2 , (C 1 to C 4 ) -
Monoalkylaminogruppen, (C1 bis C4)-Dialkylaminogruppen, (C1 bis C4)-Monoalkylamino groups, (C 1 to C 4 ) -dialkylamino groups, (C 1 to C 4 ) -
Trialkylammoniumgruppen, (C1 bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylaminogruppen, Imidazolinium und -Trialkylammonium groups, (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkylamino groups, imidazolinium and
NH3 +.NH 3 + .
Beispiele für (C1 bis C4)-Monoalkylaminogruppen sind -NHCH3, -NHCH2CH3, -NHCH2CH2CH3,Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -monoalkylamino groups are -NHCH 3 , -NHCH 2 CH 3 , -NHCH 2 CH 2 CH 3 ,
-NHCH(CH3)2.-NHCH (CH 3 ) 2 .
Beispiele für (C1 bis C4)-Dialkylaminogruppe sind -N(CH3)2, -N(CH2CH3)2.Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -dialkylamino group are -N (CH 3 ) 2 , -N (CH 2 CH 3 ) 2 .
Beispiele für (C1 bis C4)-Trialkylammoniumgruppen sind -N+(CH3)3, -N+(CH3)2(CH2CH3),Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) trialkylammonium groups are -N + (CH 3 ) 3 , -N + (CH 3 ) 2 (CH 2 CH 3 ),
-N+(CH3)(CH2CH3)2.-N + (CH 3 ) (CH 2 CH 3 ) 2 .
Beispiele für (C1 bis C4)-Hydroxyalkylaminoreste sind -NH-CH2CH2OH, -NH-CH2CH2OH,Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -hydroxyalkylamino radicals are -NH-CH 2 CH 2 OH, -NH-CH 2 CH 2 OH,
-NH-CH2CH2CH2OH1 -NH-CH2CH2CH2OH. Beispiele für (Ci bis C4)-Alkoxy-(d bis C4)-alkylgruppen sind die Gruppen -CH2CH2-O-CH3,-NH-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH 1 -NH-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH. Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl groups are the groups -CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH 3 ,
-(-/H2CH2CH2-U-CH3, -CH2CH2-U-CH2CH3, -CH2CH2CH2-U-CH2CH3, -CH2CH2-U-CH(CH3J2,- (- / H 2 CH 2 CH 2 -U-CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 2 -U-CH 2 CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -U-CH 2 CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 2 - U-CH (CH 3 J 2 ,
-CH2CH2CH2-O-CH(CH3)2.-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH (CH 3 ) 2 .
Beispiele für Hydroxy-(Ci bis C4)-alkoxyreste sind -0-CH2OH, -0-CH2CH2OH, -0-CH2CH2CH2OH,Examples of hydroxy (C 1 to C 4 ) alkoxy radicals are -O-CH 2 OH, -O-CH 2 CH 2 OH, -O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH,
-O-CH2CH(OH)CH3, -O-CH2CH2CH2CH2OH.-O-CH 2 CH (OH) CH 3 , -O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH.
Beispiele für (Ci bis C4)-Acetylaminoalkoxyreste sind -0-CH2NHC(O)CH3, -O-Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -acetylaminoalkoxy radicals are -O-CH 2 NHC (O) CH 3 , -O-
CH2CH2NHC(O)CH3,CH 2 CH 2 NHC (O) CH 3 ,
-0-CH2CH2CH2NHC(O)CH31 -O-CH2CH(NHC(O)CH3)CH31 -O-CH2CH2CH2CH2NHC(O)CH3.-O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NHC (O) CH 31 -O-CH 2 CH (NHC (O) CH 3 ) CH 31 -O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NHC (O) CH 3 .
Beispiele für (C1 bis C4)-Carbamoylanninoalkoxyreste sind -0-CH2CH2-NH-C(O)-NH2,Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -carbamoylanninoalkoxy radicals are -O-CH 2 CH 2 -NH-C (O) -NH 2 ,
-0-CH2CH2CH2-NH-C(O)-NH21 -O-CH2CH2CH2CH2-NH-C(O)-NH2.-O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -NH-C (O) -NH 21 -O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -NH-C (O) -NH 2 .
Beispiele für (Ci bis C4)-Aminoalkylreste sind -CH2NH2, -CH2CH2NH2, -CH2CH2CH2NH2,Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -aminoalkyl radicals are -CH 2 NH 2 , -CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 ,
-CH2CH(NH2)CH31 -CH2CH2CH2CH2NH2.-CH 2 CH (NH 2 ) CH 31 -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 .
Beispiele für (Ci bis C4)-Cyanoalkylreste sind -CH2CN1 -CH2CH2CN1 -CH2CH2CH2CN.Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -cyanoalkyl radicals are -CH 2 CN 1 -CH 2 CH 2 CN 1 -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CN.
Beispiele für (Ci bis C4)-Hydroxyalkylamino-(Ci bis C4)-alkylreste sind -CH2CH2NH-CH2CH2OH 1 Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -hydroxyalkylamino (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radicals are -CH 2 CH 2 NH-CH 2 CH 2 OH 1
-CH2CH2CH2NH-CH2CH2OH1 -CH2CH2NH-CH2CH2CH2OH1 -CH2CH2CH2NH-CH2CH2CH2OH.-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NH-CH 2 CH 2 OH 1 -CH 2 CH 2 NH-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH 1 -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NH-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH.
Beispiele für Di[(Ci bis C4)-Hydroxyalkyl]amino-(Ci bis C4)-alkylreste sindExamples of di [(Ci to C 4 ) -hydroxyalkyl] amino- (Ci to C 4 ) -alkyl radicals are
CH2CH2N(CH2CH2OH)21 CH 2 CH 2 N (CH 2 CH 2 OH) 21
-CH2CH2CH2N(CH2CH2OH)21 -CH2CH2N(CH2CH2CH2OH)21 -CH2CH2CH2N(CH2CH2CH2OH)2.-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 N (CH 2 CH 2 OH) 21 -CH 2 CH 2 N (CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH) 21 -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 N (CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH) 2 ,
Ein Beispiel für Arylgruppen ist die Phenylgruppe.An example of aryl groups is the phenyl group.
Beispiele für Aryl-(Ci bis C4)-alkylgruppen sind die Benzylgruppe und die 2-Phenylethylgruppe.Examples of aryl (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl groups are the benzyl group and the 2-phenylethyl group.
Kupplerkomponenten bilden im Rahmen der oxidativen Färbung allein keine signifikante Färbung aus, sondern benötigen stets die Gegenwart von Entwicklerkomponenten. Daher ist es erfindungsgemäß bevorzugt, dass bei Verwendung mindestens einer Entwicklerkomponente zusätzlich mindestens eine Kupplerkomponente zum Einsatz kommt.Coupler components do not form a significant color within the framework of the oxidative dyeing alone, but always require the presence of developer components. Therefore, it is preferred according to the invention that at least one coupler component is additionally used when using at least one developer component.
Kupplerkomponenten im Sinne der Erfindung erlauben mindestens eine Substitution eines chemischen Restes des Kupplers durch die oxidierte Form der Entwicklerkomponente. Dabei bildet sich eine kovalente Bindung zwischen Kuppler- und Entwicklerkomponente aus. Kuppler sind bevorzugt zyklische Verbindungen, die am Zyklus mindestens zwei Gruppen tragen, ausgewählt aus (i) gegebenenfalls substituierten Aminogruppen und/oder (ii) Hydroxygruppen. Wenn die zyklische Verbindung ein Sechsring (bevorzugt aromatisch) ist, so befinden sich die besagten Gruppen bevorzugt in ortho-Position oder meta-Position zueinander. Erfindungsgemäße Kupplerkomponenten werden bevorzugt als mindestens eine Verbindung aus einer der folgenden Klassen ausgewählt:Coupler components according to the invention allow at least one substitution of a chemical residue of the coupler by the oxidized form of the developer component. This forms a covalent bond between the coupler and the developer component. Couplers are preferably cyclic compounds which carry on cycle at least two groups selected from (i) optionally substituted amino groups and / or (ii) hydroxy groups. When the cyclic compound is a six-membered ring (preferably aromatic), said groups are preferably in ortho position or meta position to each other. Coupler components according to the invention are preferably selected as at least one compound from one of the following classes:
- m-Aminophenol und/oder dessen Derivate,m-aminophenol and / or its derivatives,
- m-Diaminobenzol und/oder dessen Derivate,m-diaminobenzene and / or its derivatives,
- o-Diaminobenzol und/oder dessen Derivate,o-diaminobenzene and / or its derivatives,
- o-Aminophenolderivate, wie beispielsweise o-Aminophenol,o-aminophenol derivatives, such as o-aminophenol,
- Naphthalinderivate mit mindestens einer Hydroxygruppe,Naphthalene derivatives having at least one hydroxy group,
- Di- beziehungsweise Trihydroxybenzol und/oder deren Derivate,Di- or trihydroxybenzene and / or derivatives thereof,
- Pyridinderivate,- pyridine derivatives,
- Pyrimidinderivate,- pyrimidine derivatives,
- Monohydroxyindol-Derivate und/oder Monoaminoindol-Derivate,Monohydroxyindole derivatives and / or monoamine indole derivatives,
- Monohydroxyindolin-Derivate und/oder Monoaminoindolin-Derivate,Monohydroxyindoline derivatives and / or monoaminoindoline derivatives,
- Pyrazolonderivate, wie beispielsweise 1-Phenyl-3-methylpyrazol-5-on,Pyrazolone derivatives such as 1-phenyl-3-methylpyrazol-5-one,
- Morpholinderivate wie beispielsweise 6-Hydroxybenzomorpholin oder 6-Amino-benzomorpholin,Morpholine derivatives such as, for example, 6-hydroxybenzomorpholine or 6-aminobenzomorpholine,
- Chinoxalinderivate wie beispielsweise 6-Methyl-1 ,2,3,4-tetrahydrochinoxalin,Quinoxaline derivatives such as 6-methyl-1,2,3,4-tetrahydroquinoxaline,
Gemische aus zwei oder mehrer Verbindungen aus einer oder mehrerer dieser Klassen sind im Rahmen dieser Ausführungsform ebenso erfindungsgemäß.Mixtures of two or more compounds from one or more of these classes are also within the scope of this embodiment according to the invention.
Die erfindungsgemäß verwendbaren m-Aminophenole bzw. deren Derivate werden bevorzugt ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Formel (K1 ) und/oder aus mindestens einem physiologisch verträglichen Salz einer Verbindung gemäß Formel (K1 ),The m-aminophenols or derivatives thereof which can be used according to the invention are preferably selected from at least one compound of the formula (K1) and / or from at least one physiologically tolerated salt of a compound of the formula (K1),
Figure imgf000021_0001
worin
Figure imgf000021_0001
wherein
G1 und G2 unabhängig voneinander stehen für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine (Ci bis C4)- Alkylgruppe, eine (C3 bis C6)-Cycloalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Alkenylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Perfluoracylgruppe, eine Aryl-(Ci bis C6)-alkylgruppe, eine Amino-(Ci bis C6)-alkylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C6)-Dialkylamino-(d bis C6)-alkylgruppe oder eine (Ci bis C6)-Alkoxy-(Ci bis C6)-alkylgruppe, wobei G1 und G2 gemeinsam mit dem Stickstoffatom einen fünfgliedrigen, sechsgliedrigen oder siebengliedrigen Ring bilden können,G 1 and G 2 independently represent a hydrogen atom, a (Ci to C 4) - alkyl group, a (C 3 -C 6) cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4) alkenyl group, a (Ci to C 4 ) Monohydroxyalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) polyhydroxyalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) perfluoroacyl group, an aryl (C 1 to C 6 ) alkyl group, an amino (C 1 to C 6 ) alkyl group, a (Ci to C 6 ) dialkylamino (d to C 6 ) alkyl group or a (Ci to C 6 ) alkoxy (Ci to C 6 ) alkyl group, whereby G 1 and G 2 together with the Nitrogen atom can form a five-membered, six-membered or seven-membered ring,
G3 und G4 unabhängig voneinander stehen für ein Wasserstoffatom, ein Halogenatom, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkoxygruppe, eine Hydroxygruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe, eine Hydroxy- (Ci bis C4)-alkoxygruppe, eine (Ci bis C6)-Alkyox-(C2 bis C6)-alkoxygruppe, eine Arylgruppe oder eine Heteroarylgruppe.G 3 and G 4 independently represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a (Ci to C 4) alkyl group, a (Ci to C4) alkoxy group, a hydroxy group, a (Ci to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a ( C 2 to C 4 ) polyhydroxyalkyl group, a hydroxy (Ci to C 4 ) -alkoxygruppe, a (Ci to C 6 ) -Alkyox- (C 2 to C 6 ) -alkoxygruppe, an aryl group or a heteroaryl group.
Besonders bevorzugte m-Aminophenol-Kupplerkomponenten werden ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung aus der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus m-Aminophenol, 5-Amino-2- methylphenol, N-Cyclopentyl-3-aminophenol, 3-Amino-2-chlor-6-nnethylphenol, 2-Hydroxy-4- aminophenoxyethanol, 2,6-Dimethyl-3-anninophenol, 3-Trifluoroacetylamino-2-chlor-6- methylphenol, 5-Amino-4-chlor-2-nnethylphenol, 5-Amino-4-nnethoxy-2-nnethylphenol, 5-(2'- Hydroxyethyl)-amino-2-nnethylphenol, 3-(Diethylamino)-phenol, N-Cyclopentyl-3-aminophenol, 1 ,3-Dihydroxy-5-(methylamino)-benzol, 3-Ethylamino-4-methylphenol, 2,4-Dichlor-3-aminophenol und den physiologisch verträglichen Salzen aller vorstehend genannten Verbindungen.Particularly preferred m-aminophenol coupler components are selected from at least one compound selected from the group consisting of m-aminophenol, 5-amino-2-methylphenol, N-cyclopentyl-3-aminophenol, 3-amino-2-chloro-6 N-ethylphenol, 2-hydroxy-4-aminophenoxyethanol, 2,6-dimethyl-3-anninophenol, 3-trifluoroacetylamino-2-chloro-6-methylphenol, 5-amino-4-chloro-2-naphthylphenol, 5-amino-4 -nnethoxy-2-naphthylphenol, 5- (2'-hydroxyethyl) amino-2-naphthylphenol, 3- (diethylamino) phenol, N-cyclopentyl-3-aminophenol, 1,3-dihydroxy-5- (methylamino) - benzene, 3-ethylamino-4-methylphenol, 2,4-dichloro-3-aminophenol and the physiologically acceptable salts of all the abovementioned compounds.
Die erfindungsgemäß verwendbaren m-Diaminobenzole bzw. deren Derivate werden bevorzugt ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Formel (K2) und/oder aus mindestens einem physiologisch verträglichen Salz einer Verbindung gemäß Formel (K2),The m-diaminobenzenes or derivatives thereof which can be used according to the invention are preferably selected from at least one compound of the formula (K2) and / or from at least one physiologically tolerated salt of a compound of the formula (K2),
Figure imgf000022_0001
worin
Figure imgf000022_0001
wherein
G5, G6, G7 und G8 unabhängig voneinander stehen für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine (Ci bis C4)- Alkylgruppe, eine (C3 bis C6)-Cycloalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)- Alkenylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)- Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkoxy-(Ci bis C4)-alkylgruppe, eine Aryl-(d bis C4)-alkylgruppe, eine Heteroaryl-(d bis C4)-alkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Perfluoracylgruppe, oder gemeinsam mit dem Stickstoffatom einen fünfgliedrigen oder sechsgliedrigen Heterozyklus bilden G9 und G10 unabhängig voneinander stehen für ein Wasserstoffatom, ein Halogenatom, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkylgruppe, eine ω-(2,4-Diaminophenyl)-(Ci bis C4)- alkylgruppe, eine ω-(2,4-Diaminophenyloxy)-(Ci bis C4)-alkoxygruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkoxygruppe, eine Hydroxygruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkoxy-(C2 bis C4)-alkoxygruppe, eine Arylgruppe, eine Heteroarylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe, eine Hydroxy-(Ci bis C4)-alkoxygruppe.G 5, G 6, G 7 and G 8 are independently a hydrogen atom, a (Ci to C 4) - alkyl group, a (C 3 -C 6) cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4) - alkenyl group, a (Ci to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) - polyhydroxyalkyl group, a (C -C 4) alkoxy (Ci -C 4) alkyl group, an aryl (d to C4) - alkyl group, a heteroaryl (d to C 4 ) alkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) perfluoroacyl group, or together with the nitrogen atom form a five-membered or six-membered heterocycle G 9 and G 10 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group, an ω- (2,4-diaminophenyl) - (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group, an ω- (2 , 4-Diaminophenyloxy) - (Ci to C 4) alkoxy, (Ci to C 4) alkoxy group, a hydroxy group, a (Ci to C 4) alkoxy (C 2 to C 4) alkoxy group, an aryl group , alkoxy, a heteroaryl group, a (Ci to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) -polyhydroxyalkyl group, a hydroxy (Ci to C4).
Besonders bevorzugte m-Diaminobenzol-Kupplerkomponenten werden ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung aus der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus m-Phenylendiamin, 2-(2,4- Diaminophenoxy)ethanol, 1 ,3-Bis(2,4-diaminophenoxy)propan, 1-Methoxy-2-amino-4-(2'- hydroxyethylamino)benzol, 1 ,3-Bis(2,4-diaminophenyl)propan, 2,6-Bis(2'-hydroxyethylamino)-1- methylbenzol, 2-({3-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino]-4-nnethoxy-5-nnethylphenyl}annino)ethanol, 2-({3-[(2- Hydroxyethyl)amino]-2-methoxy-5-methylphenyl}amino)ethanol, 2-({3-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino]- 4,5-dimethylphenyl}annino)ethanol, 2-[3-Morpholin-4-ylphenyl)amino]ethanol, 3-Amino-4-(2- methoxyethoxy)-5-methylphenylannin, 1-Amino-3-bis-(2'-hydroxyethyl)-anninobenzol und den physiologisch verträglichen Salzen aller vorstehend genannten Verbindungen.Particularly preferred m-diaminobenzene coupler components are selected from at least one compound from the group formed from m-phenylenediamine, 2- (2,4-diaminophenoxy) ethanol, 1, 3-bis (2,4-diaminophenoxy) propane, 1-Methoxy-2-amino-4- (2'-hydroxyethylamino) benzene, 1, 3-bis (2,4-diaminophenyl) propane, 2,6-bis (2'-hydroxyethylamino) -1-methylbenzene, 2- ({3 - [(2-Hydroxyethyl) amino] -4-methoxy-5-methylphenyl} amino) ethanol, 2 - ({3 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -2-methoxy-5-methylphenyl} amino) ethanol, 2 - ({3 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -4,5-dimethylphenyl} -annino) ethanol, 2- [3-morpholin-4-yl-phenyl) -amino] -ethanol, 3-amino-4- (2 - Methoxyethoxy) -5-methylphenylannin, 1-amino-3-bis (2'-hydroxyethyl) -anninobenzene and the physiologically acceptable salts of all the above compounds.
Die erfindungsgemäß verwendbaren o-Diaminobenzole bzw. deren Derivate werden bevorzugt ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Formel (K3) und/oder aus mindestens einem physiologisch verträglichen Salz einer Verbindung gemäß Formel (K3),The o-diaminobenzenes or their derivatives which can be used according to the invention are preferably selected from at least one compound of the formula (K3) and / or from at least one physiologically tolerated salt of a compound of the formula (K3),
Figure imgf000023_0001
worin
Figure imgf000023_0001
wherein
G11, G12, G13 und G14 unabhängig voneinander stehen für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine (Ci bis C4)- Alkylgruppe, eine (C3 bis C6)-Cycloalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)- Alkenylgruppe, eine (C1 bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)- Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C1 bis C4)-Alkoxy-(C-ι bis C4)-alkylgruppe, eine Aryl-(C-ι bis C4)-alkylgruppe, eine Heteroaryl-(C-ι bis C4)-alkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Perfluoracylgruppe, oder gemeinsam mit dem Stickstoffatom einen fünfgliedrigen oder sechsgliedrigen Heterozyklus bildenG 11, G 12, G 13 and G 14 are independently a hydrogen atom, a (Ci to C 4) - alkyl group, a (C 3 -C 6) cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4) - alkenyl group, a (C 1 to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) - polyhydroxyalkyl group, a (C 1 to C 4) alkoxy alkyl (C-ι-C 4), aryl (C ι to C 4 ) alkyl group, a heteroaryl (C-ι to C 4 ) alkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) perfluoroacyl group, or together with the Nitrogen atom form a five-membered or six-membered heterocycle
G15 und G16 unabhängig voneinander stehen für ein Wasserstoffatom, einG 15 and G 16 independently represent a hydrogen atom, a
Halogenatom, eine Carboxylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkoxygruppe, eine Hydroxygruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)- Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe, eine Hydroxy-(Ci bis C4)-alkoxygruppe.Halogen atom, a carboxyl group, a (Ci to C 4) alkyl group, a (Ci to C4) alkoxy group, a hydroxy group, a (Ci to C 4) - monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) -polyhydroxyalkyl group, a Hydroxy (Ci to C 4 ) -alkoxygruppe.
Besonders bevorzugte o-Diaminobenzol-Kupplerkomponenten werden ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung aus der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus 3,4-Diaminobenzoesäure und 2,3-Diamino-1-nnethylbenzol und den physiologisch verträglichen Salzen aller vorstehend genannten Verbindungen.Particularly preferred o-diaminobenzene coupler components are selected from at least one compound selected from the group consisting of 3,4-diaminobenzoic acid and 2,3-diamino-1-ethylbenzene and the physiologically acceptable salts of all of the aforementioned compounds.
Bevorzugte Di- beziehungsweise Trihydroxybenzole und deren Derivate werden ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus Resorcin, Resorcinmonomethylether, 2-Methylresorcin, 5-Methylresorcin, 2,5-Dimethylresorcin, 2- Chlorresorcin, 4-Chlorresorcin, Pyrogallol und 1 ,2,4-Trihydroxybenzol.Preferred di- or trihydroxybenzenes and their derivatives are selected from at least one compound of the group formed from resorcinol, resorcinol monomethyl ether, 2-methylresorcinol, 5-methylresorcinol, 2,5-dimethylresorcinol, 2-chlororesorcinol, 4-chlororesorcinol, pyrogallol and 1 , 2,4-trihydroxybenzene.
Die erfindungsgemäß verwendbaren Pyridinderivate werden bevorzugt ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Formel (K4) und/oder aus mindestens einem physiologisch verträglichen Salz einer Verbindung gemäß Formel (K4),The pyridine derivatives which can be used according to the invention are preferably selected from at least one compound of the formula (K4) and / or from at least one physiologically tolerable salt of a compound of the formula (K4),
Figure imgf000024_0001
worin
Figure imgf000024_0001
wherein
G17 und G18 stehen unabhängig voneinander für eine Hydroxygruppe oder eine Gruppe - NG21G22, worin G21 und G22 unabhängig voneinander stehen für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkylgruppe, eine (C3 bis C6)-Cycloalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Alkenylgruppe, eine Arylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkoxy-(Ci bis C4)- alkylgruppe, eine Aryl-(Ci bis C4)-alkylgruppe, eine Heteroaryl-(Ci bis C4)- alkylgruppe, G19 und G20 stehen unabhängig voneinander für ein Wasserstoffatom, ein Halogenatom, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkylgruppe oder eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkoxygruppe.G 17 and G 18 independently of one another represent a hydroxyl group or a group - NG 21 G 22 , in which G 21 and G 22 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group, a (C 3 to C 6 ) cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4) alkenyl group, an aryl group, a (Ci to C 4) monohydroxyalkyl, a (C 2 to C 4) -polyhydroxyalkyl group, a (Ci-C 4) alkoxy- ( Ci to C 4) - alkyl group, an aryl (Ci to C 4) alkyl group, a heteroaryl- (Ci to C 4) - alkyl group, G 19 and G 20 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group or a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy group.
Es ist bevorzugt, wenn gemäß Formel (K4) die Reste G17 und G18 in ortho-Position oder in metaPosition zueinander stehen.It is preferred if, according to formula (K4), the radicals G 17 and G 18 are in the ortho position or in the meta position relative to one another.
Besonders bevorzugte Pyridinderivate werden ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus 2,6-Dihydroxypyridin, 2-Amino-3-hydroxypyridin, 2-Amino-5-chlor-3- hydroxypyridin, 3-Amino-2-methylamino-6-methoxypyridin, 2,6-Dihydroxy-3,4-dimethylpyridin, 2,6- Dihydroxy-4-methylpyridin, 2,6-Diaminopyridin, 2,3-Diamino-6-methoxypyridin, 3,5-Diamino-2,6- dimethoxypyridin, 3,4-Diaminopyridin, 2-(2-Methoxyethyl)amino-3-amino-6-methoxypyridin, 2-(4'- Methoxyphenyl)amino-3-aminopyridin, und den physiologisch verträglichen Salzen der vorgenannten Verbindungen.Particularly preferred pyridine derivatives are selected from at least one compound of the group formed from 2,6-dihydroxypyridine, 2-amino-3-hydroxypyridine, 2-amino-5-chloro-3-hydroxypyridine, 3-amino-2-methylamino 6-methoxypyridine, 2,6-dihydroxy-3,4-dimethylpyridine, 2,6-dihydroxy-4-methylpyridine, 2,6-diaminopyridine, 2,3-diamino-6-methoxypyridine, 3,5-diamino-2, 6-dimethoxypyridine, 3,4-diaminopyridine, 2- (2-methoxyethyl) amino-3-amino-6-methoxypyridine, 2- (4'-methoxyphenyl) amino-3-aminopyridine, and the physiologically acceptable salts of the aforementioned compounds.
Bevorzugte Naphthalinderivate mit mindestens einer Hydroxygruppe werden ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus 1-Naphthol, 2-Methyl-1-naphthol, 2-Hydroxymethyl-1-naphthol, 2-Hydroxyethyl-1-naphthol, 1 ,3-Dihydroxynaphthalin, 1 ,5- Dihydroxynaphthalin, 1 ,6-Dihydroxynaphthalin, 1 ,7-Dihydroxynaphthalin, 1 ,8-Dihydroxynaphthalin, 2,7-Dihydroxynaphthalin und 2,3-Dihydroxynaphthalin.Preferred naphthalene derivatives having at least one hydroxy group are selected from at least one compound of the group formed from 1-naphthol, 2-methyl-1-naphthol, 2-hydroxymethyl-1-naphthol, 2-hydroxyethyl-1-naphthol, 1, 3 Dihydroxynaphthalene, 1,5-dihydroxynaphthalene, 1,6-dihydroxynaphthalene, 1,7-dihydroxynaphthalene, 1,8-dihydroxynaphthalene, 2,7-dihydroxynaphthalene and 2,3-dihydroxynaphthalene.
Die erfindungsgemäß verwendbaren Indolderivate werden bevorzugt ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Formel (K5) und/oder aus mindestens einem physiologisch verträglichen Salz einer Verbindung gemäß Formel (K5),The indole derivatives which can be used according to the invention are preferably selected from at least one compound of the formula (K5) and / or from at least one physiologically tolerated salt of a compound of the formula (K5),
Figure imgf000025_0001
worin
Figure imgf000025_0001
wherein
.^23 steht für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkylgruppe, eine (C3 bis C6)- Cycloalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Alkenylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)- Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe, eine Aryl-(Ci bis C4)- alkylgruppe,. ^ 23 represents a hydrogen atom, a (Ci to C 4) alkyl group, a (C 3 -C 6) - cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4) alkenyl group, a (Ci to C 4) - monohydroxyalkyl a (C 2 to C 4) -polyhydroxyalkyl group, an aryl (Ci to C 4) - alkyl group,
G24 steht für eine Hydroxygruppe oder eine Gruppe -NG26G27, worin G26 und G27 unabhängig voneinander stehen für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine (C1 bis C4)-Alkylgruppe, eine (C3 bis C6)- Cycloalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Alkenylgruppe, eine (Ci bis C4)-G 24 represents a hydroxy group or a group -NG 26 G 27 , in which G 26 and G 27 independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group, a (C 3 to C 6 ) - Cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) alkenyl group, a (Ci to C 4 ) -
Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe, G25 Wasserstoffatom, ein Halogenatom oder eine (Ci bis C4)-Alkylgruppe, mit der Maßgabe, dass G24 in meta-Position oder ortho-Position zum Strukturfragment NG23 der Formel bindet.Monohydroxyalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) polyhydroxyalkyl group, G 25 hydrogen atom, a halogen atom or a (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl group, with the proviso that G 24 is in the meta position or ortho position to the structural fragment NG 23 of the Formula binds.
Besonders bevorzugte Indolderivate werden ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus 4-Hydroxyindol, 6-Hydroxyindol und 7-Hydroxyindol und den physiologisch verträglichen Salzen der vorgenannten Verbindungen.Particularly preferred indole derivatives are selected from at least one compound of the group which is formed from 4-hydroxyindole, 6-hydroxyindole and 7-hydroxyindole and the physiologically acceptable salts of the abovementioned compounds.
Die erfindungsgemäß verwendbaren Indolinderivate werden bevorzugt ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Formel (K6) und/oder aus mindestens einem physiologisch verträglichen Salz einer Verbindung gemäß Formel (K6),The indoline derivatives which can be used according to the invention are preferably selected from at least one compound of the formula (K6) and / or from at least one physiologically tolerable salt of a compound of the formula (K6),
Figure imgf000026_0001
worin
Figure imgf000026_0001
wherein
^28 steht für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine (C1 bis C4)-Alkylgruppe, eine (C3 bis C6)- Cycloalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Alkenylgruppe, eine (C1 bis C4)- Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe, eine Aryl-(C-ι bis C4)- alkylgruppe,^ 28 represents a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl group, a (C 3 to C 6 ) cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) alkenyl group, a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl group , a (C 2 to C 4 ) -polyhydroxyalkyl group, an aryl- (C 1 -C 4 ) -alkyl group,
G steht für eine Hydroxygruppe oder eine Gruppe -NG G , worin G und G unabhängig voneinander stehen für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine (C1 bis C4)-Alkylgruppe, eine (C3 bis C6)- Cycloalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Alkenylgruppe, eine (C1 bis C4)- Monohydroxyalkylgruppe, eine (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe,G represents a hydroxy group or a group -NG G, in which G and G independently of one another represent a hydrogen atom, a (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl group, a (C 3 to C 6 ) -cycloalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) alkenyl group, a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl group, a (C 2 to C 4 ) polyhydroxyalkyl group,
G30 Wasserstoffatom, ein Halogenatom oder eine (C1 bis C4)-Alkylgruppe, mit der Maßgabe, dass G29 in meta-Position oder ortho-Position zum Strukturfragment NG28 derG 30 is a hydrogen atom, a halogen atom or a (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl group, with the proviso that G 29 in the meta position or ortho position to the structural fragment NG 28 of
Formel bindet.Formula binds.
Besonders bevorzugte Indolinderivate werden ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus 4-Hydroxyindolin, 6-Hydroxyindolin und 7-Hydroxyindolin und den physiologisch verträglichen Salzen der vorgenannten Verbindungen. Bevorzugte Pyrimidinderivate werden ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus 4,6-Diaminopyrinnidin, 4-Amino-2,6-dihydroxypyrimidin, 2,4-Diamino-6- hydroxypyrimidin, 2,4,6-Trihydroxypyrimidin, 2-Amino-4-nnethylpyrinnidin, 2-Amino-4-hydroxy-6- methylpyrimidin und 4,6-Dihydroxy-2-methylpyrinnidin und den physiologisch verträglichen Salzen der vorgenannten Verbindungen.Particularly preferred indoline derivatives are selected from at least one compound of the group formed from 4-hydroxyindoline, 6-hydroxyindoline and 7-hydroxyindoline and the physiologically acceptable salts of the aforementioned compounds. Preferred pyrimidine derivatives are selected from at least one compound of the group formed from 4,6-diaminopyrinnidine, 4-amino-2,6-dihydroxypyrimidine, 2,4-diamino-6-hydroxypyrimidine, 2,4,6-trihydroxypyrimidine, 2 -Amino-4-niethylpyrinnidin, 2-amino-4-hydroxy-6-methylpyrimidine and 4,6-dihydroxy-2-methylpyrinnidin and the physiologically acceptable salts of the aforementioned compounds.
Erfindungsgemäß besonders bevorzugte Kupplerkomponenten werden ausgewählt unter m- Aminophenol, 5-Amino-2-nnethylphenol, 3-Amino-2-chlor-6-nnethylphenol, 2-Hydroxy-4- aminophenoxyethanol, 5-Amino-4-chlor-2-nnethylphenol, 5-(2'-Hydroxyethyl)-amino-2- methylphenol, 2,4-Dichlor-3-aminophenol, o-Aminophenol, m-Phenylendiamin, 2-(2,4- Diaminophenoxy)ethanol, 1 ,3-Bis(2,4-diaminophenoxy)propan, 1-Methoxy-2-amino-4-(2'- hydroxyethylamino)benzol, 1 ,3-Bis(2,4-diaminophenyl)propan, 2,6-Bis(2'-hydroxyethylamino)-1- methylbenzol, 2-({3-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino]-4-methoxy-5-methylphenyl}amino)ethanol, 2-({3-[(2- Hydroxyethyl)amino]-2-nnethoxy-5-nnethylphenyl}annino)ethanol, 2-({3-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino]- 4,5-dimethylphenyl}annino)ethanol, 2-[3-Morpholin-4-ylphenyl)amino]ethanol, 3-Amino-4-(2- methoxyethoxy)-5-nnethylphenylannin, 1-Amino-3-bis-(2'-hydroxyethyl)-anninobenzol, Resorcin, 2- Methylresorcin, 4-Chlorresorcin, 1 ,2,4-Trihydroxybenzol, 2-Amino-3-hydroxypyridin, 3-Amino-2- methylannino-6-nnethoxypyridin, 2,6-Dihydroxy-3,4-dimethylpyridin, 3,5-Diamino-2,6- dimethoxypyridin, 1-Phenyl-3-methylpyrazol-5-on, 1-Naphthol, 1 ,5-Dihydroxynaphthalin, 2,7- Dihydroxynaphthalin, 1 ,7-Dihydroxynaphthalin, 1 ,8-Dihydroxynaphthalin, 4-Hydroxyindol, 6- Hydroxyindol, 7-Hydroxyindol, 4-Hydroxyindolin, 6-Hydroxyindolin, 7-Hydroxyindolin oder Gemischen dieser Verbindungen oder den physiologisch verträglichen Salzen der vorgenannten Verbindungen.Particularly preferred coupler components according to the invention are selected from m-aminophenol, 5-amino-2-naphthylphenol, 3-amino-2-chloro-6-naphthylphenol, 2-hydroxy-4-aminophenoxyethanol, 5-amino-4-chloro-2-naphthylphenol , 5- (2'-hydroxyethyl) amino-2-methylphenol, 2,4-dichloro-3-aminophenol, o-aminophenol, m-phenylenediamine, 2- (2,4-diaminophenoxy) ethanol, 1,3-bis (2,4-diaminophenoxy) propane, 1-methoxy-2-amino-4- (2'-hydroxyethylamino) benzene, 1, 3-bis (2,4-diaminophenyl) propane, 2,6-bis (2'-bis) hydroxyethylamino) -1-methylbenzene, 2 - ({3 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -4-methoxy-5-methylphenyl} amino) ethanol, 2 - ({3 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -2 -nethoxy-5-methylphenyl} -annino) -ethanol, 2- ({3 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -4,5-dimethylphenyl} -annino) -ethanol, 2- [3-morpholin-4-yl-phenyl) -amino] -ethanol , 3-amino-4- (2-methoxyethoxy) -5-methylphenylannin, 1-amino-3-bis (2'-hydroxyethyl) -anninobenzene, resorcinol, 2-methylresorcinol, 4-chlororesorcinol, 1, 2,4- Trihydroxybenzene, 2-amino-3-hydroxypyridine, 3-amino-2-methylannino-6-n nethoxypyridine, 2,6-dihydroxy-3,4-dimethylpyridine, 3,5-diamino-2,6-dimethoxypyridine, 1-phenyl-3-methylpyrazol-5-one, 1-naphthol, 1, 5-dihydroxynaphthalene, 2, 7- Dihydroxynaphthalene, 1, 7-dihydroxynaphthalene, 1, 8-dihydroxynaphthalene, 4-hydroxyindole, 6-hydroxyindole, 7-hydroxyindole, 4-hydroxyindoline, 6-hydroxyindoline, 7-hydroxyindoline or mixtures of these compounds or the physiologically acceptable salts of the aforementioned Links.
Die Kupplerkomponenten werden bevorzugt in einer Menge von 0,005 bis 20 Gew.-%, vorzugsweise 0,1 bis 5 Gew.-%, jeweils bezogen auf das anwendungsbereite Oxidationsfärbemittel, verwendet.The coupler components are preferably used in an amount of 0.005 to 20 wt .-%, preferably 0.1 to 5 wt .-%, each based on the ready-to-use oxidation colorant.
Dabei werden Entwicklerkomponenten und Kupplerkomponenten im Allgemeinen in etwa molaren Mengen zueinander eingesetzt. Wenn sich auch der molare Einsatz als zweckmäßig erwiesen hat, so ist ein gewisser Überschuss einzelner Oxidationsfarbstoffvorprodukte nicht nachteilig, so dass Entwicklerkomponenten und Kupplerkomponenten in einem Mol-Verhältnis von 1 :0,5 bis 1 :3, insbesondere 1 :1 bis 1 :2, stehen können. Im folgenden werden Beispiele für die als Substituenten der Verbindungen der Formeln (K1 ) bis (K6) genannten Reste aufgezählt: Beispiele für (Ci bis C4)-Alkylreste sind die Gruppen -CH3,In this case, developer components and coupler components are generally used in approximately molar amounts to each other. Although the molar use has proven to be expedient, a certain excess of individual oxidation dye precursors is not disadvantageous, so that developer components and coupler components in a molar ratio of 1: 0.5 to 1: 3, in particular 1: 1 to 1: 2 , can stand. The following are examples of the radicals mentioned as substituents of the compounds of the formulas (K1) to (K6): Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkyl radicals are the groups -CH 3 ,
-(-/H2CH3, -CH2CH2CH3, -CH(CH3)2, -CH2CH2CH2CH3, -CH2CH(CH3)2, -CH(CH3)CH2CH3,- (- / H 2 CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 3 , -CH (CH 3 ) 2 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 3 , -CH 2 CH (CH 3 ) 2 , -CH (CH 3 ) CH 2 CH 3 ,
C(CH3)3.C (CH 3 ) 3 .
Erfindungsgemäße Beispiele für (C3 bis C6)-Cycloalkylgruppen sind die Cyclopropyl, dieInventive examples of (C 3 to C 6 ) -cycloalkyl groups are the cyclopropyl, the
Cyclopentyl und die Cyclohexylgruppe.Cyclopentyl and the cyclohexyl group.
Erfindungsgemäße Beispiele für (Ci bis C4)-Alkoxyreste sind -OCH3, -OCH2CH3,Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy radicals according to the invention are -OCH 3 , -OCH 2 CH 3 ,
-OCH2CH2CH3, -OCH(CHs)2, -OCH2CH2CH2CH3, -OCH2CH(CH3)2, -OCH(CH3)CH2CH3, --OCH 2 CH 2 CH 3 , -OCH (CH 2 ) 2 , -OCH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 3 , -OCH 2 CH (CH 3 ) 2 , -OCH (CH 3 ) CH 2 CH 3 ,
OC(CH3)3, insbesondere eine Methoxy- oder eine Ethoxygruppe.OC (CH 3 ) 3 , in particular a methoxy or an ethoxy group.
Weiterhin können als bevorzugte Beispiele für eine (C1 bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylgruppe -CH2OH,Furthermore, as preferred examples of a (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkyl group, -CH 2 OH,
-CH2CH2OH, -CH2CH2CH2OH, -CH2CH(OH)CH3, -CH2CH2CH2CH2OH genannt werden, wobei die-CH 2 CH 2 OH, -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH, -CH 2 CH (OH) CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH, wherein the
Gruppe -CH2CH2OH bevorzugt ist.Group -CH 2 CH 2 OH is preferred.
Ein besonders bevorzugtes Beispiel einer (C2 bis C4)-Polyhydroxyalkylgruppe ist die 1 ,2-A particularly preferred example of a (C 2 to C 4 ) polyhydroxyalkyl group is 1, 2
Dihydroxyethylgruppe.Dihydroxyethyl.
Beispiele für Halogenatome sind F-, Cl- oder Br-Atome, Cl-Atome sind ganz besonders bevorzugte Beispiele.Examples of halogen atoms are F, Cl or Br atoms, Cl atoms are very particularly preferred examples.
Beispiele für stickstoffhaltige Gruppen sind insbesondere -NH2, (Ci bis C4)-Examples of nitrogen-containing groups are in particular -NH 2 , (C 1 to C 4 ) -
Monoalkylaminogruppen, (Ci bis C4)-Dialkylaminogruppen, (Ci bis C4)-Monoalkylamino groups, (C 1 to C 4 ) -dialkylamino groups, (C 1 to C 4 ) -
Trialkylammoniumgruppen, (Ci bis C4)-Monohydroxyalkylaminogruppen, Imidazolinium und -Trialkylammonium groups, (C 1 to C 4 ) monohydroxyalkylamino groups, imidazolinium and
NH3 +.NH 3 + .
Beispiele für (Ci bis C4)-Monoalkylaminogruppen sind -NHCH3, -NHCH2CH3, -NHCH2CH2CH3,Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -monoalkylamino groups are -NHCH 3 , -NHCH 2 CH 3 , -NHCH 2 CH 2 CH 3 ,
-NHCH(CH3)2.-NHCH (CH 3 ) 2 .
Beispiele für (C1 bis C4)-Dialkylaminogruppe sind -N(CH3)2, -N(CH2CH3)2.Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -dialkylamino group are -N (CH 3 ) 2 , -N (CH 2 CH 3 ) 2 .
Beispiele für (C1 bis C4)-Alkoxy-(C-ι bis C4)-alkylgruppen sind die Gruppen -CH2CH2-O-CH3,Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy- (C 1 -C 4 ) -alkyl groups are the groups -CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH 3 ,
-CH2CH2CH2-O-CH3, -CH2CH2-O-CH2CH3, -CH2CH2CH2-O-CH2CH3, -CH2CH2-O-CH(CH3)2,-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH 2 CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH 2 CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH (CH 3 ) 2 ,
-CH2CH2CH2-O-CH(CH3)2.-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH (CH 3 ) 2 .
Beispiele für (C1 bis C4)-Alkoxy-(C-ι bis C4)-alkoxygruppen sind die Gruppen -0-CH2CH2-O-CH3,Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -alkoxy (C 1 -C 4 ) -alkoxy groups are the groups -O-CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH 3 ,
-0-CH2CH2CH2-O-CH3, -0-CH2CH2-O-CH2CH3, -0-CH2CH2CH2-O-CH2CH3,-O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH 3 , -O-CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH 2 CH 3 , -O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH 2 CH 3 ,
-O-CH2CH2-O-CH(CH3)2, -O-CH2CH2CH2-O-CH(CH3)2.-O-CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH (CH 3 ) 2 , -O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -O-CH (CH 3 ) 2 .
Beispiele für Hydroxy-(C-, bis C4)-alkoxyreste sind -0-CH2OH, -0-CH2CH2OH, -0-CH2CH2CH2OH,Examples of hydroxy (C 1 -C 4 ) -alkoxy radicals are -O-CH 2 OH, -O-CH 2 CH 2 OH, -O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH,
-O-CH2CH(OH)CH3, -O-CH2CH2CH2CH2OH.-O-CH 2 CH (OH) CH 3 , -O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 OH.
Beispiele für (C1 bis C4)-Aminoalkylreste sind -CH2NH2, -CH2CH2NH2, -CH2CH2CH2NH2,Examples of (C 1 to C 4 ) -aminoalkyl radicals are -CH 2 NH 2 , -CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 ,
-CH2CH(NH2)CH31 -CH2CH2CH2CH2NH2.-CH 2 CH (NH 2 ) CH 31 -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 .
Ein Beispiel für Arylgruppen ist die Phenylgruppe, die auch substituiert sein kann.An example of aryl groups is the phenyl group, which may also be substituted.
Beispiele für Aryl-(d bis C4)-alkylgruppen sind die Benzylgruppe und die 2-Phenylethylgruppe. Das erfindungsgemäße Mittel kann als farbverändernde Komponente in Form der Oxofarbstoffvorprodukte mindestens eine Kombination, aus mindestens einer Verbindung der KomponenteExamples of aryl (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl groups are the benzyl group and the 2-phenylethyl group. The composition of the invention can be used as color-modifying component in the form of the Oxofarbstoffvorprodukte at least one combination of at least one compound of the component
1 Verbindungen, die eine reaktive Carbonylgruppe enthalten mit mindestens einer Verbindung der Komponente1 compounds containing a reactive carbonyl group with at least one compound of the component
2 Verbindungen, ausgewählt aus (a) CH-aciden Verbindungen, (b) Verbindungen mit primärer oder sekundärer Aminogruppe oder Hydroxygruppe, ausgewählt aus primären oder sekundären aromatischen Aminen, stickstoffhaltigen heterozyklischen Verbindungen und aromatischen Hydroxyverbindungen enthalten.2 compounds selected from (a) CH-acidic compounds, (b) compounds containing primary or secondary amino group or hydroxy group selected from primary or secondary aromatic amines, nitrogen-containing heterocyclic compounds and aromatic hydroxy compounds.
Erfindungsgemäße Verbindungen mit einer reaktiven Carbonylgruppe (im Folgenden auch reaktive Carbonylverbindungen oder Komponente 1 genannt) besitzen mindestens eine Carbonylgruppe als reaktive Gruppe, welche mit den Verbindungen der Komponente 2 unter Ausbildung einer beide Komponenten verknüpfenden chemischen Bindung reagiert. Dies sind bevorzugt Aldehyde und/oder Ketone. Ferner sind erfindungsgemäß auch solche Verbindungen als Komponente 1 umfaßt, in denen die reaktive Carbonylgruppe derart derivatisiert bzw. maskiert ist, daß die Reaktivität des Kohlenstoffatoms der derivatisierten bzw. maskierten Carbonylgruppe gegenüber der Komponente 2 stets vorhanden ist. Diese Derivate sind bevorzugt Kondensationsverbindungen von reaktiven Carbonylverbindungen mit a) Aminen und deren Derivate unter Bildung von Iminen oder Oximen als Kondensationsverbindung b) Alkoholen unter Bildung von Acetalen oder Ketalen als Kondensationsverbindung c) Wasser unter Bildung von Hydraten als Kondensationsverbindung von Aldehyden.Compounds according to the invention having a reactive carbonyl group (also referred to below as reactive carbonyl compounds or component 1) have at least one carbonyl group as reactive group which reacts with the compounds of component 2 to form a chemical bond linking both components. These are preferably aldehydes and / or ketones. Further, according to the invention, those compounds are also included as component 1 in which the reactive carbonyl group is derivatized or masked in such a way that the reactivity of the carbon atom of the derivatized or masked carbonyl group with respect to the component 2 is always present. These derivatives are preferably condensation compounds of reactive carbonyl compounds with a) amines and their derivatives to form imines or oximes as a condensation compound b) alcohols to form acetals or ketals as a condensation compound c) water to form hydrates as a condensation compound of aldehydes.
Die Komponente 1 wird bevorzugt ausgewählt aus der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus Acetophenon, Propiophenon, 2-Hydroxyacetophenon, 3-Hydroxyacetophenon, 4-Hydroxy- acetophenon, 2-Hydroxypropiophenon, 3-Hydroxypropiophenon, 4-Hydroxypropiophenon, 2- Hydroxybutyrophenon, 3-Hydroxybutyrophenon, 4-Hydroxybutyrophenon, 2,4-Dihydroxy- acetophenon, 2,5-Dihydroxyacetophenon, 2,6-Dihydroxyacetophenon, 2,3,4-Trihydroxy- acetophenon, 3,4,5-Trihydroxyacetophenon, 2,4,6-Trihydroxyacetophenon, 2,4,6-Trimeth- oxyacetophenon, 3,4,5-Trimethoxyacetophenon, 3,4,5-Trimethoxy-acetophenon-diethylketal, 4- Hydroxy-3-methoxy-acetophenon, 3,5-Dimethoxy-4-hydroxyacetophenon, 4-Aminoacetophenon, 4-Dimethylaminoacetophenon, 4-Morpholinoacetophenon, 4-Piperidinoacetophenon, 4- Imidazolinoacetophenon, 2-Hydroxy-5-brom-acetophenon, 4-Hydroxy-3-nitroacetophenon, Acetophenon-2-carbonsäure, Acetophenon-4-carbonsäure, Benzophenon, A-Component 1 is preferably selected from the group formed from acetophenone, propiophenone, 2-hydroxyacetophenone, 3-hydroxyacetophenone, 4-hydroxyacetophenone, 2-hydroxypropiophenone, 3-hydroxypropiophenone, 4-hydroxypropiophenone, 2-hydroxybutyrophenone, 3 Hydroxybutyrophenone, 4-hydroxybutyrophenone, 2,4-dihydroxyacetophenone, 2,5-dihydroxyacetophenone, 2,6-dihydroxyacetophenone, 2,3,4-trihydroxyacetophenone, 3,4,5-trihydroxyacetophenone, 2,4,6-dihydroxyacetophenone Trihydroxyacetophenone, 2,4,6-trimethoxyacetophenone, 3,4,5-trimethoxyacetophenone, 3,4,5-trimethoxyacetophenone diethyl ketal, 4-hydroxy-3-methoxy-acetophenone, 3,5-dimethoxy-4- hydroxyacetophenone, 4-aminoacetophenone, 4-dimethylaminoacetophenone, 4-morpholinoacetophenone, 4-piperidinoacetophenone, 4- Imidazolinoacetophenone, 2-hydroxy-5-bromo-acetophenone, 4-hydroxy-3-nitroacetophenone, acetophenone-2-carboxylic acid, acetophenone-4-carboxylic acid, benzophenone, A-
Hydroxybenzophenon, 2-Aminobenzophenon, 4,4'-Dihydroxybenzophenon, 2,4-Dihydroxy- benzophenon, 2,4,4'-Trihydroxybenzophenon, 2,3,4-Trihydroxybenzophenon, 2-Hydroxy-1- acetonaphthon, 1-Hydroxy-2-acetonaphthon, Chromon, Chromon-2-carbonsäure, Flavon, 3- Hydroxyflavon, 3,5,7-Trihydroxyflavon, 4',5,7-Trihydroxyflavon, 5,6,7-Trihydroxyflavon, Quercetin, 1-lndanon, 9-Fluorenon, 3-Hydroxyfluorenon, Anthron, 1 ,8-Dihydroxyanthron, Vanillin, Coniferylaldehyd, 2-Methoxybenzaldehyd, 3-Methoxybenzaldehyd, 4-Methoxybenzaldehyd, 2- Ethoxybenzaldehyd, 3-Ethoxybenzaldehyd, 4-Ethoxybenzaldehyd, 4-Hydroxy-2,3-dimethoxy- benzaldehyd, 4-Hydroxy-2,5-dimethoxy-benzaldehyd, 4-Hydroxy-2,6-dimethoxy-benzaldehyd, A- Hydroxy-2-methyl-benzaldehyd, 4-Hydroxy-3-methyl-benzaldehyd, 4-Hydroxy-2,3-dimethyl- benzaldehyd, 4-Hydroxy-2,5-dimethyl-benzaldehyd, 4-Hydroxy-2,6-dimethyl-benzaldehyd, A- Hydroxy-3,5-dimethoxy-benzaldehyd, 4-Hydroxy-3,5-dimethyl-benzaldehyd, 3,5-Diethoxy-4- hydroxy-benzaldehyd, 2,6-Diethoxy-4-hydroxy-benzaldehyd, 3-Hydroxy-4-methoxy-benzaldehyd, 2-Hydroxy-4-methoxy-benzaldehyd, 2-Ethoxy-4-hydroxy-benzaldehyd, 3-Ethoxy-4-hydroxy-benz- aldehyd, 4-Ethoxy-2-hydroxy-benzaldehyd, 4-Ethoxy-3-hydroxy-benzaldehyd, 2,3-Dimethoxy- benzaldehyd, 2,4-Dimethoxybenzaldehyd, 2,5-Dimethoxybenzaldehyd, 2,6-Dimethoxy- benzaldehyd, 3,4-Dimethoxybenzaldehyd, 3,5-Dimethoxybenzaldehyd, 2,3,4-Trimethoxy- benzaldehyd, 2,3,5-Trimethoxybenzaldehyd, 2,3,6-Trimethoxybenzaldehyd, 2,4,6-Tri- methoxybenzaldehyd, 2,4,5-Trimethoxybenzaldehyd, 2,5,6-Trimethoxybenzaldehyd, 2- Hydroxybenzaldehyd, 3-Hydroxybenzaldehyd, 4-Hydroxybenzaldehyd, 2,3-Dihydroxy- benzaldehyd, 2,4-Dihydroxybenzaldehyd, 2,5-Dihydroxybenzaldehyd, 2,6-Dihydroxybenzaldehyd, 3,4-Dihydroxybenzaldehyd, 3,5-Dihydroxybenzaldehyd, 2,3,4-Trihydroxybenzaldehyd, 2,3,5- Trihydroxybenzaldehyd, 2,3,6-Trihydroxybenzaldehyd, 2,4,6-Trihydroxybenzaldehyd, 2,4,5- Trihydroxybenzaldehyd, 2,5,6-Trihydroxybenzaldehyd, 4-Hydroxy-2-methoxybenzaldehyd, A- Dimethylaminobenzaldehyd, 4-Diethylaminobenzaldehyd, 4-Dimethylannino-2-hydroxybenz- aldehyd, 4-Diethylamino-2-hydroxybenzaldehyd, 4-Pyrrolidinobenzaldehyd, A-Hydroxybenzophenone, 2-aminobenzophenone, 4,4'-dihydroxybenzophenone, 2,4-dihydroxybenzophenone, 2,4,4'-trihydroxybenzophenone, 2,3,4-trihydroxybenzophenone, 2-hydroxy-1-acetonaphthone, 1-hydroxybenzophenone 2-acetonaphthone, chromone, chromone-2-carboxylic acid, flavone, 3-hydroxyflavone, 3,5,7-trihydroxyflavone, 4 ', 5,7-trihydroxyflavone, 5,6,7-trihydroxyflavone, quercetin, 1-indanone, 9 Fluorenone, 3-hydroxyfluorenone, anthrone, 1,8-dihydroxyanthrone, vanillin, coniferylaldehyde, 2-methoxybenzaldehyde, 3-methoxybenzaldehyde, 4-methoxybenzaldehyde, 2-ethoxybenzaldehyde, 3-ethoxybenzaldehyde, 4-ethoxybenzaldehyde, 4-hydroxy-2,3 -dimethoxybenzaldehyde, 4-hydroxy-2,5-dimethoxybenzaldehyde, 4-hydroxy-2,6-dimethoxybenzaldehyde, A-hydroxy-2-methylbenzaldehyde, 4-hydroxy-3-methylbenzaldehyde, 4 Hydroxy-2,3-dimethylbenzaldehyde, 4-hydroxy-2,5-dimethylbenzaldehyde, 4-hydroxy-2,6-dimethylbenzaldehyde, A-hydroxy-3,5-dimethoxybenzaldehyde, 4-hydroxy -3,5-dimethylbenzaldehyde, 3,5-diethoxy-4-hydroxy-benzaldehyde, 2,6-diethoxy-4-hy hydroxybenzaldehyde, 3-hydroxy-4-methoxybenzaldehyde, 2-hydroxy-4-methoxybenzaldehyde, 2-ethoxy-4-hydroxybenzaldehyde, 3-ethoxy-4-hydroxybenzaldehyde, 4-ethoxy 2-hydroxybenzaldehyde, 4-ethoxy-3-hydroxybenzaldehyde, 2,3-dimethoxybenzaldehyde, 2,4-dimethoxybenzaldehyde, 2,5-dimethoxybenzaldehyde, 2,6-dimethoxbenzaldehyde, 3,4-dimethoxybenzaldehyde, 3,5-dimethoxybenzaldehyde, 2,3,4-trimethoxybenzaldehyde, 2,3,5-trimethoxybenzaldehyde, 2,3,6-trimethoxybenzaldehyde, 2,4,6-trimethoxybenzaldehyde, 2,4,5-trimethoxybenzaldehyde, 2,5,6-trimethoxybenzaldehyde, 2-hydroxybenzaldehyde, 3-hydroxybenzaldehyde, 4-hydroxybenzaldehyde, 2,3-dihydroxybenzaldehyde, 2,4-dihydroxybenzaldehyde, 2,5-dihydroxybenzaldehyde, 2,6-dihydroxybenzaldehyde, 3,4- Dihydroxybenzaldehyde, 3,5-dihydroxybenzaldehyde, 2,3,4-trihydroxybenzaldehyde, 2,3,5-trihydroxybenzaldehyde, 2,3,6-trihydroxybenzaldehyde, 2,4,6-trihydroxybenzaldehyde, 2,4,5-trihydroxybenzaldehyde, 2, 5,6-trihydroxybenzaldehyde, 4-hydroxy-2-methoxybenzaldehyde, A-dimethylamine nobenzaldehyde, 4-diethylaminobenzaldehyde, 4-dimethylannino-2-hydroxybenzaldehyde, 4-diethylamino-2-hydroxybenzaldehyde, 4-pyrrolidinobenzaldehyde, A-
Morpholinobenzaldehyd, 2-Morpholinobenzaldehyd, 4-Piperidinobenzaldehyd, 2-Methoxy-1- naphthaldehyd, 4-Methoxy-1-naphthaldehyd, 2-Hydroxy-1-naphthaldehyd, 2,4-Dihydroxy-1- napthaldehyd, 4-Hydroxy-3-methoxy-1-naphthaldehyd, 2-Hydroxy-4-methoxy-1-naphthaldehyd, 3- Hydroxy-4-methoxy-1-naphthaldehyd, 2,4-Dimethoxy-1-naphthaldehyd, 3,4-Dimethoxy-1- naphthaldehyd, 4-Hydroxy-1-naphthaldehyd, 4-Dimethylannino-1-naphthaldehyd, 2-Methoxy- zimtaldehyd, 4-Methoxy-zimtaldehyd, 4-Hydroxy-3-methoxy-zinntaldehyd, 3,5-Dimethoxy-4- hydroxy-zimtaldehyd, 4-Dimethylaminozinntaldehyd, 2-Dimethylanninobenzaldehyd, 2-Chlor-4- dimethylanninobenzaldehyd, 4-Dimethylamino-2-methylbenzaldehyd, 4-Diethylamino-zinntaldehyd, 4-Dibutylamino-benzaldehyd, 4-Diphenylamino-benzaldehyd, 4-Dimethylannino-2-nnethoxybenzal- dehyd, 4-(1-lmidazolyl)-benzaldehyd, Piperonal, 2,3,6,7-Tetrahydro-1 H,5H-benzo[ij]chinolizin-9- carboxaldehyd, 2,3,6,7-Tetrahydro-8-hydroxy-1 H,5H-benzo[ij]chinolizin-9-carboxaldehyd, N- Ethylcarbazol-3-aldehyd, 2-Formylmethylen-1 ,3,3-trimethylindolin (Fischers Aldehyd oder Tribasen Aldehyd),Morpholinobenzaldehyde, 2-morpholinobenzaldehyde, 4-piperidinobenzaldehyde, 2-methoxy-1-naphthaldehyde, 4-methoxy-1-naphthaldehyde, 2-hydroxy-1-naphthaldehyde, 2,4-dihydroxy-1-naphthaldehyde, 4-hydroxy-3- 3-hydroxy-4-methoxy-1-naphthaldehyde, 2,4-dimethoxy-1-naphthaldehyde, 3,4-dimethoxy-1-naphthaldehyde, 4-hydroxy-1-naphthaldehyde, 4-dimethylannino-1-naphthaldehyde, 2-methoxycinnamaldehyde, 4-methoxycinnamaldehyde, 4-hydroxy-3-methoxy-cinnamaldehyde, 3,5-dimethoxy-4-hydroxy-cinnamaldehyde, 4-dimethylamino-tin-aldehyde, 2-dimethyl-aminobenzaldehyde, 2-chloro-4-dimethyl-aminobenzaldehyde, 4-dimethylamino-2-methylbenzaldehyde, 4-diethylamino-tin-aldehyde, 4-dibutylaminobenzaldehyde, 4-diphenylaminobenzaldehyde, 4-dimethylannino-2-nethanethoxybenzaldehyde, 4- (1-imidazolyl) benzaldehyde, piperonal, 2,3,6,7-tetrahydro-1H, 5H-benzo [ij] quinolizine-9-carboxaldehyde, 2,3,6,7-tetrahydro-8-hydroxy-1 H, 5H-benzo [ij] quinolizine-9-carboxaldehyde, N-ethylcarbazole-3-aldehyde, 2-formylmethylene 1, 3,3-trimethylindoline (Fischer's aldehyde or tribasic aldehyde),
2-lndolaldehyd, 3-lndolaldehyd, 1-Methylindol-3-aldehyd, 2-Methylindol-3-aldehyd, 1-Acetylindol- 3-aldehyd, 3-Acetylindol, 1-Methyl-3-acetylindol, 2-(1',3',3'-Trimethyl-2-indolinyliden)-acetaldehyd, 1-Methylpyrrol-2-aldehyd, 1-Methyl-2-acetylpyrrol, 4-Pyridinaldehyd, 2-Pyridinaldehyd, 3- Pyridinaldehyd, 4-Acetylpyridin, 2-Acetylpyridin, 3-Acetylpyridin, Pyridoxal, Chinolin-3-aldehyd, Chinolin-4-aldehyd, Antipyrin-4-aldehyd, Furfural, 5-Nitrofurfural, 2-Thenoyl-trifluor-aceton, Chromon-3-aldehyd, 3-(5'-Nitro-2'-furyl)-acrolein, 3-(2'- Furyl)-acrolein und lmidazol-2-aldehyd, 1 ,3-Diacetylbenzol, 1 ,4-Diacetylbenzol, 1 ,3,5-Triacetylbenzol, 2-Benzoyl-acetophenon, 2-(4'- Methoxybenzoyl)-acetophenon, 2-(2'-Furoyl)-acetophenon, 2-(2'-Pyridoyl)-acetophenon und 2-(3'- Pyridoyl)-acetophenon ,2-indolaldehyde, 3-indolaldehyde, 1-methylindole-3-aldehyde, 2-methylindole-3-aldehyde, 1-acetylindole-3-aldehyde, 3-acetylindole, 1-methyl-3-acetylindole, 2- (1 ', 3 ', 3'-trimethyl-2-indolinylidene) -acetaldehyde, 1-methylpyrrole-2-aldehyde, 1-methyl-2-acetylpyrrole, 4-pyridine aldehyde, 2-pyridine aldehyde, 3-pyridine aldehyde, 4-acetylpyridine, 2-acetylpyridine , 3-acetylpyridine, pyridoxal, quinoline-3-aldehyde, quinoline-4-aldehyde, antipyrin-4-aldehyde, furfural, 5-nitrofurfural, 2-thenoyl-trifluoro-acetone, chromon-3-aldehyde, 3- (5 ' Nitro-2'-furyl) acrolein, 3- (2'-furyl) acrolein and imidazole-2-aldehyde, 1, 3-diacetylbenzene, 1, 4-diacetylbenzene, 1, 3,5-triacetylbenzene, 2- Benzoyl-acetophenone, 2- (4'-methoxybenzoyl) -acetophenone, 2- (2'-furoyl) -acetophenone, 2- (2'-pyridoyl) -acetophenone and 2- (3'-pyridoyl) -acetophenone,
Benzylidenaceton, 4-Hydroxybenzylidenaceton, 2-Hydroxybenzylidenaceton, 4-Methoxybenzyli- denaceton, 4-Hydroxy-3-methoxybenzylidenaceton, 4-Dimethylanninobenzylidenaceton, 3,4-Me- thylendioxybenzylidenaceton, 4-Pyrrolidinobenzylidenaceton, 4-Piperidinobenzylidenaceton, A- Morpholinobenzylidenaceton, 4-Diethylaminobenzylidenaceton, 3-Benzyliden-2,4-pentandion, 3- (4'-Hydroxybenzyliden)-2,4-pentandion, 3-(4'-Dimethylanninobenzyliden)-2,4-pentandion, 2- Benzylidencyclohexanon, 2-(4'-Hydroxybenzyliden)-cyclohexanon, 2-(4'-Dimethylanninobenzy- liden)-cyclohexanon, 2-Benzyliden-1 ,3-cyclohexandion, 2-(4'-Hydroxybenzyliden)-1 ,3-cyclohexan- dion, 3-(4'-Dimethylanninobenzyliden)-1 ,3-cyclohexandion, 2-Benzyliden-5,5-dimethyl-1 ,3-cyclohexandion, 2-(4'-Hydroxybenzyliden)-5,5-dimethyl-1 ,3-cyclohexandion, 2-(4'-Hydroxy-3-meth- oxybenzyliden)-5,5-dimethyl-1 ,3-cyclohexandion, 2-(4'-Dimethylaminobenzyliden)-5,5-dimethyl- 1 ,3-cyclohexandion, 2-Benzylidencyclopentanon, 2'-(4-Hydroxybenzyliden)-cyclopentanon, 2-(4'- Dimethylanninobenzyliden)-cyclopentanon, 5-(4-Dimethylanninophenyl)penta-2,4-dienal, 5-(4- Diethylaminophenyl)penta-2,4-dienal, 5-(4-Methoxyphenyl)penta-2,4-dienal, 5-(3,4-Benzylideneacetone, 4-hydroxybenzylideneacetone, 2-hydroxybenzylideneacetone, 4-methoxybenzylideneacetone, 4-hydroxy-3-methoxybenzylideneacetone, 4-dimethylanninobenzylideneacetone, 3,4-methylenedioxybenzylideneacetone, 4-pyrrolidinobenzylideneacetone, 4-piperidinobenzylideneacetone, A-morpholinobenzylideneacetone, 4- Diethylaminobenzylideneacetone, 3-benzylidene-2,4-pentanedione, 3- (4'-hydroxybenzylidene) -2,4-pentanedione, 3- (4'-dimethylanninobenzylidene) -2,4-pentanedione, 2-benzylidenecyclohexanone, 2- (4 '-Hydroxybenzylidene) cyclohexanone, 2- (4'-dimethylanninobenzylidene) cyclohexanone, 2-benzylidene-1, 3-cyclohexanedione, 2- (4'-hydroxybenzylidene) -1,3-cyclohexanedione, 3- ( 4'-dimethylanninobenzylidene) -1, 3-cyclohexanedione, 2-benzylidene-5,5-dimethyl-1,3-cyclohexanedione, 2- (4'-hydroxybenzylidene) -5,5-dimethyl-1,3-cyclohexanedione, 2 - (4'-hydroxy-3-methoxybenzylidene) -5,5-dimethyl-1,3-cyclohexanedione, 2- (4'-dimethylaminobenzylidene) -5,5-dimethyl-1,3-cyclohexanedione, 2-benzylidenecyclopentanone , 2 '- (4-hydroxybenzylidene) -cycl opentanone, 2- (4'-dimethylanninobenzylidene) cyclopentanone, 5- (4-dimethylanninophenyl) penta-2,4-dienal, 5- (4-diethylaminophenyl) penta-2,4-dienal, 5- (4-methoxyphenyl) penta-2,4-dienal, 5- (3,4-
Dimethoxyphenyl)penta-2,4-dienal, 5-(2,4-Dimethoxyphenyl)penta-2,4-dienal, 5-(4-Dimethoxyphenyl) penta-2,4-dienal, 5- (2,4-dimethoxyphenyl) penta-2,4-dienal, 5- (4-
Piperidinophenyl)penta-2,4-dienal, 5-(4-Morpholinophenyl)penta-2,4-dienal, 5-(4-Piperidinophenyl) penta-2,4-dienal, 5- (4-morpholinophenyl) -penta-2,4-dienal, 5- (4-
Pyrrolidinophenyl)penta-2,4-dienal, 6-(4-Dimethylanninophenyl)hexa-3,5-dien-2-on, 6-(4- Diethylaminophenyl)hexa-3,5-dien-2-on, 6-(4-Methoxyphenyl)hexa-3,5-dien-2-on, 6-(3,4- Dimethoxyphenyl)hexa-3,5-dien-2-on, 6-(2,4-Dimethoxyphenyl)hexa-3,5-dien-2-on, 6-(4- Piperidinophenyl)hexa-3,5-dien-2-on, 6-(4-Morpholinophenyl)hexa-3,5-dien-2-on, 6-(4-Pyrrolidinophenyl) penta-2,4-dienal, 6- (4-dimethylanninophenyl) hexa-3,5-dien-2-one, 6- (4-diethylaminophenyl) hexa-3,5-dien-2-one, 6- (4-methoxyphenyl) hexa-3,5-dien-2-one, 6- (3,4-dimethoxyphenyl) hexa-3,5-dien-2-one, 6- (2,4-dimethoxyphenyl) hexa-3 , 5-dien-2-one, 6- (4-piperidinophenyl) hexa-3,5-dien-2-one, 6- (4-morpholinophenyl) hexa-3,5-dien-2-one, 6- ( 4
Pyrrolidinophenyl)hexa-3,5-dien-2-on, 5-(4-Dimethylannino-1-naphthyl)penta-3,5-dienal, 2- Nitrobenzaldehyd, 3-Nitrobenzaldehyd, 4-Nitrobenzaldehyd, 4-Methyl-3-nitrobenzaldehyd, 3- Hydroxy-4-nitrobenzaldehyd, 4-Hydroxy-3-nitrobenzaldehyd, 5-Hydroxy-2-nitrobenzaldehyd, 2- Hydroxy-5-nitrobenzaldehyd, 2-Hydroxy-3-nitrobenzaldehyd, 2-Fluor-3-nitrobenzaldehyd, 3- Methoxy-2-nitrobenzaldehyd, 4-Chlor-3-nitrobenzaldehyd, 2-Chlor-6-nitrobenzaldehyd, 5-Chlor-2- nitrobenzaldehyd, 4-Chlor-2-nitrobenzaldehyd, 2,4-Dinitrobenzaldehyd, 2,6-Dinitrobenzaldehyd, 2-Hydroxy-3-methoxy-5-nitrobenzaldehyd, 4,5-Dimethoxy-2-nitrobenzaldehyd, 6-Nitropiperonal, 2- Nitropiperonal, 5-Nitrovanillin, 2,5-Dinitrosalicylaldehyd, 5-Brom-3-nitrosalicylaldehyd, 3-Nitro-4- formylbenzolsulfonsäure, 4-Nitro-1-naphthaldehyd, 2-Nitrozimtaldehyd, 3-Nitrozimtaldehyd, A- Nitrozimtaldehyd, 9-Methyl-3-carbazolaldehyd, 9-Ethyl-3-carbazolaldehyd, 3-Acetylcarbazol, 3,6- Diacetyl-9-ethylcarbazol, S-Acetyl-θ-methylcarbazol, 1 ,4-Dimethyl-3-carbazolaldehyd, 1 ,4,9- Trimethyl-3-carbazolaldehyd, 4-Formyl-1-nnethylpyridiniunn-, 2-Formyl-1-nnethylpyridiniunn-, A- Formyl-1-ethylpyridiniunn-, 2-Formyl-1-ethylpyridiniunn-, 4-Formyl-1-benzylpyridiniunn-, 2-Formyl-1- benzylpyridinium-, 4-Formyl-1 ,2-dimethylpyridiniunn-, 4-Formyl-1 ,3-dimethylpyridiniunn-, 4-Formyl- 1-methylchinoliniunn-, 2-Formyl-1-nnethylchinoliniunn-, 4-Acetyl-1-methylpyridiniunn-, 2-Acetyl-1- methylpyridinium-, 4-Acetyl-1-methylchinoliniunn-, 5-Fornnyl-i-nnethylchinoliniunn-, 6-Formyl-1- methylchinoliniunn-, 7-Fornnyl-i-nnethylchinoliniunn-, 8-Formyl-i-nnethylchinoliniunn, 5-Formyl-1- ethylchinolinium-, 6-Formyl-i-ethylchinoliniunn-, 7-Fornnyl-i-ethylchinoliniunn-, 8-Formyl-1- ethylchinolinium, 5-Fornnyl-i-benzylchinoliniunn-, 6-Formyl-i-benzylchinoliniunn-, 7-Formyl-1- benzylchinolinium-, 8-Formyl-i-benzylchinoliniunn, 5-Fornnyl-i-allylchinoliniunn-, 6-Formyl-1- allylchinolinium-, 7-Fornnyl-i-allylchinoliniunn- und 8-Fornnyl-i-allylchinoliniunn-, 5-Acetyl-1- methylchinoliniunn-, θ-Acetyl-i-methylchinoliniunn-, 7-Acetyl-1-methylchinoliniunn-, 8-Acetyl-1- methylchinoliniunn, S-Acetyl-i-ethylchinoliniunn-, θ-Acetyl-i-ethylchinoliniunn-, 7-Acetyl-1- ethylchinolinium-, 8-Acetyl-i-ethylchinoliniunn, S-Acetyl-i-benzylchinoliniunn-, 6-Acetyl-1- benzylchinolinium-, 7-Acetyl-1-benzylchinolinium-, 8-Acetyl-i-benzylchinoliniunn, 5-Acetyl-1- allylchinolinium-, θ-Acetyl-i-allylchinoliniunn-, 7-Acetyl-1-allylchinolinium- und 8-Acetyl-1- allylchinolinium, 9-Fornnyl-IO-nnethylacridiniunn-, 4-(2'-Formylvinyl)-1-nnethylpyridiniunn-, 1 ,3- Dimethyl-2-(4'-fornnylphenyl)-benzinnidazoliunn-, 1 ,3-Dimethyl-2-(4'-fornnylphenyl)-innidazoliunn-, 2- (4'-Formylphenyl)-3-nnethylbenzothiazoliunn-, 2-(4'-Acetylphenyl)-3-methylbenzothiazoliunn-, 2-(4'- Formylphenyl)-3-nnethylbenzoxazoliunn-, 2-(5'-Formyl-2'-furyl)-3-nnethylbenzothiazoliunn-, 2-(5'- Formyl-2'-furyl)-3-methylbenzothiazoliunn-, 2-(5'-Formyl-2'-thienyl)-3-nnethylbenzothiazoliunn-, 2- (3'-Formylphenyl)-3-nnethylbenzothiazoliunn-, 2-(4'-Formyl-1-naphthyl)-3-nnethylbenzothiazoliunn-, 5-Chlor-2-(4'-formylphenyl)-3-nnethylbenzothiazoliunn-, 2-(4'-Formylphenyl)-3,5-dinnethyl- benzothiazolium-Salze, bevorzugt mit Benzolsulfonat, p-Toluolsulfonat, Methansulfonat, Perchlorat, Sulfat, Chlorid, Bromid, lodid, Tetrachlorozinkat, Methylsulfat, Trifluormethansulfonat oder Tetrafluoroborat als Gegenion, lsatin, 1-Methyl-isatin, 1-Allyl-isatin, 1-Hydroxymethyl-isatin, 5-Chlor-isatin, 5-Methoxy-isatin, 5-Nitroisatin, 6-Nitro-isatin, 5-Sulfo-isatin, 5-Carboxy-isatin, Chinisatin, 1-Methylchinisatin, sowie beliebigen Gemischen der voranstehenden Verbindungen.Pyrrolidinophenyl) hexa-3,5-dien-2-one, 5- (4-dimethylannino-1-naphthyl) penta-3,5-dienal, 2-nitrobenzaldehyde, 3-nitrobenzaldehyde, 4-nitrobenzaldehyde, 4-methyl-3 nitrobenzaldehyde, 3 Hydroxy-4-nitrobenzaldehyde, 4-hydroxy-3-nitrobenzaldehyde, 5-hydroxy-2-nitrobenzaldehyde, 2-hydroxy-5-nitrobenzaldehyde, 2-hydroxy-3-nitrobenzaldehyde, 2-fluoro-3-nitrobenzaldehyde, 3-methoxy 2-nitrobenzaldehyde, 4-chloro-3-nitrobenzaldehyde, 2-chloro-6-nitrobenzaldehyde, 5-chloro-2-nitrobenzaldehyde, 4-chloro-2-nitrobenzaldehyde, 2,4-dinitrobenzaldehyde, 2,6-dinitrobenzaldehyde, 2- Hydroxy-3-methoxy-5-nitrobenzaldehyde, 4,5-dimethoxy-2-nitrobenzaldehyde, 6-nitropiperonal, 2-nitropiperonal, 5-nitrovanillin, 2,5-dinitrosalicylaldehyde, 5-bromo-3-nitrosalicylaldehyde, 3-nitrobenzaldehyde 4-formylbenzenesulfonic acid, 4-nitro-1-naphthaldehyde, 2-nitrocinnamaldehyde, 3-nitrocinnamaldehyde, A-nitrocinnamaldehyde, 9-methyl-3-carbazolaldehyde, 9-ethyl-3-carbazolaldehyde, 3-acetylcarbazole, 3,6-diacetyl 9-ethylcarbazole, S-acetyl-θ-methylcarbazole, 1,4-dimethyl-3-carbazolaldehyde, 1,4,9-trimethyl-3-carbazolaldehyde, 4-formyl-1-methylpyridinium, 2-formyl-1-methylpyridine -, A-Formyl-1-ethylpyridinium, 2-formyl-1-ethylpyridine N, 4-formyl-1-benzylpyridinium, 2-formyl-1-benzylpyridinium, 4-formyl-1,2-dimethylpyridinium, 4-formyl-1,3-dimethylpyridinium, 4-formyl-1-methylquinoline -, 2-Formyl-1-nichethylquinoline, 4-acetyl-1-methylpyridinium, 2-acetyl-1-methylpyridinium, 4-acetyl-1-methylquinolinyl, 5-phenyl-1-naphthalenediol, 6-formyl 1-methylquinoline, 7-formyl-1-nichethylquinoline, 8-formyl-1-n-ethylquinoline, 5-formyl-1-ethylquinolinium, 6-formyl-1-ethylquinoline, 7-formyl-1-ethylquinoline, 8-formyl-1-ethylquinolinium, 5-formyl-1-benzylquinolinyl, 6-formyl-1-benzylquinolinyl, 7-formyl-1-benzylquinolinium, 8-formyl-1-benzylquinolinone, 5-formyl-1-allylquinoline -, 6-Formyl-1-allyl-quinolinium, 7-formyl-i-allylquinoliniunn- and 8-formyl-i-allylquinoliniunal, 5-acetyl-1-methylquinoline, θ-acetyl-1-methylquinolinyl, 7-acetyl 1-methylquinoline, 8-acetyl-1-methylquinoline, S-acetyl-1-ethylquinoline, θ-acetyl-1-ethylquinoline unn, 7-acetyl-1-ethylquinolinium, 8-acetyl-1-ethylquinoline, S-acetyl-1-benzylquinolinyl, 6-acetyl-1-benzylquinolinium, 7-acetyl-1-benzylquinolinium, 8-acetyl -i-benzylquinolinone, 5-acetyl-1-allylquinolinium, θ-acetyl-1-allylquinoline, 7-acetyl-1-allylquinolinium and 8-acetyl-1-allylquinolinium, 9-formyl-1-yl-2-acrylonitrile, 4 - (2'-Formylvinyl) -1-methylpyridinium, 1,3-dimethyl-2- (4'-formylphenyl) -benzinnidazolinyl, 1,3-dimethyl-2- (4'-phenylnaphenyl) -innidazolium-, 2 - (4'-Formylphenyl) -3-methylbenzothiazolinyl, 2- (4'-acetylphenyl) -3-methylbenzothiazolinyl, 2- (4'-formylphenyl) -3-methylbenzoxazoline, 2- (5'-formyl-2 '-furyl) -3-ethylbenzothiazolinyl, 2- (5'-formyl-2'-furyl) -3-methylbenzothiazolinyl, 2- (5'-formyl-2'-thienyl) -3-methylbenzothiazolium, 2- (3'-Formylphenyl) -3-methylbenzothiazolinyl, 2- (4'-formyl-1-naphthyl) -3-methylbenzothiazolinyl, 5-chloro-2- (4'-formylphenyl) -3-methylbenzothiazolinyl, 2- (4'-Formylphenyl) -3,5-dinethylbenzoth iazolium salts, preferably with benzenesulfonate, p-toluenesulfonate, methanesulfonate, perchlorate, sulfate, chloride, bromide, iodide, tetrachlorozincate, methylsulfate, trifluoromethanesulfonate or tetrafluoroborate as counterion, isatin, 1-methylisatin, 1-allyl-isatin, 1- Hydroxymethyl-isatin, 5-chloro-isatin, 5-methoxy-isatin, 5-nitro-isatin, 6-nitro-isatin, 5-sulfo-isatin, 5-carboxy-isatin, Chinisatin, 1-Methylchinisatin, and any mixtures of the above compounds.
Als CH-acide werden im allgemeinen solche Verbindungen angesehen, die ein an ein aliphatisches Kohlenstoffatom gebundenes Wasserstoffatom tragen, wobei aufgrund von elektronenziehenden Substituenten eine Aktivierung der entsprechenden Kohlenstoff- Wasserstoff-Bindung bewirkt wird. Unter CH-acide Verbindungen fallen erfindungsgemäß auch Enamine, die durch alkalische Behandlung von quaternierten N-Heterozyklen mit einer in Konjugation zum quartären Stickstoff stehenden CH-aciden Alkylgruppe entstehen.As CH-acidic compounds are generally considered to carry a bound to an aliphatic carbon atom hydrogen atom, wherein due to electron-withdrawing substituents activation of the corresponding carbon-hydrogen bond is effected. According to the invention, CH-acidic compounds also include enamines which are formed by alkaline treatment of quaternized N-heterocycles with a CH-acidic alkyl group in conjugation with the quaternary nitrogen.
Die CH-aciden Verbindungen der Komponente 2 sind bevorzugt ausgewählt aus der Gruppe bestehend aus 1 ,2,3,3-Tetramethyl-3H-indoliumiodid, 1 ,2,3,3-Tetramethyl-3H-indolium-p- toluolsulfonat, 1 ,2,3,3-Tetramethyl-3H-indolium-methansulfonat, 1 ,3,3-Trimethyl-2-methylenindolin (Fischersche Base), 2,3-Dimethyl-benzothiazoliumiodid, 2,3-Dimethyl-benzothiazolium-p- toluolsulfonat, 2,3-Dimethyl-naphtho[1 ,2-d]thiazolium-p-toluolsulfonat, 3-Ethyl-2-methyl- naphtho[1 ,2-d]thiazolium-p-toluolsulfonat, Rhodanin, Rhodanin-3-essigsäure, 1 ,4-The CH-acidic compounds of component 2 are preferably selected from the group consisting of 1, 2,3,3-tetramethyl-3H-indolium iodide, 1, 2,3,3-tetramethyl-3H-indolium p-toluenesulfonate, 1, 2,3,3-tetramethyl-3H-indolium methanesulfonate, 1,3,3-trimethyl-2-methylenindoline (Fischer's base), 2,3-dimethylbenzothiazolium iodide, 2,3-dimethylbenzothiazolium p-toluenesulfonate, 2,3-dimethyl-naphtho [1,2-d] thiazolium p-toluenesulfonate, 3-ethyl-2-methylnaphtho [1,2-d] thiazolium p-toluenesulfonate, rhodanine, rhodanine-3-acetic acid, 1, 4-
Dimethylchinolinium-iodid, 1 ,2-Dimethylchinolinium-iodid, Barbitursäure, Thiobarbitursäure, 1 ,3- Dimethylthiobarbitursäure, 1 ,3-Diethylthiobarbitursäure, 1 ,3-Diethylbarbitursäure, Oxindol, 3-lnd- oxylacetat, 2-Cumaranon, 5-Hydroxy-2-cumaranon, 6-Hydroxy-2-cumaranon, 3-Methyl-1-phenyl- pyrazolin-5-on, lndan-1 ,2-dion, lndan-1 ,3-dion, lndan-1-on, Benzoylacetonitril, 3- Dicyanmethylenindan-1-on, 2-Amino-4-imino-1 ,3-thiazolin-hydrochlorid, 5,5-Dimethylcyclohexan- 1 ,3-dion, 2H-1 ,4-Benzoxazin-4H-3-on, 3-Ethyl-2-methyl-benzoxazoliumiodid, 3-Ethyl-2-methyl- benzothiazoliumiodid, 1-Ethyl-4-methyl-chinoliniumiodid, 1-Ethyl-2-methylchinoliniumiodid, 1 ,2,3- Trimethylchinoxaliniumiodid, 3-Ethyl-2-methyl-benzoxazolium-p-toluolsulfonat, 3-Ethyl-2-methyl- benzothiazolium-p-toluolsulfonat, 1-Ethyl-4-methyl-chinolinium-p-toluolsulfonat, 1-Ethyl-2- methylchinolinium-p-toluolsulfonat, und 1 ,2,3-Trimethylchinoxalinium-p-toluolsulfonat.Dimethylquinolinium iodide, 1, 2-dimethylquinolinium iodide, barbituric acid, thiobarbituric acid, 1,3-dimethylthiobarbituric acid, 1,3-diethylthiobarbituric acid, 1,3-diethylbarbituric acid, oxindole, 3-indoxylatoacetate, 2-coumaranone, 5-hydroxybenzoic acid 2-cumaranone, 6-hydroxy-2-cumaranone, 3-methyl-1-phenyl-pyrazolin-5-one, indan-1, 2-dione, indan-1, 3-dione, indan-1-one, benzoylacetonitrile, 3-dicyanomethylenedan-1-one, 2-amino-4-imino-1,3-thiazoline hydrochloride, 5,5-dimethylcyclohexane-1,3-dione, 2H-1,4-benzoxazin-4H-3-one, 3-ethyl-2-methyl-benzoxazolium iodide, 3-ethyl-2-methylbenzothiazolium iodide, 1-ethyl-4-methyl-quinolinium iodide, 1-ethyl-2-methylquinolinium iodide, 1,2,3-trimethylquinoxaluminum iodide, 3-ethyl 2-methylbenzoxazolium p-toluenesulfonate, 3-ethyl-2-methylbenzothiazolium p-toluenesulfonate, 1-ethyl-4-methyl-quinolinium p-toluenesulfonate, 1-ethyl-2-methylquinolinium p-toluenesulfonate, and 1,2,3-trimethylquinoxaluminum p-toluenesulfonate.
Bevorzugte primäre oder sekundäre aromatische Amine der Komponente 2 sind ausgewählt aus N,N-Dimethyl-p-phenylendiamin, N,N-Diethyl-p-phenylendiamin, N-(2-Hydroxyethyl)-N-ethyl-p- phenylendiamin, N,N-Bis-(2-hydroxyethyl)-p-phenylendiamin, N-(2-Methoxyethyl)-p- phenylendiamin, 2,3-Dichlor-p-phenylendiamin, 2,4-Dichlor-p-phenylendiamin, 2,5-Dichlor-p- phenylendiamin, 2-Chlor-p-phenylendiamin, 2,5-Dihydroxy-4-morpholinoanilin, 2-Aminophenol, 3- Aminophenol, 4-Aminophenol, 2-Aminomethyl-4-aminophenol, 2-Hydroxymethyl-4-aminophenol, o-Phenylendiamin, m-Phenylendiamin, p-Phenylendiamin, 2,5-Diaminotoluol, 2,5,-Diaminophenol, 2,5-Diaminoanisol, 2,5,Diaminophenethol, 4-Amino-3-methylphenol, 2-(2,5-Diaminophenyl)-etha- nol, 2,4-Diaminophenoxyethanol, 2-(2,5-Diaminophenoxy)-ethanol, 3-Amino-4-(2-hydroxy- ethyloxy)phenol, 3,4-Methylendioxyphenol, 3,4-Methylendioxyanilin, 3-Amino-2,4-dichlorphenol, 4-Methylaminophenol, 2-Methyl-5-aminophenol, 3-Methyl-4-aminophenol, 2-Methyl-5-(2-hydro- xyethylamino)phenol, S-Amino^-chlor-θ-methylphenol, 2-Methyl-5-amino-4-chlorphenol, 5-(2- Hydroxyethylamino)-4-nnethoxy-2-nnethylphenol, 4-Amino-2-hydroxynnethylphenol, 2-Preferred primary or secondary aromatic amines of component 2 are selected from N, N-dimethyl-p-phenylenediamine, N, N-diethyl-p-phenylenediamine, N- (2-hydroxyethyl) -N-ethyl-p-phenylenediamine, N, N-bis (2-hydroxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, N- (2-methoxyethyl) -p-phenylenediamine, 2,3-dichloro-p-phenylenediamine, 2,4-dichloro-p-phenylenediamine, 2.5- Dichloro-p-phenylenediamine, 2-chloro-p-phenylenediamine, 2,5-dihydroxy-4-morpholinoaniline, 2-aminophenol, 3-aminophenol, 4-aminophenol, 2-aminomethyl-4-aminophenol, 2-hydroxymethyl-4- aminophenol, o-phenylenediamine, m-phenylenediamine, p-phenylenediamine, 2,5-diaminotoluene, 2,5-diaminophenol, 2,5-diaminoanisole, 2,5, diaminophenethol, 4-amino-3-methylphenol, 2- 2,5-diaminophenyl) -ethanol, 2,4-diaminophenoxyethanol, 2- (2,5-diaminophenoxy) ethanol, 3-amino-4- (2-hydroxybenzoyl) ethyloxy) phenol, 3,4-methylenedioxyphenol, 3,4-methylenedioxyaniline, 3-amino-2,4-dichlorophenol, 4-methylaminophenol, 2-methyl-5-aminophenol, 3-methyl-4-aminophenol, 2-methyl- 5- (2-hydroxyethylamino) phenol, S-amino-1-chloro-θ-methylphenol, 2-methyl-5-amino-4-chlorophenol, 5- (2-hydroxyethylamino) -4-methoxy-2-methylphenol, 4-amino-2-hydroxynethylphenol, 2-
(Diethylaminonnethyl)-4-anninophenol, 4-Amino-1-hydroxy-2-(2-hydroxyethylanninonnethyl)-benzol, 1-Hydroxy-2-amino-5-nnethyl-benzol, 1-Hydroxy-2-amino-6-nnethyl-benzol, 2-Amino-5-acetannido- phenol, 1 ,3-Dimethyl-2,5-diaminobenzol, 5-(3-Hydroxypropylamino-)2-nnethylphenol, 5-Amino-4- methoxy-2-nnethylphenol, N,N-Dimethyl-3-anninophenol, N-Cyclopentyl-3-anninophenol, 5-Amino- 4-fluor-2-methylphenol, 2,4-Diamino-5-fluortoluol, 2,4-Diamino-5-(2-hydroxyethoxy)-toluol, 2,4- Diamino-5-nnethylphenetol, 3,5-Diamino-2-nnethoxy-1-nnethylbenzol, 2-Amino-4-(2- hydroxyethylamino)-anisol, 2,6-Bis-(2-hydroxyethylamino)-1-methylbenzol, 1 ,3-Diamino-2,4-di- methoxybenzol, 3,5-Diamino-2-nnethoxy-toluol, 2-Aminobenzoesäure, 3-Aminobenzoesäure, A- Aminobenzoesäure, 2-Aminophenylessigsäure, 3-Aminophenylessigsäure, 4-Amino- phenylessigsäure, 2,3-Diaminobenzoesäure, 2,4-Diaminobenzoesäure, 2,5-Diaminobenzoesäure, 3,4-Diaminobenzoesäure 3,5-Diaminobenzoesäure, 4-Aminosalicylsäure, 5-Aminosalicylsäure, 3- Amino-4-hydroxy-benzoesäure, 4-Amino-3-hydroxy-benzoesäure, 2-Aminobenzolsulfonsäure, 3- Aminobenzolsulfonsäure, 4-Aminobenzolsulfonsäure, 3-Amino-4-hydroxybenzolsulfonsäure, A- Amino-3-hydroxynaphthalin-1-sulfonsäure, 6-Amino-7-hydroxynaphthalin-2-sulfonsäure, 7-Amino- 4-hydroxynaphthalin-2-sulfonsäure, 4-Amino-5-hydroxynaphthalin-2,7-disulfonsäure, 3-Amino-2- naphthoesäure, 3-Aminophthalsäure, 5-Aminoisophthalsäure, 1 ,3,5-Triaminobenzol, 1 ,2,4- Triaminobenzol, 1 ,2,4,5-Tetraaminobenzol, 2,4,5-Triaminophenol, Pentaaminobenzol, Hexaa- minobenzol, 2,4,6-Triaminoresorcin, 4,5-Diaminobrenzcatechin, 4,6-Diaminopyrogallol, 1-(2- Hydroxy-5-aminobenzyl)-2-imidazolidinon, 4-Amino-2-((4-[(5-annino-2-hydroxyphenyl)nnethyl]- piperazinyl)methyl)phenol, 3,5-Diamino-4-hydroxybrenzcatechin, 1 ,4-Bis-(4-aminophenyl)-1 ,A- diazacycloheptan, aromatische Nitrile, wie 2-Amino-4-hydroxybenzonitril, 4-Amino-2- hydroxybenzonitril, 4-Aminobenzonitril, 2,4-Diaminobenzonitril, Nitrogruppen-haltige Aminoverbindungen, wie 3-Amino-6-methylannino-2-nitro-pyridin, Pikraminsäure, [8-[(4-Amino-2- nitrophenyl)-azo]-7-hydroxy-naphth-2-yl]-trimethylannnnoniunnchlorid, [8-((4-Amino-3-nitrophenyl)- azo)-7-hydroxy-naphth-2-yl]-trimethylannnnoniunnchlorid (Basic Brown 17), 1-Hydroxy-2-amino-4,6- dinitrobenzol, 1-Amino-2-nitro-4-[bis-(2-hydroxyethyl)annino]-benzol, 1-Amino-2-[(2- hydroxyethyl)amino]-5-nitrobenzol (HC Yellow Nr. 5), 1-Amino-2-nitro-4-[(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]- benzol (HC Red Nr. 7), 2-Chlor-5-nitro-N-2-hydroxyethyl-1 ,4-phenylendiamin, 1-[(2- Hydroxyethyl)amino]-2-nitro-4-annino-benzol (HC Red Nr. 3), 4-Amino-3-nitrophenol, 4-Amino-2- nitrophenol, 6-Nitro-o-toluidin, 1-Amino-3-nnethyl-4-[(2-hydroxyethyl)annino]-6-nitrobenzol (HC Violet Nr. 1 ), 1-Amino-2-nitro-4-[(2,3-dihydroxypropyl)amino]-5-chlor-benzol (HC Red Nr. 10), 2- (4-Amino-2-nitroanilino)-benzoesäure, 6-Nitro-2,5-diaminopyridin, 2-Amino-6-chlor-4-nitrophenol, 1-Amino-2-(3-nitrophenylazo)-7-phenylazo-8-naphthol-3,6-disulfonsäure Dinatriumsalz (Acid blue Nr. 29), 1-Amino-2-(2-hydroxy-4-nitrophenylazo)-8-naphthol-3,6-disulfonsäure Dinatriumsalz (Palatinchrome green), 1-Amino-2-(3-chlor-2-hydroxy-5-nitrophenylazo)-8-naphthol-3,6- disulfonsäure Dinatriumsalz (Gallion), 4-Amino-4'-nitrostilben-2,2'-disulfonsäure Dinatriumsalz, 2,4-Diamino-3',5'-dinitro-2'-hydroxy-5-methyl-azobenzol (Mordant brown 4), 4'-Amino-4- nitrodiphenylamin-2-sulfonsäure, 4'-Amino-3'-nitrobenzophenon-2-carbonsäure, 1-Amino-4-nitro- 2-(2-nitrobenzylidenamino)-benzol, 2-[2-(Diethylamino)ethylamino]-5-nitroanilin, 3-Amino-4-hydro- xy-5-nitrobenzolsulfonsäure, 3-Amino-3'-nitrobiphenyl, 3-Amino-4-nitro-acenaphthen, 2-Amino-1- nitronaphthalin, 5-Amino-6-nitrobenzo-1 ,3-dioxol, Aniline, insbesondere Nitrogruppen-haltige Aniline, wie 4-Nitroanilin, 2-Nitroanilin, 1 ,4-Diamino-2-nitrobenzol, 1 ,2-Diamino-4-nitrobenzol, 1- Amino-2-methyl-6-nitrobenzol, 4-Nitro-1 ,3-phenylendiamin, 2-Nitro-4-amino-1-(2-hy- d roxyethylam i no)-benzol , 2-N itro- 1 -am ino-4-[bis-(2-hyd roxyethyl)-am ino]-benzol , 4-Am ino-2- nitrodiphenylamin-2'-carbonsäure, 1-Amino-5-chlor-4-(2-hydroyethylamino)-2-nitrobenzol, aromatische Aniline bzw. Phenole mit einem weiteren aromatischen Rest, wie sie in der Formel Il dargestellt sind(Diethylaminomethyl) -4-Anninophenol, 4-Amino-1-hydroxy-2- (2-hydroxyethylanninonoethyl) benzene, 1-hydroxy-2-amino-5-methylbenzene, 1-hydroxy-2-amino-6-one ethylbenzene, 2-amino-5-acetanediophenol, 1, 3-dimethyl-2,5-diaminobenzene, 5- (3-hydroxypropylamino) -2-naphthylphenol, 5-amino-4-methoxy-2-naphthylphenol, N, N-dimethyl-3-anninophenol, N-cyclopentyl-3-anninophenol, 5-amino-4-fluoro-2-methylphenol, 2,4-diamino-5-fluorotoluene, 2,4-diamino-5- (2 -hydroxyethoxy) -toluene, 2,4-diamino-5-naphthylphenol, 3,5-diamino-2-nnethoxy-1-naphthylbenzene, 2-amino-4- (2-hydroxyethylamino) -anisole, 2,6-bis- (2-hydroxyethylamino) -1-methylbenzene, 1, 3-diamino-2,4-demethoxybenzene, 3,5-diamino-2-nnethoxy-toluene, 2-aminobenzoic acid, 3-aminobenzoic acid, A-aminobenzoic acid, 2- Aminophenylacetic acid, 3-aminophenylacetic acid, 4-aminophenylacetic acid, 2,3-diaminobenzoic acid, 2,4-diaminobenzoic acid, 2,5-diaminobenzoic acid, 3,4-diaminobenzoic acid 3,5-diaminobenzoic acid, 4-aminosalicylic acid, 5-aminosalicyls acid, 3-amino-4-hydroxybenzoic acid, 4-amino-3-hydroxybenzoic acid, 2-aminobenzenesulfonic acid, 3-aminobenzenesulfonic acid, 4-aminobenzenesulfonic acid, 3-amino-4-hydroxybenzenesulfonic acid, A-amino-3-hydroxynaphthalene 1-sulfonic acid, 6-amino-7-hydroxynaphthalene-2-sulfonic acid, 7-amino-4-hydroxynaphthalene-2-sulfonic acid, 4-amino-5-hydroxynaphthalene-2,7-disulfonic acid, 3-amino-2-naphthoic acid, 3-aminophthalic acid, 5-aminoisophthalic acid, 1, 3,5-triaminobenzene, 1, 2,4-triaminobenzene, 1, 2,4,5-tetraaminobenzene, 2,4,5-triaminophenol, pentaaminobenzene, hexaaminobenzene, 2, 4,6-triaminoresorcinol, 4,5-diaminobrencatechin, 4,6-diaminopyrogallol, 1- (2-hydroxy-5-aminobenzyl) -2-imidazolidinone, 4-amino-2 - ((4 - [(5-aminobenzyl) 2-hydroxyphenyl) ethyl] piperazinyl) methyl) phenol, 3,5-diamino-4-hydroxy-catechol, 1,4-bis (4-aminophenyl) -1, A-diazacycloheptane, aromatic nitriles such as 2-amino-4 -hydroxybenzonitrile, 4-amino-2-hydroxybenzonitrile, 4-aminobenzonitrile, 2,4-diaminobenzonitrile, nitro group ene-containing amino compounds, such as 3-amino-6-methylannino-2-nitro-pyridine, picric acid, [8 - [(4-amino-2-nitrophenyl) -azo] -7-hydroxy-naphth-2-yl] - trimethylannonium chloride, [8 - ((4-amino-3-nitrophenyl) azo) -7-hydroxy-naphth-2-yl] -trimethyl-ammonium chloride (Basic Brown 17), 1-hydroxy-2-amino-4,6-dinitrobenzene , 1-amino-2-nitro-4- [bis (2-hydroxyethyl) -annino] -benzene, 1-amino-2 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -5-nitrobenzene (HC Yellow No. 5), 1-Amino-2-nitro-4 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] benzene (HC Red No. 7), 2-chloro-5-nitro-N-2-hydroxyethyl-1,4-phenylenediamine, 1- [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -2-nitro-4-aminobenzene (HC Red # 3), 4-amino-3-nitrophenol, 4-amino-2-nitrophenol, 6-nitro-o-toluidine, 1-amino-3-methyl-4 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) -annino] -6-nitrobenzene (HC Violet No. 1), 1-amino-2-nitro-4 - [(2,3-dihydroxypropyl) amino] 5-chlorobenzene (HC Red No. 10), 2- (4-amino-2-nitroanilino) benzoic acid, 6-nitro-2,5-diaminopyridine, 2-amino-6-chloro-4-nitrophenol, 1-amino-2- (3-nitrophenylazo) -7-phenylazo 8-naphthol-3,6-disulfonic acid disodium salt (Acid blue No. 29), 1-amino-2- (2-hydroxy-4-nitrophenylazo) -8-naphthol-3,6-disulfonic acid disodium salt (Palatinchrome green), 1 -Amino-2- (3-chloro-2-hydroxy-5-nitrophenylazo) -8-naphthol-3,6-disulphonic acid disodium salt (gallium), 4-amino-4'-nitrostilbene-2,2'-disulphonic acid disodium salt, 2,4-diamino-3 ', 5'-dinitro-2'-hydroxy-5-methylazobenzene (Mordant brown 4), 4'-amino-4-nitrodiphenylamine-2-sulfonic acid, 4'-amino-3' -nitrobenzophenone-2-carboxylic acid, 1-amino-4-nitro-2- (2-nitrobenzylideneamino) -benzene, 2- [2- (diethylamino) ethylamino] -5-nitroaniline, 3-amino-4-hydroxy- 5-nitrobenzenesulfonic acid, 3-amino-3'-nitrobiphenyl, 3-amino-4-nitro-acenaphthene, 2-amino-1-nitronaphthalene, 5-amino-6-nitrobenzo-1,3-dioxole, anilines, in particular nitro groups containing anilines, such as 4-nitroaniline, 2-nitroaniline, 1, 4-diamino-2- nitrobenzene, 1, 2-diamino-4-nitrobenzene, 1-amino-2-methyl-6-nitrobenzene, 4-nitro-1,3-phenylenediamine, 2-nitro-4-amino-1- (2-hyd roxyethylamino) -benzene, 2-nitro-1-amino-4-bis [bis (2-hydroxyethyl) -amino] -benzene, 4-amino-2-nitrodiphenylamine-2'-carboxylic acid, 1 -Amino-5-chloro-4- (2-hydroxyethylamino) -2-nitrobenzene, aromatic anilines or phenols with a further aromatic radical, as shown in the formula II
Figure imgf000035_0001
in der
Figure imgf000035_0001
in the
• R7 für eine Hydroxy- oder eine Aminogruppe, die durch Ci_4-Alkyl-, Ci.4-Hydroxyalkyl-, Ci_4- Alkoxy- oder Ci.4-Alkoxy-Ci.4-alkylgruppen substituiert sein kann, steht,• R 7 represents a hydroxy or an amino group represented by CI_ 4 alkyl, Ci. 4 -Hydroxyalkyl-, Ci_ 4 - alkoxy- or Ci. 4- alkoxy-Ci. 4- alkyl groups may be substituted,
• R8, R9, R10, R11 und R12 unabhängig voneinander für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine Hydroxy- oder eine Aminogruppe, die durch d-C4-Alkyl-, C-ι-C4-Hydroxyalkyl, C1-C4-AIkOXy-, C1-C4- Aminoalkyl- oder C-i-C^AIkoxy-C-i-C^alkylgruppen substituiert sein kann, stehen, und• R 8, R 9, R 10, R 11 and R 12 independently represent a hydrogen atom, a hydroxy or an amino group by C 4 alkyl, C-ι-C 4 hydroxyalkyl, C 1 -C 4 -Alkoxy-, C 1 -C 4 - aminoalkyl or CiC ^ alkoxy-CiC ^ alkyl groups may be substituted, and
• P für eine direkte Bindung, eine gesättigte oder ungesättigte, ggf. durch Hydroxygruppen substituierte Kohlenstoffkette mit 1 bis 4 Kohlenstoffatomen, eine Carbonyl-, Sulfoxy-, Sulfonyl- oder Iminogruppe, ein Sauerstoff- oder Schwefelatom, oder eine Gruppe mit der Formel IlP is a direct bond, a saturated or unsaturated, optionally substituted by hydroxy groups carbon chain having 1 to 4 carbon atoms, a carbonyl, sulfoxy, sulfonyl or imino group, an oxygen or sulfur atom, or a group having the formula II
-Q'-(CH2-Q-CH2-Q")O- (II)-Q '- (CH 2 -Q-CH 2 -Q ") O - (II)
in derin the
• Q eine direkte Bindung, eine CH2- oder CHOH-Gruppe bedeutet, • Q' und Q" unabhängig voneinander für ein Sauerstoffatom, eine NR13-Gruppe, worin R13 ein Wasserstoffatom, eine C-|.4-Alkyl- oder eine Hydroxy-C-|.4-alkylgruppe, wobei auch beide Gruppen zusammen mit dem Restmolekül einen 5-, 6- oder 7-Ring bilden können, bedeutet, die Gruppe O-(CH2)P-NH oder NH-(CH2)P-O, worin p und p' 2 oder 3 sind, stehen undQ signifies a direct bond, a CH 2 or CHOH group, • Q 'and Q "are each independently an oxygen atom, an NR 13 group wherein R 13 is a hydrogen atom, a C- | alkyl 4, wherein both groups together |. 4 alkyl or a hydroxy-C. with the rest of the molecule can form a 5-, 6- or 7-membered ring, the group O- (CH 2 ) p -NH or NH- (CH 2 ) p -O, where p and p 'are 2 or 3, stand and
• o eine Zahl von 1 bis 4 bedeutet,O is a number from 1 to 4,
wie beispielsweise 4,4'-Diaminostilben und dessen Hydrochlorid, 4,4'-Diaminostilben-2,2'-disul- fonsäure-mono- oder -di-Na-Salz, 4-Amino-4'-dimethylaminostilben und dessen Hydrochlorid, 4,4'-Diaminodiphenylmethan, 4,4'-Diaminodiphenylsulfid, 4,4'-Diaminodiphenylsulfoxid, 4,4'- Diaminodiphenylamin, 4,4'-Diaminodiphenylamin-2-sulfonsäure, 4,4'-Diaminobenzophenon, 4,4'- Diaminodiphenylether, 3,3',4,4'-Tetraaminodiphenyl, 3,3',4,4'-Tetraamino-benzophenon, 1 ,3-Bis- (2,4-diaminophenoxy)-propan, 1 ,8-Bis-(2,5-diaminophenoxy)-3,6-dioxaoctan, 1 ,3-Bis-(4-amino- phenylamino)propan, , 1 ,3-Bis-(4-aminophenylamino)-2-propanol, 1 ,3-Bis-[N-(4-aminophenyl)-2- hydroxyethylamino]-2-propanol, N,N-Bis-[2-(4-aminophenoxy)-ethyl]-methylamin, N-Phenyl-1 ,4- phenylendiamin und Bis-(5-amino-2-hydroxyphenyl)-methan.such as 4,4'-diaminostilbene and its hydrochloride, 4,4'-diaminostilbene-2,2'-disulphonic acid mono- or di-Na salt, 4-amino-4'-dimethylaminostilbene and its hydrochloride, 4,4'-diaminodiphenylmethane, 4,4'-diaminodiphenylsulfide, 4,4'-diaminodiphenylsulfoxide, 4,4'-diaminodiphenylamine, 4,4'-diaminodiphenylamine-2-sulfonic acid, 4,4'-diaminobenzophenone, 4,4 ' - Diaminodiphenylether, 3,3 ', 4,4'-tetraaminodiphenyl, 3,3', 4,4'-tetraamino-benzophenone, 1, 3-bis (2,4-diaminophenoxy) -propane, 1, 8-bis - (2,5-diaminophenoxy) -3,6-dioxaoctane, 1,3-bis (4-aminophenylamino) propane, 1,1,3-bis (4-aminophenylamino) -2-propanol, 1, 3 Bis- [N- (4-aminophenyl) -2-hydroxyethylamino] -2-propanol, N, N-bis [2- (4-aminophenoxy) ethyl] methylamine, N-phenyl-1,4-phenylenediamine and bis (5-amino-2-hydroxyphenyl) methane.
Die vorgenannten Verbindungen können sowohl in freier Form als auch in Form ihrer physiologisch verträglichen Salze, insbesondere als Salze anorganischer Säuren, wie Salz- oder Schwefelsäure, eingesetzt werden.The abovementioned compounds can be used both in free form and in the form of their physiologically acceptable salts, in particular as salts of inorganic acids, such as hydrochloric or sulfuric acid.
Geeignete stickstoffhaltige heterocyclische Verbindungen sind z. B. 2-Aminopyridin, 3- Aminopyridin, 4-Aminopyridin, 2-Amino-3-hydroxy-pyridin, 2,6-Diamino-pyridin, 2,5-Diamino- pyridin, 2-(Aminoethylamino)-5-aminopyridin, 2,3-Diamino-pyridin, 2-Dimethylamino-5-amino- pyridin, 2-Methylamino-3-amino-6-methoxy-pyridin, 2,3-Diamino-6-methoxy-pyridin, 2,6- Dimethoxy-3,5-diamino-pyridin, 2,4,5-Triamino-pyridin, 2,6-Dihydroxy-3,4-dimethylpyridin, N-[2- (2,4-Diaminophenyl)aminoethyl]-N-(5-amino-2-pyridyl)-amin, N-[2-(4-Aminophenyl)aminoethyl]-N- (5-amino-2-pyridyl)-amin, 2,4-Dihydroxy-5,6-diaminopyrimidin, 4,5,6-Triaminopyrimidin, 4-Hydro- xy-2,5,6-triaminopyrimidin, 2-Hydroxy-4,5,6-triaminopyrimidin, 2,4,5,6-Tetraaminopyrimidin, 2-Me- thylamino-4,5,6-triaminopyrimidin, 2,4-Diaminopyrimidin, 4,5-Diaminopyrimidin, 2-Amino-4- methoxy-6-methyl-pyrimidin, 3,5-Diaminopyrazol, 3,5-Diamino-1 ,2,4-triazol, 3-Aminopyrazol, 3- Amino-5-hydroxypyrazol, 1-Phenyl-4,5-diaminopyrazol, 1-(2-Hydroxyethyl)-4,5-diaminopyrazol, 1- Phenyl-3-methyl-4,5-diaminopyrazol, 4-Amino-2,3-dimethyl-1-phenyl-3-pyrazolin-5-on (4- Aminoantipyrin), 1-Phenyl-3-methylpyrazol-5-on, 2-Aminochinolin, 3-Aminochinolin, 8-Amino- chinolin, 4-Aminochinaldin, 2-Aminonicotinsäure, 6-Aminonicotinsäure, 5-Aminoisochinolin, 5- Aminoindazol, 6-Aminoindazol, 5-Aminobenzinnidazol, 7-Aminobenzinnidazol, 5-Aminobenzo- thiazol, 7-Aminobenzothiazol, 2,5-Dihydroxy-4-morpholino-anilin sowie Indol- und Indolinderi- vaten, wie 4-Aminoindol, 5-Aminoindol, 6-Aminoindol, 7-Aminoindol, 5,6-Dihydroxyindol, 5,6-Dihy- droxyindolin und 4-Hydroxyindolin. Weiterhin als heterocyclische Verbindungen können erfindungsgemäß die in der DE-U1-299 08 573 offenbarten Hydroxypyrimidine eingesetzt werden. Die vorgenannten Verbindungen können sowohl in freier Form als auch in Form ihrer physiologisch verträglichen Salze, z. B. als Salze anorganischer Säuren, wie Salz- oder Schwefelsäure, eingesetzt werden.Suitable nitrogen-containing heterocyclic compounds are, for. B. 2-aminopyridine, 3-aminopyridine, 4-aminopyridine, 2-amino-3-hydroxy-pyridine, 2,6-diamino-pyridine, 2,5-diamino-pyridine, 2- (aminoethylamino) -5-aminopyridine, 2,3-diamino-pyridine, 2-dimethylamino-5-amino-pyridine, 2-methylamino-3-amino-6-methoxy-pyridine, 2,3-diamino-6-methoxy-pyridine, 2,6-dimethoxy 3,5-diamino-pyridine, 2,4,5-triamino-pyridine, 2,6-dihydroxy-3,4-dimethyl-pyridine, N- [2- (2,4-diaminophenyl) aminoethyl] -N- (5- amino-2-pyridyl) amine, N- [2- (4-aminophenyl) aminoethyl] -N- (5-amino-2-pyridyl) amine, 2,4-dihydroxy-5,6-diaminopyrimidine, 4, 5,6-triaminopyrimidine, 4-hydroxy-2,5,6-triaminopyrimidine, 2-hydroxy-4,5,6-triaminopyrimidine, 2,4,5,6-tetraaminopyrimidine, 2-methylamino-4, 5,6-triaminopyrimidine, 2,4-diaminopyrimidine, 4,5-diaminopyrimidine, 2-amino-4-methoxy-6-methyl-pyrimidine, 3,5-diaminopyrazole, 3,5-diamino-1, 2,4- triazole, 3-aminopyrazole, 3-amino-5-hydroxypyrazole, 1-phenyl-4,5-diaminopyrazole, 1- (2-hydroxyethyl) -4,5-diaminopyrazole, 1-phenyl-3-methyl-4,5- diaminopyrazole, 4-amino-2, 3-dimethyl-1-phenyl-3-pyrazolin-5-one (4-aminoantipyrine), 1-phenyl-3-methylpyrazol-5-one, 2-aminoquinoline, 3-aminoquinoline, 8-aminoquinoline, 4-aminoquinaldine , 2-aminonicotinic acid, 6-aminonicotinic acid, 5-aminoisoquinoline, 5- Aminoindazole, 6-aminoindazole, 5-aminobenzinnidazole, 7-aminobenzinnidazole, 5-aminobenzothiazole, 7-aminobenzothiazole, 2,5-dihydroxy-4-morpholino-aniline and also indole and indoline derivatives, such as 4-aminoindole, 5- Aminoindole, 6-aminoindole, 7-aminoindole, 5,6-dihydroxyindole, 5,6-dihydroxyindoline and 4-hydroxyindoline. Furthermore, as heterocyclic compounds according to the invention can be used in DE-U1-299 08 573 disclosed hydroxypyrimidines. The aforementioned compounds can be used both in free form and in the form of their physiologically acceptable salts, for. B. as salts of inorganic acids, such as hydrochloric or sulfuric acid, are used.
Geeignete aromatische Hydroxyverbindungen sind z. B. 2-Methylresorcin, 4-Methylresorcin, 5- Methylresorcin, 2,5-Dimethylresorcin, Resorcin, 3-Methoxyphenol, Brenzkatechin, Hydrochinon, Pyrogallol, Phloroglucin, Hydroxyhydrochinon, 2-Methoxyphenol, 3-Methoxyphenol, A- Methoxyphenol, 3-Dimethylaminophenol, 2-(2-Hydroxyethyl)phenol, 3,4-Methylendioxyphenol, 2,4-Dihydroxybenzoesäure, 3,4-Dihydroxybenzoesäure, 2,4-Dihydroxy-phenylessigsäure, 3,4- Dihydroxy-phenylessigsäure, Gallussäure, 2,4,6-Trihydroxybenzoesäure, 2,4,6-Trihydroxyace- tophenon, 2-Chlorresorcin, 4-Chlorresorcin, 1-Naphthol, 1 ,5-Dihydroxynaphthalin, 2,3- Dihydroxynaphthalin, 2,7-Dihydroxynaphthalin, 6-Dimethylamino-4-hydroxy-2-naphthalinsulfon- säure und 3,6-Dihydroxy-2,7-naphthalinsulfonsäure.Suitable aromatic hydroxy compounds are, for. 2-methylresorcinol, 4-methylresorcinol, 5-methylresorcinol, 2,5-dimethylresorcinol, resorcinol, 3-methoxyphenol, pyrocatechol, hydroquinone, pyrogallol, phloroglucinol, hydroxyhydroquinone, 2-methoxyphenol, 3-methoxyphenol, A-methoxyphenol, 3- Dimethylaminophenol, 2- (2-hydroxyethyl) phenol, 3,4-methylenedioxyphenol, 2,4-dihydroxybenzoic acid, 3,4-dihydroxybenzoic acid, 2,4-dihydroxy-phenylacetic acid, 3,4-dihydroxyphenylacetic acid, gallic acid, 2,4 , 6-trihydroxybenzoic acid, 2,4,6-trihydroxyace- tophenone, 2-chlororesorcinol, 4-chlororesorcinol, 1-naphthol, 1, 5-dihydroxynaphthalene, 2,3-dihydroxynaphthalene, 2,7-dihydroxynaphthalene, 6-dimethylamino-4 -hydroxy-2-naphthalenesulfonic acid and 3,6-dihydroxy-2,7-naphthalenesulfonic acid.
Die Verbindungen der Komponente 1 und die Verbindungen der Komponente 2 werden vorzugsweise in den kosmetischen Mitteln jeweils in einer Menge von 0,03 bis 65 mmol, insbesondere von 1 bis 40 mmol, bezogen auf 100 g des gesamten Nuanciermittels, verwendet. Das molare Verhältnis von der Verbindung der Komponente 1 und der Verbindung der Komponente 2 kann im Bereich von 0,5 bis 2,0 liegen, wobei vorzugsweise äquimolare Mengen eingesetzt werden. Das anwendungsbereite Mittel wird bei getrennter Lagerung der Komponenten 1 und 2 unmittelbar vor der Anwendung durch Mischen hergestellt.The compounds of component 1 and the compounds of component 2 are preferably used in the cosmetic compositions in each case in an amount of 0.03 to 65 mmol, in particular from 1 to 40 mmol, based on 100 g of the total Nuanciermittels used. The molar ratio of the compound of component 1 and the compound of component 2 may range from 0.5 to 2.0, preferably using equimolar amounts. The ready-to-use agent is prepared by separate mixing of components 1 and 2 immediately prior to application.
Weiterhin können die erfindungsgemäßen Mittel als zusätzliche farbverändernde Komponente mindestens einen direktziehenden Farbstoff enthalten. Dabei handelt sich um Farbstoffe, die direkt auf das Haar aufziehen und keinen oxidativen Prozess zur Ausbildung der Farbe benötigen. Direktziehende Farbstoffe sind üblicherweise Nitrophenylendiamine, Nitroaminophenole, Azofarbstoffe, Anthrachinone oder Indophenole. Die direktziehenden Farbstoffe werden jeweils bevorzugt in einer Menge von 0,001 bis 20 Gew.- %, bezogen auf die gesamte Anwendungszubereitung, eingesetzt. Die Gesamtmenge an direktziehenden Farbstoffen beträgt vorzugsweise höchstens 20 Gew.-%.Furthermore, the agents according to the invention can contain as additional color-modifying component at least one substantive dye. These are dyes that raise directly on the hair and do not require an oxidative process to form the color. Direct dyes are usually nitrophenylenediamines, nitroaminophenols, azo dyes, anthraquinones or indophenols. The substantive dyes are each preferably used in an amount of 0.001 to 20% by weight, based on the total application preparation. The total amount of substantive dyes is preferably at most 20% by weight.
Direktziehende Farbstoffe können in anionische, kationische und nichtionische direktziehende Farbstoffe unterteilt werden.Direct dyes can be subdivided into anionic, cationic and nonionic substantive dyes.
Anionische direktziehende Farbstoffe:Anionic substantive dyes:
Als anionische direktziehende Farbstoffe eignen sich insbesondere 6-Hydroxy-5-[(4- sulfophenyl)azo]-2-naphthalinsulfonsäuredinatriumsalz (Cl. 15,985; Food Yellow No. 3; FD&C Yellow No. 6), 2,4-Dinitro-1-naphthol-7-sulfonsäure-dinatriumsalz (Cl. 10,316; Acid Yellow 1 ; Food Yellow No. 1 ), 2-(lndan-1 ,3-dion-2-yl)chinolin-x,x-sulfonsäure (Gemisch aus Mono- und Disulfonsäure) (Cl. 47,005; D&C Yellow No. 10; Food Yellow No. 13; Acid Yellow 3, Yellow 10), 4-((4-Amino-3-sulfophenyl)azo)benzolsulfonsäure-dinatriumsalz (Cl. 13,015, Acid Yellow 9), 5- Hydroxy-1-(4-sulfophenyl)-4-[(4-sulfophenyl)azo]pyrazol-3-carbonsäure-trinatriumsalz (Cl.Particularly suitable anionic direct dyes are 6-hydroxy-5 - [(4-sulfophenyl) azo] -2-naphthalenesulfonic acid disodium salt (CI 15.985, Food Yellow No. 3, FD & C Yellow No. 6), 2,4-dinitro-1 -naphthol-7-sulfonic acid disodium salt (Cl.10.316; Acid Yellow 1, Food Yellow No. 1), 2- (indan-1, 3-dion-2-yl) quinoline-x, x-sulfonic acid (mixture of mono and disulfonic acid) (CI 47,005, D & C Yellow No. 10, Food Yellow No. 13, Acid Yellow 3, Yellow 10), 4 - ((4-amino-3-sulfophenyl) azo) benzenesulfonic acid disodium salt (CI 13,015 , Acid Yellow 9), 5-hydroxy-1- (4-sulfophenyl) -4 - [(4-sulfophenyl) azo] pyrazole-3-carboxylic acid trisodium salt (Cl.
19,140; Food Yellow No. 4; Acid Yellow 23), 3-[(4-19,140; Food Yellow No. 4; Acid Yellow 23), 3 - [(4-
Phenylamino)phenyl]azobezolsulfonsäuresäure-natriumsalz (Cl. 13,065; Ki406; Acid Yellow 36), 9-(2-Carboxyphenyl)-6-hydroxy-3H-xanthen-3-on (Cl. 45,350; Acid Yellow 73; D&C Yellow No. 8), 5-[(2,4-Dinitrophenyl)amino]-2-phenylaminobenzolsulfonsäure-natriumsalz (Cl. 10,385; Acid Orange 3), 4-[(2,4- Dihydroxyphenyl)azo]-benzolsulfonsäure-natriumsalz (Cl. 14,270; Acid Orange 6), 4-[(2-Hydroxynaphth-1-yl)azo]-benzolsulfonsäure-natriumsalz (Cl. 15,510; Acid Orange 7), 4-[(2,4-Dihydroxy-3-[(2,4-dimethylphenyl)azo]-phenyl)azo]-benzolsulfonsäure- natriumsalz (Cl. 20,170; Acid Orange 24), 4-Hydroxy-3-[(2-methoxyphenyl)azo]-1- naphthalinsulfonsäure-natriumsalz (Cl. 14,710; Acid Red 4), 4-Hydroxy-3-[(4-sulfonaphth-1- yl)azo]-1-naphthalin-sulfonsäure-dinatriumsalz (Cl. 14,720; Acid Red No.14), 6- Hydroxy-5-[(4- sulfonaphth-1-yl)azo]-2,4-naphthalin-disulfonsäure-trinatriumsalz (Cl. 16,255; Ponceau 4R; Acid Red 18), 3-Hydroxy-4-[(4-sulfonaphth-1-yl)azo]-2,7-naphthalin-disulfonsäure-trinatriumsalz (Cl. 16,185; Acid Red 27), 8-Amino-1-hydroxy-2-(phenylazo)-3,6-naphthalin-disulfonsäure- dinatriumsalz (Cl. 17,200; Acid Red 33; Red 33), 5- (Acetylamino)-4-hydroxy-3-[(2- methylphenyl)azo]-2,7-naphthalin-disulfonsäure-dinatriumsalz (Cl. 18,065; Acid Red 35), 2-(3- Hydroxy-2,4,5,7-tetraiod-dibenzopyran-6-on-9-yl)-benzoesäure-dinatriumsalz (Cl. 45,430; Acid Red 51 ), N-[6-(Diethylamino)-9-(2,4-disulfophenyl)-3H-xanthen-3-yliden]-N-ethylethanammonium- hydroxid, inneres Salz, Natriumsalz (Cl. 45,100; Acid Red 52), 8-[(4-(Phenylazo)phenyl)azo]-7- naphthol-1 ,3-disulfonsäure-dinatriumsalz (Cl. 27,290; Acid Red 73), 2',4',5',7'-Tetrabrom-3',6'- dihydroxyspiro[isobenzofuran-1(3H),9'-[9H]xanthen]-3-on-dinatriunnsalz (Cl. 45,380; Acid Red 87), 2',4',5',7'-Tetrabrom-4,5,6,7-tetrachlor-3',6'- dihydroxyspiro[isobenzofuran-Phenylamino) -phenyl] -azobenzenesulfonic acid sodium salt (CI 13,065; Ki406; Acid Yellow 36), 9- (2-carboxyphenyl) -6-hydroxy-3H-xanthen-3-one (CI 45,350; Acid Yellow 73; D & C Yellow No 8), 5 - [(2,4-dinitrophenyl) amino] -2-phenylaminobenzenesulfonic acid, sodium salt (Cl.10, 385; Acid Orange 3), 4 - [(2,4-dihydroxyphenyl) azo] -benzenesulfonic acid, sodium salt (Cl Acid Orange 6), 4 - [(2-hydroxynaphth-1-yl) azo] -benzenesulfonic acid, sodium salt (Cl 15.510, Acid Orange 7), 4 - [(2,4-dihydroxy-3 - [( 2,4-dimethylphenyl) azo] -phenyl) azo] -benzenesulfonic acid, sodium salt (CI 20,170, Acid Orange 24), 4-hydroxy-3 - [(2-methoxyphenyl) azo] -1-naphthalenesulfonic acid, sodium salt (Cl. Acid Red 4), 4-hydroxy-3 - [(4-sulfonaphth-1-yl) azo] -1-naphthalenesulfonic acid disodium salt (Cl 14.720; Acid Red No.14), 6-hydroxy-5 - [(4-sulfonaphth-1-yl) azo] -2,4-naphthalenedisulfonic acid trisodium salt (Cl 16,255, Ponceau 4R, Acid Red 18), 3-hydroxy-4 - [(4-sulfonaphth-1) yl) azo] -2,7-naphthalene-disulfonic acid trinatriu Msalz (Cl. 16.185; Acid Red 27), 8-amino-1-hydroxy-2- (phenylazo) -3,6-naphthalenedisulfonic acid disodium salt (Cl 17,200, Acid Red 33, Red 33), 5- (acetylamino) -4-hydroxy 3 - [(2-methylphenyl) azo] -2,7-naphthalenedisulfonic acid disodium salt (Cl 18.065, Acid Red 35), 2- (3-hydroxy-2,4,5,7-tetraiododibenzopyran- 6-on-9-yl) benzoic acid disodium salt (Cl.45,430; Acid Red 51), N- [6- (diethylamino) -9- (2,4-disulfophenyl) -3H-xanthen-3-ylidene] - N-ethyleneamine ammonium hydroxide, inner salt, sodium salt (CI 45, 100, Acid Red 52), 8 - [(4- (phenylazo) phenyl) azo] -7-naphthol-1,3-disulfonic acid disodium salt (CI 27,290; Acid Red 73), 2 ', 4', 5 ', 7'-tetrabromo-3', 6'- dihydroxyspiro [isobenzofuran-1 (3H), 9 '- [9H] xanthene] -3-one dinatria salt (CI 45,380; Acid Red 87), 2', 4 ', 5', 7'-tetrabromo-4,5 , 6,7-tetrachloro-3 ', 6'-dihydroxyspiro [isobenzofuran]
1(3H),9'[9H]xanthen]-3-on-dinatriumsalz (Cl. 45,410; Acid Red 92), 3',6'-Dihydroxy-4',5'- diiodospiro[isobenzofuran-1(3H),9'(9H)- xanthen]-3-on-dinatriumsalz (Cl. 45425; Acid Red 95), 2- Hydroxy-3-((2- hydroxynaphth-1-yl)azo)-5-nitrobenzolsulfonsäure-natriumsalz (Cl. 15,685; Acid Red 184), 3-Hydroxy-4-(3-methyl-5-oxo-1-phenyl-4,5-dihydro-1 H-pyrazol-4-ylazo)-naphthalin-1- sulfonsäure-natriumsalz, Chrom-Komplex (Acid Red 195), 3-Hydroxy-4-[(4-methyl-2-sulfon- pheny^azo^-naphthalincarbonsäure-calciumsalz (Cl. 15,850:1 ; Pigment Red 57:1 ), 3-[(2,4- Dimethyl-5-sulfophenyl)azo]-4-hydroxy-1-naphthalin-sulfonsäure-dinatriumsalz (Cl. 14,700; Food Red No. 1 ; Ponceau SX; FD&C Red No. 4), 1 ,4- Bis[(2-sulfo-4-methylphenyl)amino]-9,10- anthrachinon-dinatriumsalz (Cl. 61 ,570; Acid Green 25), Bis[4-(dimethylamino)phenyl]-(3,7- disulfo-2-hydroxynaphth-1-yl)carbenium-inneres Salz, Natriumsalz (Cl. 44,090; Food Green No. 4; Acid Green 50), Bis[4-(diethylamino)-phenyl](2,4-disulfophenyl)carbenium-inneres Salz, Natriumsalz (2:1 ) (Cl. 42,045; Food Blue No. 3; Acid Blue 1 ), Bis[4-(diethylamino)phenyl](5- hydroxy-2,4-disulfophenyl)-carbenium-inneres Salz, Calciumsalz (2:1 ) (Cl. 42,051 ; Acid Blue 3), N-[4-[(2,4-Disulfophenyl)[4-[ethyl(phenylmethyl)amino)phenyl]methylen]-2,5-cyclohexadien-1- yliden]-N-ethylbenzolmethanaminium-hydroxid, inneres Salz, Natriumsalz (Cl. 42,080; Acid Blue 7), (2-Sulfophenyl)di[4-(ethyl((4-sulfophenyl)methyl)amino)phenyl]-carbenium-dinatriumsalz1 (3H), 9 '[9H] xanthene] -3-one disodium salt (Cl. 45.410; Acid Red 92), 3', 6'-dihydroxy-4 ', 5'-diiodospiro [isobenzofuran-1 (3H) , 9 '(9H) -xanthene] -3-one-disodium salt (Cl. 45425; Acid Red 95), 2-hydroxy-3 - ((2-hydroxynaphth-1-yl) azo) -5-nitrobenzenesulfonic acid, sodium salt ( Cl., 15.685; Acid Red 184), 3-hydroxy-4- (3-methyl-5-oxo-1-phenyl-4,5-dihydro-1H-pyrazol-4-ylazo) -naphthalene-1-sulfonic acid sodium salt, chromium complex (Acid Red 195), 3-hydroxy-4 - [(4-methyl-2-sulfophenyl) azo-naphthalenecarboxylic acid calcium salt (Cl 15.850: 1, Pigment Red 57: 1), 3 [(2,4-dimethyl-5-sulfophenyl) azo] -4-hydroxy-1-naphthalenesulfonic acid disodium salt (Cl 14.700, Food Red No. 1, Ponceau SX, FD & C Red No. 4), 1, 4-bis [(2-sulfo-4-methylphenyl) amino] -9,10-anthraquinone disodium salt (Cl. 61, 570; Acid Green 25), bis [4- (dimethylamino) phenyl] - (3,7- disulfo-2-hydroxynaphth-1-yl) carbenium inner salt, sodium salt (CI 44,090, Food Green No. 4, Acid Green 50), bis [4- (diethylamino) -phenyl] (2,4-disulfophenyl) carbenium internal salt, sodium salt (2: 1) (Cl. 42.045; Food Blue No. 3; Acid Blue 1), bis [4- (diethylamino) phenyl] (5-hydroxy-2,4-disulfophenyl) carbenium inner salt, calcium salt (2: 1) (CI 42,051, Acid Blue 3), N- [ 4 - [(2,4-Disulfophenyl) [4- [ethyl (phenylmethyl) amino) phenyl] methylene] -2,5-cyclohexadiene-1-ylidene] -N-ethylbenzene methanaminium hydroxide, inner salt, sodium salt (CI 42,080 Acid Blue 7), (2-sulfophenyl) di [4- (ethyl ((4-sulfophenyl) methyl) amino) phenyl] -carbenium disodium salt
Betain (Cl. 42,090; Acid Blue 9; FD&C Blue No. 1 ), 1-Amino-4-(phenylamino)-9,10-anthrachinon- 2-sulfonsäure (Cl. 62,055; Acid Blue 25), 1-Amino-4-(cyclohexylamino)-9,10-anthrachinon-2- sulfonsäure-natriumsalz (Cl. 62045; Acid Blue 62), 2-(1 ,3-Dihydro-3-oxo-5-sulfo-2H-indol-2- yliden)-2,3-dihydro-3-oxo-1 H-indol-5- sulfonsäure-dinatriumsalz (Cl. 73,015; Acid Blue 74), 9-(2- Carboxyphenyl)-3-[(2-methylphenyl)amino]-6-[(2-methyl-4-sulfophenyl)amino]xanthylium-inneres Salz, Natriumsalz (Cl. 45,190; Acid Violet 9), 1-Hydroxy-4-[(4-methyl-2- sulfophenyl)amino]-9,10- anthrachinon-natriumsalz (Cl. 60,730; D&C Violett No. 2; Acid Violet 43), Bis[3-nitro-4-[(4- phenylamino)-3-sulfo-phenylamino]-phenyl]-sulfon (Cl. 10,410; Acid Brown 13), 5-Amino-4- hydroxy-6-[(4-nitrophenyl)-azo]-3-(phenylazo)-2,7-naphthalin-disulfonsäure-dinatriumsalz (Cl. 20,470; Acid Black 1 ), 3-Hydroxy-4-[(2-hydroxynaphth-1-yl)azo]-7-nitro-1-naphthalin-sulfonsäure- chromkomplex (3:2) (Cl. 15,711 ; Acid Black 52), 4-(Acetylamino)-5-hydroxy-6-[(7-sulfo-4-[(4- sulfophenyl)azo]naphth-1-yl)azo]-1 ,7-naphthalindisulfonsäure-tetranatriumsalz (Cl. 28,440; Food Black No. 1 ), 3',3",5',5"-Tetrabromphenolsulfonphthalein (Bromphenolblau).Betaine (CI 42,090, Acid Blue 9, FD & C Blue No. 1), 1-amino-4- (phenylamino) -9,10-anthraquinone-2-sulfonic acid (CI 62,055, Acid Blue 25), 1-amino 4- (cyclohexylamino) -9,10-anthraquinone-2-sulfonic acid, sodium salt (CI 62045, Acid Blue 62), 2- (1,3-dihydro-3-oxo-5-sulfo-2H-indole-2-one ylidene) -2,3-dihydro-3-oxo-1H-indole-5-sulfonic acid disodium salt (CI 73.015, Acid Blue 74), 9- (2-carboxyphenyl) -3 - [(2-methylphenyl) amino ] -6 - [(2-methyl-4-sulfophenyl) amino] xanthylium inner salt, sodium salt (CI 45.190, Acid Violet 9), 1-hydroxy-4 - [(4-methyl-2-sulfophenyl) amino] -9,10-anthraquinone sodium salt (Cl.60,730, D & C Violet No. 2, Acid Violet 43), bis [3-nitro-4 - [(4-phenylamino) -3-sulfophenylamino] -phenyl] sulfone (Cl 10.410, Acid Brown 13), 5-amino-4-hydroxy-6 - [(4-nitrophenyl) -azo] -3- (phenylazo) -2,7-naphthalenedisulfonic acid disodium salt (Cl 20,470; Acid Black 1), 3-hydroxy-4 - [(2-hydroxynaphth-1-yl) azo] -7-nitro-1-naphthalene-sulfonic acid chromium complex (3: 2) (Cl 15.711, Acid Black 52), (4- Acetylamino) -5-hydroxy-6 - [(7-sulfo-4 - [(4-sulfophenyl) azo] naphth-1-yl) azo] -1, 7-naphthalenedisulfonic acid, tetrasodium salt (Cl. 28.440; Food Black no. 1), 3 ', 3 ", 5', 5" -tetrabromophenolsulfonphthalein (bromophenol blue).
Bevorzugte anionische direktziehende Farbstoffe sind die unter den internationalen Bezeichnungen bzw. Handelsnamen Acid Yellow 1 , Yellow 10, Acid Yellow 23, Acid Yellow 36, Acid Orange 7, Acid Red 33, Acid Red 52, Pigment Red 57:1 , Acid Blue 7, Acid Green 50, Acid Violet 43, Acid Black 1 und Acid Black 52 bekannten Verbindungen.Preferred anionic substantive dyes are those having the international designations or trade names Acid Yellow 1, Yellow 10, Acid Yellow 23, Acid Yellow 36, Acid Orange 7, Acid Red 33, Acid Red 52, Pigment Red 57: 1, Acid Blue 7, Acid Green 50, Acid Violet 43, Acid Black 1 and Acid Black 52 known compounds.
Kationische direktziehende Farbstoffe:Cationic direct dyes:
Als kationische direktziehende Farbstoffe eignen sich insbesondere 9-(Dimethylannino)- benzo[a]phenoxazin-7-ium-chlorid (Cl. 51 ,175; Basic Blue 6), Di[4-(diethylamino)phenyl][4- (ethylamino)naphthyl]carbenium-chlorid (Cl. 42,595; Basic Blue 7), Di-(4-(dimethylannino)phenyl)- (4-(methyl-phenylamino)-naphthalin-1-yl)carbenium-chlorid (Cl. 42,563; Basic Blue 8), 3,7- Di(dimethylamino)phenothiazin-5-ium-chlorid (Cl. 52,015 Basic Blue 9), Di[4- (dimethylamino)phenyl][4-(phenylamino)naphthyl] carbenium-chlorid (Cl. 44,045; Basic Blue 26), 2-[(4-(Ethyl(2-hydroxyethyl)amino)phenyl)azo]-6-nnethoxy-3-nnethyl-benzothiazoliunn-nnethylsulfat (Cl. 11 ,154; Basic Blue 41 ), 8-Amino-2-brom-5-hydroxy-4-imino-6-[(3-Particularly suitable cationic direct dyes are 9- (dimethylannino) benzo [a] phenoxazine-7-ium chloride (Cl 51, 175, Basic Blue 6), di [4- (diethylamino) phenyl] [4- (ethylamino ) naphthyl] carbenium chloride (Cl 42,595; Basic Blue 7), di- (4- (dimethylannino) phenyl) - (4- (methylphenylamino) naphthalen-1-yl) carbenium chloride (CI 42,563; Basic Blue 8), 3,7-di (dimethylamino) -phenothiazine-5-ium chloride (CI 52.015 Basic Blue 9), di [4- (dimethylamino) phenyl] [4- (phenylamino) naphthyl] carbenium chloride ( Cl.44,045; Basic Blue 26), 2 - [(4- (ethyl (2-hydroxyethyl) amino) phenyl) azo] -6-methoxy-3-methyl-benzothiazolino-n-methyl sulfate (CI 11, 154, Basic Blue 41 ), 8-amino-2-bromo-5-hydroxy-4-imino-6 - [(3
(trimethylammonio)phenyl)amino]-1(4H)-naphthalinon-chlorid (Cl. 56,059; Basic Blue No. 99), Bis[4- (dimethylannino)phenyl]-[4-(nnethylannino)phenyl]carbeniunn-chlorid (Cl. 42,535; Basic Violet 1 ), Tri(4-amino-3-methylphenyl)carbenium-chlorid (Cl. 42,520; Basic Violet 2), Tri[4- (dimethylamino)-phenyl]carbenium-chlorid (Cl. 42,555; Basic Violet 3), 2-[3,6- (Diethylamino)dibenzopyraniunn-9-yl]- benzoesäurechlorid (Cl. 45,170; Basic Violet 10), Di(4- aminophenyl)(4-annino-3- methylphenyl)carbeniunnchlorid (Cl. 42,510 Basic Violet 14), 1 ,3- Bis[(2,4-diamino-5-methylphenyl)azo]-3-methylbenzol (Cl. 21 ,010; Basic Brown 4), 1-[(4- Aminophenyl)azo]-7-(trimethylamnnonio)- 2-naphthol-chlorid (Cl. 12,250; Basic Brown 16), 1-[(4- Amino-2-nitrophenyl)azo]-7-(trinnethylannnnonio)-2-naphtholchlorid, 1-[(4-Amino-3- nitrophenyl)azo]-7-(trimethylannnnonio)-2-naphthol-chlorid (Cl. 12,251 ; Basic Brown 17), 3-[(4- Amino-2,5- dimethoxyphenyl)azo]-N,N,N-trimethylbenzolaminiumchlorid (Cl. 12,605, Basic Orange 69), 3,7-Diamino-2,8-dinnethyl- 5-phenylphenazinium-chlorid (Cl. 50,240; Basic Red 2), 1 ,4-Dimethyl-5-[(4-(dinnethylannino)phenyl)azo]-1 ,2,4-triazoliunn-chlorid (Cl. 11 ,055; Basic Red 22), 2-Hydroxy-1-[(2-methoxyphenyl)azo]-7-(trinnethylannnnonio)-naphthalin-chlorid (Cl. 12,245; Basic Red 76), Di[4-(dimethylamino)phenyl]iminomethan-hydrochlorid (Cl. 41 ,000; Basic Yellow 2), 2-[2-((2,4- Dimethoxyphenyl)amino)ethenyl]-1 ,3,3-trimethyl-3H-indol-1-ium-chlorid (Cl. 48,055; Basic Yellow 11 ), 3-Methyl-1-phenyl-4-[(3-(trimethylannnnonio)phenyl)azo]-pyrazol-5-on-chlorid (Cl. 12,719; Basic Yellow 57), Bis[4-(diethylamino)phenyl]phenylcarbenium-hydrogensulfat (1 :1 ) (Cl. 42,040; Basic Green 1 ), Di(4- (dimethylamino)phenyl)-phenylmethanol (Cl. 42,000; Basic Green 4), 1-(2- Morpholiniumpropylannino)-4-hydroxy-9,10-anthrachinon-nnethylsulfat, 1-[(3- (Dimethyl-propylanniniunn)-propyl)annino]-4-(nnethylannino)-9,10-anthrachinon-chlorid und direktziehende Farbstoffe, die einen Heterozyklus enthalten, der mindestens ein quaternäres Stickstoffatom aufweist.(trimethylammonio) phenyl) amino] -1 (4H) -naphthalenone chloride (Cl 56.059; Basic Blue No. 99), bis [4- (dimethylannino) phenyl] - [4- (n-ethylannino) phenyl] carbenicin chloride ( Cl. 42,535; Basic Violet 1), tri (4-amino-3-methylphenyl) carbenium chloride (Cl 42,520, Basic Violet 2), tri [4- (dimethylamino) -phenyl] carbenium chloride (Cl 42,555; Basic Violet 3), 2- [3,6- (diethylamino) dibenzopyraniunn-9-yl] benzoic acid chloride (Cl.45,170; Basic Violet 10), di (4-aminophenyl) (4-annino-3-methylphenyl) carbenic chloride ( Cl., 42, 510 Basic Violet 14), 1, 3-bis [(2,4-diamino-5-methylphenyl) azo] -3-methylbenzene (CI 21, 010, Basic Brown 4), 1 - [(4-aminophenyl ) azo] -7- (trimethylamnonio) -2-naphthol chloride (Cl 12,250, Basic Brown 16), 1 - [(4-amino-2-nitrophenyl) azo] -7- (trin-methylnonio) -2-naphthol chloride, 1 - [(4-Amino-3-nitrophenyl) azo] -7- (trimethylannononio) -2-naphthol chloride (Cl 12,251, Basic Brown 17), 3 - [(4-amino-2,5-dimethoxyphenyl) azo] -N, N, N-trimethylbenzylaminium chloride (CI 12,605, Basic Or 69), 3,7-diamino-2,8-dinethyl-5-phenylphenazinium chloride (Cl. 50.240; Basic Red 2), 1, 4-dimethyl-5 - [(4- (dinethylannino) phenyl) azo] -1, 2,4-triazolene chloride (Cl 11, 055, Basic Red 22), 2-hydroxy- 1 - [(2-methoxyphenyl) azo] -7- (trin-methylnonio) -naphthalene chloride (CI 12,245, Basic Red 76), di [4- (dimethylamino) phenyl] iminomethane hydrochloride (CI 41, 000, Basic Yellow 2), 2- [2 - ((2,4-dimethoxyphenyl) amino) ethenyl] -1,3,3-trimethyl-3H-indol-1-ium chloride (Cl 48,055, Basic Yellow 11), 3 -Methyl-1-phenyl-4 - [(3- (trimethylannononio) phenyl) azo] pyrazol-5-one chloride (Cl 12.719; Basic Yellow 57), bis [4- (diethylamino) phenyl] phenylcarbenium hydrogensulfate (1: 1) (CI 42.040; Basic Green 1), di (4- (dimethylamino) phenyl) -phenylmethanol (CI 42,000, Basic Green 4), 1- (2-morpholiniumpropylannino) -4-hydroxy-9, 10-anthraquinone-n-methylsulfate, 1 - [(3- (dimethylpropylanninunn) -propyl) -annino] -4- (n-ethylannino) -9,10-anthraquinone chloride; substantive dyes containing a heterocycle having at least one quaternary nitrogen atom.
Bevorzugte kationische direktziehenden Farbstoffe sind dabeiPreferred cationic substantive dyes are included
(a) kationische Triphenylmethanfarbstoffe, wie beispielsweise Basic Blue 7, Basic Blue 26, Basic Violet 2 und Basic Violet 14,(a) cationic triphenylmethane dyes such as Basic Blue 7, Basic Blue 26, Basic Violet 2 and Basic Violet 14,
(b) aromatischen Systeme, die mit einer quaternären Stickstoffgruppe substituiert sind, wie beispielsweise Basic Yellow 57, Basic Red 76, Basic Blue 99, Basic Brown 16 und Basic Brown 17, sowie(b) aromatic systems substituted with a quaternary nitrogen group, such as Basic Yellow 57, Basic Red 76, Basic Blue 99, Basic Brown 16 and Basic Brown 17, as well as
(c) direktziehende Farbstoffe, die einen Heterozyklus enthalten, der mindestens ein quaternäres Stickstoffatom aufweist, wie sie beispielsweise in der EP-A2-998 908, auf die an dieser Stelle explizit Bezug genommen wird, in den Ansprüchen 6 bis 11 genannt werden.(c) substantive dyes containing a heterocycle having at least one quaternary nitrogen atom, as mentioned, for example, in EP-A2-998 908, which is incorporated herein by reference, in claims 6 to 11.
Bevorzugte kationische direktziehende Farbstoffe der Gruppe (c) sind insbesondere die folgenden Verbindungen:Preferred cationic substantive dyes of group (c) are in particular the following compounds:
CH3SO4 " CH 3 SO 4 "
Figure imgf000041_0002
Figure imgf000041_0002
Cl"
Figure imgf000042_0001
Figure imgf000042_0002
Figure imgf000042_0003
Figure imgf000042_0004
Figure imgf000043_0001
Cl "
Figure imgf000042_0001
Figure imgf000042_0002
Figure imgf000042_0003
Figure imgf000042_0004
Figure imgf000043_0001
Die Verbindungen der Formeln (DZ1 ), (DZ3) und (DZ5), die auch unter den Bezeichnungen Basic Yellow 87, Basic Orange 31 und Basic Red 51 bekannt sind, sind ganz besonders bevorzugte kationische direktziehende Farbstoffe der Gruppe (c).The compounds of the formulas (DZ1), (DZ3) and (DZ5), which are also known by the names Basic Yellow 87, Basic Orange 31 and Basic Red 51, are very particularly preferred cationic substantive dyes of group (c).
Die kationischen direktziehenden Farbstoffe, die unter dem Warenzeichen Arianor® vertrieben werden, sind erfindungsgemäß ebenfalls ganz besonders bevorzugte kationische direktziehende Farbstoffe.The cationic direct dyes, which are sold under the trademark Arianor ®, according to the invention are also very particularly preferred cationic direct dyes.
Nichtionische direktziehende Farbstoffe:Nonionic substantive dyes:
Als nichtionische direktziehende Farbstoffe eignen sich insbesondere nichtionische Nitro- und Chinonfarbstoffe und neutrale Azofarbstoffe.Suitable nonionic substantive dyes are in particular nonionic nitro and quinone dyes and neutral azo dyes.
Geeignete blaue Nitrofarbstoffe sind insbesondere:Suitable blue nitro dyes are in particular:
1 ,4-Bis[(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-2-nitrobenzol, 1-(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino-2-nitro-4-[di(2-hydroxy- ethyl)amino]-benzol (HC Blue 2), 1-Methylamino-4- [methyl-(2,3-dihydroxypropyl)amino]-2- nitrobenzol (HC Blue 6),1-[(2,3- Dihydroxypropyl)-amino]-4-[ethyl-(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-2- nitrobenzol-hydrochlorid (HC Blue 9), 1-[(2,3-Dihydroxypropyl)amino]-4-[methyl-(2- hydroxyethyl)amino]-2-nitrobenzol (HC Blue 10), 4-[Di(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-1-[(2- methoxyethyl)amino]-2-nitrobenzol (HC Blue 11 ), 4-[Ethyl-(2-hydroxyethyl)-amino]-1-[(2- hydroxyethyl)amino]-2-nitrobenzol-hydrochlorid (HC Blue 12), 2-((4-Amino-2-nitrophenyl)annino)- 5-dimethylannino-benzoesäure (HC Blue 13), 1-Amino-3-methyl-4-[(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-6- nitrobenzol (HC Violet 1 ), 1-(3-Hydroxypropylamino)-4-[di(2-hydroxyethyl)annino]-2-nitrobenzol (HC Violet 2), 1-(2-Aminoethylamino)-4-[di(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-2-nitrobenzol, 4-(Di(2- hydroxyethyl)amino)-2-nitro-1-phenylannino-benzol.1,4-Bis [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -2-nitrobenzene, 1- (2-hydroxyethyl) amino-2-nitro-4- [di (2-hydroxyethyl) amino] benzene (HC Blue 2 ), 1-methylamino-4- [methyl- (2,3-dihydroxypropyl) amino] -2-nitrobenzene (HC Blue 6), 1 - [(2,3-dihydroxypropyl) amino] -4- [ethyl- ( 2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -2-nitrobenzene hydrochloride (HC Blue 9), 1 - [(2,3-dihydroxypropyl) amino] -4- [methyl (2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -2-nitrobenzene (HC Blue 10), 4- [di (2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -1 - [(2-methoxyethyl) amino] -2-nitrobenzene (HC Blue 11), 4- [ethyl- (2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -1 - [(2- hydroxyethyl) amino] -2-nitrobenzene hydrochloride (HC Blue 12), 2 - ((4-amino-2-nitrophenyl) -annino) -5-dimethylannino-benzoic acid (HC Blue 13), 1-amino-3-methyl- 4 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -6-nitrobenzene (HC Violet 1), 1- (3-hydroxypropylamino) -4- [di (2-hydroxyethyl) -annino] -2-nitrobenzene (HC Violet 2), 1 - (2-aminoethylamino) -4- [di (2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -2-nitrobenzene, 4- (di (2-hydroxyethyl) amino) -2-nitro-1-phenyl-aminobenzene.
Geeignete rote Nitrofarbstoffe sind insbesondere:Suitable red nitro dyes are in particular:
1-Amino-4-[(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-2-nitrobenzol (HC Red 7), 2-Amino-4,6-dinitrophenol (Pikraminsäure) und deren Salze, 1 ,4-Diamino-2-nitrobenzol (Cl. 76,070), 4-Amino-2-nitro- diphenylamin (HC Red 1 ), 1-Amino-4-[di(2-hydroxyethyl)annino]-2-nitrobenzol-hydrochlorid (HC Red 13), 1-Amino-4-[(2-hydroxyethyl)-amino]-5-chlor-2-nitrobenzol, 4-Amino-1-[(2- hydroxyethyl)amino]-2-nitrobenzol (HC Red 3), 4-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)methylamino]-1-(methylamino)- 2-nitrobenzol, 1-Amino-4-[(2,3-dihydroxypropyl)annino]-5-nnethyl-2-nitrobenzol, 1-Amino-4- (methylannino)-2-nitrobenzol, 4-Amino-2-nitro-1-[(prop-2-en-1-yl)-annino]-benzol, 4-Amino-3- nitrophenol, 4-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)-amino]-3-nitrophenol, 4-[(2-Nitrophenyl)amino]phenol (HC Orange 1 ), 1-[(2-Aminoethyl)amino]-4-(2-hydroxyethoxy)-2-nitrobenzol (HC Orange 2), 4-(2,3- Dihydroxypropoxy)-1-[(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-2-nitrobenzol (HC Orange 3), 1-Amino-5-chlor-4- [(2,3-dihydroxypropyl)amino]-2-nitrobenzol (HC Red 10), 5-Chlor-1 ,4-[di(2,3- dihydroxypropyl)amino]-2-nitrobenzol (HC Red 1 1 ), 2-[(2- Hydroxyethyl)amino]-4,6-dinitrophenol, 4-Ethylamino-3-nitrobenzoesäure, 2-[(4-Amino-2-nitrophenyl)annino]-benzoesäure, 2-Chlor-6- ethylamino-4-nitrophenol, 2-Amino-6-chlor-4-nitrophenol, 4-[(3-Hydroxypropyl)amino]-3- nitrophenol (HC Red BN), 2,5-Diamino-6-nitropyridin, 6-Amino-3-[(2-hydroxyethyl)annino]-2- nitropyridin, 3-Amino-6-[(2-hydroxyethyl)annino]-2-nitropyridin, 3-Amino-6-(ethylannino)-2- nitropyridin, 3-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino]-6-(nnethylannino)-2-nitropyridin, 3- Amino-6-(nnethylannino)- 2-nitropyridin, 6-(Ethylamino)-3-[(2-hydroxyethyl)annino]-2-nitropyridin, 1 ,2,3,4-Tetrahydro-6- nitrochinoxalin, 7-Amino-3,4-dihydro-6-nitro-2H-1 ,4-benzoxazin (HC Red 14).1-Amino-4 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -2-nitrobenzene (HC Red 7), 2-amino-4,6-dinitrophenol (picramic acid) and its salts, 1, 4-diamino-2-nitrobenzene ( Cl., 76, 070), 4-amino-2-nitro-diphenylamine (HC Red 1), 1-amino-4- [di (2-hydroxyethyl) -annino] -2-nitrobenzene hydrochloride (HC Red 13), 1-amino 4 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -5-chloro-2-nitrobenzene, 4-amino-1 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -2-nitrobenzene (HC Red 3), 4 - [(2 -Hydroxyethyl) methylamino] -1- (methylamino) -2-nitrobenzene, 1-amino-4 - [(2,3-dihydroxypropyl) -annino] -5-methyl-2-nitrobenzene, 1-amino-4- (methylannino) 2-nitrobenzene, 4-amino-2-nitro-1 - [(prop-2-en-1-yl) -annino] -benzene, 4-amino-3-nitrophenol, 4 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) - amino] -3-nitrophenol, 4 - [(2-nitrophenyl) amino] phenol (HC Orange 1), 1 - [(2-aminoethyl) amino] -4- (2-hydroxyethoxy) -2-nitrobenzene (HC Orange 2 ), 4- (2,3-dihydroxypropoxy) -1 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -2-nitrobenzene (HC Orange 3), 1-amino-5-chloro-4- [(2,3-dihydroxypropyl) amino] -2-nitrobenzene (HC Red 10), 5-chloro-1, 4- [di (2,3-dihydroxypropyl l) amino] -2-nitrobenzene (HC Red 1 1), 2 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -4,6-dinitrophenol, 4-ethylamino-3-nitrobenzoic acid, 2 - [(4-amino-2- nitrophenyl) -annino] -benzoic acid, 2-chloro-6-ethylamino-4-nitrophenol, 2-amino-6-chloro-4-nitrophenol, 4 - [(3-hydroxypropyl) amino] -3-nitrophenol (HC Red BN) , 2,5-diamino-6-nitropyridine, 6-amino-3 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) -annino] -2-nitropyridine, 3-amino-6 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) -annino] -2-nitropyridine, 3 -Amino-6- (ethylannino) -2-nitropyridine, 3 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -6- (n-ethylannino) -2-nitropyridine, 3-amino-6- (n-ethylannino) -2-nitropyridine, 6- (Ethylamino) -3 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) -annino] -2-nitropyridine, 1, 2,3,4-tetrahydro-6-nitroquinoxaline, 7-amino-3,4-dihydro-6-nitro-2H-1 , 4-benzoxazine (HC Red 14).
Geeignete gelbe Nitrofarbstoffe sind insbesondere:Suitable yellow nitro dyes are in particular:
1 ,2-Diamino-4-nitrobenzol (Cl. 76,020), 1-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino]-2-nitrobenzol (HC Yellow 2), 1-(2-Hydroxyethoxy)-2-[(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-5-nitrobenzol (HC Yellow 4), 1-Amino-2-[(2- hydroxyethyl)amino]-5-nitrobenzol (HC Yellow 5), 4-[(2,3-Dihydroxypropyl)-amino]-3-nitro-1- trifluormethyl-benzol (HC Yellow 6), 2-[Di(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-5-nitrophenol, 2-[(2- Hydroxyethyl)amino]-1-nnethoxy-5-nitrobenzol, 2-Amino-3-nitrophenol, 2-Amino-4-nitrophenol, 1- Amino-2-nnethyl-6-nitrobenzol, 1-(2-Hydroxyethoxy)-3-methylannino-4-nitrobenzol, 2,3-(Dihydroxy- propoxy)-3-methylannino-4-nitrobenzol, 3-[(2-Aminoethyl)annino]-1-nnethoxy-4-nitrobenzol- hydrochlorid (HC Yellow 9), 1-Chlor-2,4-bis[(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-5-nitrobenzol (HC Yellow 10), 2-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino]-5-nitrophenol (HC Yellow 11 ), 1-[(2'-Ureidoethyl)amino]-4-nitrobenzol, 1-Amino-4-[(2-anninoethyl)annino]-5-nnethyl-2-nitrobenzol, 4-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino]-3-nitro-1- methylbenzol, 1-Chlor-4-[(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-3-nitrobenzol (HC Yellow 12), 4-[(2- Hydroxyethyl)amino]-3-nitro-1-trifluormethyl-benzol (HC Yellow 13), 4-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)-amino]-3- nitro-benzonitril (HC Yellow 14), 4-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino]-3-nitro-benzamid (HC Yellow 15) 3- [(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino]-4-nnethyl-1-nitrobenzol, 4-Chlor-3-[(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-1-nitrobenzol.1,2-diamino-4-nitrobenzene (CI 76,020), 1 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -2-nitrobenzene (HC Yellow 2), 1- (2-hydroxyethoxy) -2 - [(2-hydroxyethyl ) amino] -5-nitrobenzene (HC Yellow 4), 1-amino-2 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -5-nitrobenzene (HC Yellow 5), 4 - [(2,3-dihydroxypropyl) amino] 3-nitro-1-trifluoromethylbenzene (HC Yellow 6), 2- [di (2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -5-nitrophenol, 2 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -1-methoxy-5-nitrobenzene , 2-amino-3-nitrophenol, 2-amino-4-nitrophenol, 1-amino-2-methyl-6-nitrobenzene, 1- (2-hydroxyethoxy) -3-methylannino-4-nitrobenzene, 2,3- ( Dihydroxypropoxy) -3-methylannino-4-nitrobenzene, 3 - [(2-aminoethyl) -annino] -1-methoxy-4-nitrobenzene hydrochloride (HC Yellow 9), 1-chloro-2,4-bis [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -5-nitrobenzene (HC Yellow 10), 2 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -5-nitrophenol (HC Yellow 11), 1 - [(2'-ureidoethyl) amino] -4-nitrobenzene, 1-amino-4 - [(2-aminoethyl) -annino] -5-methyl-2-nitrobenzene, 4 - [(2-hydroxyethyl ) amino] -3-nitro-1-methylbenzene, 1-chloro-4 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -3-nitrobenzene (HC Yellow 12), 4 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -3-nitro 1-trifluoromethylbenzene (HC Yellow 13), 4 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -3-nitrobenzonitrile (HC Yellow 14), 4 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -3-nitro- benzamide (HC Yellow 15) 3- [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -4-methyl-1-nitrobenzene, 4-chloro-3 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -1-nitrobenzene.
Geeignete Chinonfarbstoffe sind insbesondere:Suitable quinone dyes are in particular:
1 ,4-Di[(2,3-dihydroxypropyl)amino]-9,10-anthrachinon, 1 ,4-Di[(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-9,10- anthrachinon (Cl. 61 ,545, Disperse Blue 23), 1-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino]-4-methylannino-9,10- anthrachinon (Cl. 61 ,505, Disperse Blue 3), 2-[(2-Aminoethyl)amino]-9,10-anthrachinon (HC Orange 5), 1-Amino-4-hydroxy-9,10-anthrachinon (Cl. 60,710, Disperse Red 15), 1-Hydroxy-4- [(4-methyl-2-sulfophenyl)amino]-9,10-anthrachinon, 7-Beta-D-glucopyranosyl-9,10-dihydro-1- methyl-9,10-dioxo-3,5,6,8-tetrahydroxy-2-anthracencarbonsäure (Cl. 75,470, Natural Red 4) , 1- [(3-Aminopropyl)amino]-4-methylamino-9,10-anthrachinon (HC Blue 8), 1-[(3-Aminopropyl)- amino]-9,10- anthrachinon (HC Red 8), 1 ,4-Diamino-2-methoxy-9,10-anthrachinon (Cl. 62,015, Disperse Red 11 , Solvent Violet No. 26), 1 ,4-Dihydroxy-5,8-bis[(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-9,10- anthrachinon (Cl. 62,500, Disperse Blue 7, Solvent Blue No. 69), 1 ,4-Diamino-9,10-anthrachinon (Cl. 61 ,100, Disperse Violet 1 ), 1-Amino-4-(methylamino)-9,10-anthrachinon (Cl. 61 ,105, Disperse Violet 4, Solvent Violet No. 12), 2-Hydroxy-3-methoxy-1 ,4-naphthochinon, 2,5- Dihydroxy-1 ,4-naphthochinon, 2-Hydroxy-3-methyl-1 ,4-naphthochinon, N-{6-[(3-Chlor-4- (methylannino)phenyl)innino]-4-nnethyl-3-oxo-1 ,4-cyclohexadien-1-yl}harnstoff (HC Red 9), 2-{{4- [Di(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]phenyl}annino}-5-[(2-hydroxyethyl)annino]-2,5-cyclohexadien-1 ,4-dion (HC Green 1 ), 5-Hydroxy-1 ,4-naphthochinon (Cl. 75,500, Natural Brown 7), 2-Hydroxy-1 ,4- naphthochinon (Cl. 75,480, Natural Orange 6), 1 ,2-Dihydro-2-(1 ,3-dihydro-3-oxo-2H-indol-2- yliden)-3H-indol-3-on (Cl. 73,000), 4-{{5-[(2-Hydroxyethyl) amino]-1-methyl-1 H- pyrazol-4- yl}imino}-4,5-dihydro-5-[(2-hydroxyethyl)-innino]-1-nnethyl-1 H-Pyrazol-sulfat(1 :1 ), Hydrat(1 :1 ).1,1,4-Di [(2,3-dihydroxypropyl) amino] -9,10-anthraquinone, 1,4-di [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -9,10-anthraquinone (Cl. 61, 545, Disperse Blue 23), 1 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -4-methylannino-9,10-anthraquinone (CI 61, 505, Disperse Blue 3), 2 - [(2-aminoethyl) amino] -9,10- anthraquinone (HC Orange 5), 1-amino-4-hydroxy-9,10-anthraquinone (CI 60,710, Disperse Red 15), 1-hydroxy-4- [(4-methyl-2-sulfophenyl) amino] -9 , 10-anthraquinone, 7-beta-D-glucopyranosyl-9,10-dihydro-1-methyl-9,10-dioxo-3,5,6,8-tetrahydroxy-2-anthracenecarboxylic acid (CI 75,470, Natural Red 4 ), 1- [(3-aminopropyl) amino] -4-methylamino-9,10-anthraquinone (HC Blue 8), 1 - [(3-aminopropyl) -amino] -9,10-anthraquinone (HC Red 8) 1,1,4-diamino-2-methoxy-9,10-anthraquinone (CI 62.015, Disperse Red 11, Solvent Violet No. 26), 1, 4-dihydroxy-5,8-bis [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino ] -9,10-anthraquinone (CI 62,500, Disperse Blue 7, Solvent Blue No. 69), 1,4-diamino-9,10-anthraquinone (CI 61, 100, Disperse Violet 1), 1-amino- 4- (methylamino) -9,10-anthraquinone (Cl. 61, 105, Disperse Violet 4, Solvent Violet No. 12), 2-hydroxy-3-methoxy-1,4-naphthoquinone, 2,5-dihydroxy-1,4-naphthoquinone, 2-hydroxy-3-methyl-1,4-naphthoquinone, N- {6 - [( 3-chloro-4- (methylannino) phenyl) innino] -4-methyl-3-oxo-1,4-cyclohexadien-1-yl} urea (HC Red 9), 2 - {{4- [di (2- hydroxyethyl) amino] phenyl} -annino} -5 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) -annino] -2,5-cyclohexadiene-1,4-dione (HC Green 1), 5-hydroxy-1,4-naphthoquinone (CI 75,500 , Natural Brown 7), 2-hydroxy-1, 4-naphthoquinone (CI 75,480, Natural Orange 6), 1, 2-dihydro-2- (1,3-dihydro-3-oxo-2H-indole-2 ylidene) -3H-indol-3-one (Cl 73,000), 4 - {{5 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -1-methyl-1H-pyrazol-4-yl} imino} -4.5 -dihydro-5 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) -innino] -1-methyl-1H-pyrazole sulfate (1: 1), hydrate (1: 1).
Geeignete neutrale Azofarbstoffe sind insbesondere: 1-[Di(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-3-methyl-4-[(4- nitrophenyl)azo]-benzol (Cl. 11 ,210, Disperse Red 17), 1-[Di(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]-4-[(4- nitrophenyl)azo]-benzol (Disperse Black 9), 4-[(4- Aminophenyl)azo]-1-[di(2-hydroxyethyl)amino]- 3-methylbenzol (HC Yellow 7), 2,6-Diamino-3-[(pyridin-3-yl)azo]-pyridin, 2-{[4- (Acetylamino)phenyl]azo}-4-nnethylphenol (Cl. 11855; Disperse Yellow 3), 4-[(4-Nitrophenyl)azo]- anilin (Cl. 11 ,005; Disperse Orange 3). Bevorzugte nichtionische direktziehende Farbstoffe sind die unter den internationalen Bezeichnungen bzw. Handelsnamen HC Yellow 2, HC Yellow 4, HC Yellow 5, HC Yellow 6, HC Yellow 12, HC Orange 1 , Disperse Orange 3, HC Red 1 , HC Red 3, HC Red 10, HC Red 11 , HC Red 13, HC Red BN, HC Blue 2, HC Blue 11 , HC Blue 12, Disperse Blue 3, HC Violet 1 , Disperse Violet 1 , Disperse Violet 4, Disperse Black 9 bekannten Verbindungen, sowie 1 ,4-Diamino-2-nitrobenzol, 2-Amino-4-nitrophenol, 1 ,4-Bis-(2-hydroxyethyl)-amino-2-nitrobenzol, 3-Nitro-4-(2-hydroxyethyl)- aminophenol, 2-(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino-4,6-dinitrophenol, 4-[(2-Hydroxyethyl)amino]-3-nitro-1- methylbenzol, 1-Amino-4-(2-hydroxyethyl)-amino-5-chlor-2-nitrobenzol, 4-Amino-3-nitrophenol, 1- (2'-Ureidoethyl)amino-4-nitrobenzol, 2-[(4-Amino-2-nitrophenyl)annino]-benzoesäure, 6-Nitro- 1 ,2,3,4-tetrahydrochinoxalin, 2-Hydroxy-1 ,4-naphthochinon, Pikraminsäure und deren Salze, 2- Amino-6-chloro-4-nitrophenol, 4-Ethylamino-3-nitrobenzoesäure und 2-Chlor-6-ethylamino-4- nitrophenol.In particular, suitable neutral azo dyes are: 1- [di (2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -3-methyl-4 - [(4-nitrophenyl) azo] benzene (CI 11, 210, Disperse Red 17), 1- [di (2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -4 - [(4-nitrophenyl) azo] benzene (Disperse Black 9), 4 - [(4-aminophenyl) azo] -1- [di (2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -3 methylbenzene (HC Yellow 7), 2,6-diamino-3 - [(pyridin-3-yl) azo] pyridine, 2 - {[4- (acetylamino) phenyl] azo} -4-naphthylphenol (CI, 11855 Disperse Yellow 3), 4 - [(4-nitrophenyl) azo] aniline (CI 11, 005, Disperse Orange 3). Preferred nonionic substantive dyes are those under the international designations or trade names HC Yellow 2, HC Yellow 4, HC Yellow 5, HC Yellow 6, HC Yellow 12, HC Orange 1, Disperse Orange 3, HC Red 1, HC Red 3, HC HC Red 11, HC Red 11, HC Red 11, HC Red 11, HC Blue 2, HC Blue 11, HC Blue 12, Disperse Blue 3, HC Violet 1, Disperse Violet 1, Disperse Violet 4, Disperse Black 9 well-known compounds, as well 1, 4-diamino-2-nitrobenzene, 2-amino-4-nitrophenol, 1,4-bis (2-hydroxyethyl) amino-2-nitrobenzene, 3-nitro-4- (2-hydroxyethyl) aminophenol, 2- (2-hydroxyethyl) amino-4,6-dinitrophenol, 4 - [(2-hydroxyethyl) amino] -3-nitro-1-methylbenzene, 1-amino-4- (2-hydroxyethyl) amino-5- Chloro-2-nitrobenzene, 4-amino-3-nitrophenol, 1- (2'-ureidoethyl) amino-4-nitrobenzene, 2 - [(4-amino-2-nitrophenyl) -annino] -benzoic acid, 6-nitro-1 , 2,3,4-tetrahydroquinoxaline, 2-hydroxy-1,4-naphthoquinone, picramic acid and its salts, 2-amino-6-chloro-4-nitrophenol, 4-ethylamino-3-nitrobenzoic acid acid and 2-chloro-6-ethylamino-4-nitrophenol.
Es ist nicht erforderlich, dass die direktziehenden Farbstoffe jeweils einheitliche Verbindungen darstellen. Vielmehr können, bedingt durch die Herstellungsverfahren für die einzelnen Farbstoffe, in untergeordneten Mengen noch weitere Komponenten enthalten sein, soweit diese nicht das Färbeergebnis nachteilig beeinflussen oder aus anderen Gründen, z.B. toxikologischen, ausgeschlossen werden müssen.It is not necessary that the substantive dyes each represent uniform compounds. Rather, due to the production process for the individual dyes, minor amounts of other components may be included, as far as they do not adversely affect the coloring result or for other reasons, e.g. toxicological, must be excluded.
Weiterhin können als direktziehende Farbstoffe auch in der Natur vorkommende Farbstoffe eingesetzt werden, wie sie beispielsweise in Henna rot, Henna neutral, Henna schwarz, Kamillenblüte, Sandelholz, schwarzem Tee, Faulbaumrinde, Salbei, Blauholz, Krappwurzel, Catechu, Sedre und Alkannawurzel enthalten sind.Furthermore, as direct dyes also naturally occurring dyes may be used, as for example in henna red, henna neutral, henna black, chamomile flower, sandalwood, black tea, buckthorn bark, sage, bluewood, madder root, Catechu, Sedre and alkano root are included.
Als Farbstoffvorstufen naturanaloger Farbstoffe werden bevorzugt solche Indole und Indoline eingesetzt, die mindestens zwei Gruppen ausgewählt aus Hydroxy- und/oder oder Aminogruppen, bevorzugt als Substituent am Sechsring, aufweisen. Diese Gruppen können weitere Substituenten tragen, z. B. in Form einer Veretherung oder Veresterung der Hydroxygruppe oder einer Alkylierung der Aminogruppe. In einer weiteren Ausführungsform enthalten die Mittel zusätzlich mindestens ein solches Indol- und/oder Indolinderivat. Erfindungsgemäße Zusammensetzungen, die Vorstufen naturanaloger Farbstoffe enthalten, werden bevorzugt als luftoxidative Färbemittel verwendet. In dieser Ausführungsform werden die besagten Zusammensetzungen folglich bevorzugt nicht mit einem zusätzlichen Oxidationsmittel versetzt. Besonders gut als Vorstufen naturanaloger Haarfarbstoffe geeignet sind Derivate des 5,6- Dihydroxyindols der Formel (RN 1 ),The dyestuff precursors of naturally-analogous dyes are preferably indoles and indolines which have at least two groups selected from hydroxy and / or amino groups, preferably as a substituent on the six-membered ring. These groups may carry further substituents, e.g. Example in the form of an etherification or esterification of the hydroxy group or an alkylation of the amino group. In a further embodiment, the agents additionally contain at least one such indole and / or indoline derivative. Compositions according to the invention which comprise precursors of naturally-analogous dyes are preferably used as air-oxidative colorants. Thus, in this embodiment, said compositions are preferably not added with an additional oxidizing agent. Particularly suitable precursors of natural-analogous hair dyes are derivatives of the 5,6-dihydroxyindole of the formula (RN 1),
Figure imgf000047_0001
) in der unabhängig voneinander
Figure imgf000047_0001
) in the independently
R1 steht für Wasserstoff, eine d-C4-Alkylgruppe oder eine Ci-C4-Hydroxy-alkylgruppe,R 1 is hydrogen, a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group or a C 1 -C 4 -hydroxy-alkyl group,
R2 steht für Wasserstoff oder eine -COOH-Gruppe, wobei die -COOH-Gruppe auch als Salz mit einem physiologisch verträglichen Kation vorliegen kann,R 2 is hydrogen or a -COOH group, wherein the -COOH group may also be present as a salt with a physiologically compatible cation,
R3 steht für Wasserstoff oder eine C-ι-C4-Alkylgruppe,R 3 is hydrogen or a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group,
R4 steht für Wasserstoff, eine C-ι-C4-Alkylgruppe oder eine Gruppe -CO-R6, in der R6 steht für eine d-C4-Alkylgruppe, undR 4 is hydrogen, a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group or a group -CO-R 6 , in which R 6 is a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group, and
R5 steht für eine der unter R4 genannten Gruppen, sowie physiologisch verträgliche Salze dieser Verbindungen mit einer organischen oder anorganischen Säure.R 5 is one of the groups mentioned under R 4 , as well as physiologically acceptable salts of these compounds with an organic or inorganic acid.
Besonders bevorzugte Derivate des Indols sind das 5,6-Dihydroxyindol, N-Methyl-5,6- dihydroxyindol, N-Ethyl-5,6-dihydroxyindol, N-Propyl-5,6-dihydroxyindol,Particularly preferred derivatives of indole are 5,6-dihydroxyindole, N-methyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole, N-ethyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole, N-propyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole,
N-Butyl-5,6-dihydroxyindol sowie 5,6-Dihydroxyindol-2-carbonsäure.N-butyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole and 5,6-dihydroxyindole-2-carboxylic acid.
Besonders hervorzuheben sind innerhalb dieser Gruppe N-Methyl-5,6-dihydroxyindol, N-Ethyl- 5,6-dihydroxyindol, N-Propyl-5,6-dihydroxyindol, N-Butyl-5,6-dihydroxyindol und insbesondere das 5,6-Dihydroxyindol.Particularly noteworthy within this group are N-methyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole, N-ethyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole, N-propyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole, N-butyl-5,6-dihydroxyindole and especially 5, 6-dihydroxyindole.
Als Vorstufen naturanaloger Haarfarbstoffe hervorragend geeignet sind weiterhin Derivate des 5,6-Dihydroxyindolins der Formel (RN2),Derivatives of 5,6-dihydroxyindoline of the formula (RN2) are also outstandingly suitable as precursors of naturally-analogous hair dyes.
Figure imgf000047_0002
in der unabhängig voneinander
Figure imgf000047_0002
in the independently of each other
R1 steht für Wasserstoff, eine Ci-C4-Alkylgruppe oder eine Ci-C4-Hydroxyalkylgruppe, R2 steht für Wasserstoff oder eine -COOH-Gruppe, wobei die -COOH-Gruppe auch als Salz mit einem physiologisch verträglichen Kation vorliegen kann,R 1 is hydrogen, a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group or a C 1 -C 4 -hydroxyalkyl group, R 2 is hydrogen or a -COOH group, wherein the -COOH group may also be present as a salt with a physiologically compatible cation,
R3 steht für Wasserstoff oder eine d-C4-Alkylgruppe,R 3 is hydrogen or a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group,
R4 steht für Wasserstoff, eine d-C4-Alkylgruppe oder eine Gruppe -CO-R6, in der R6 steht für eine d-C4-Alkylgruppe, undR 4 is hydrogen, a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group or a group -CO-R 6 , in which R 6 is a C 1 -C 4 -alkyl group, and
R5 steht für eine der unter R4 genannten Gruppen, sowie physiologisch verträgliche Salze dieser Verbindungen mit einer organischen oder anorganischen Säure.R 5 is one of the groups mentioned under R 4 , as well as physiologically acceptable salts of these compounds with an organic or inorganic acid.
Besonders bevorzugte Derivate des Indols sind 5,6-Dihydroxyindolins, N-Methyl-5,6-dihy- droxyindolins, N-Ethyl-5,6-dihydroxyindolins, N-Propyl-5,6-dihydroxyindolins, N-Butyl-5,6-dihy- droxyindolins, 5,6-Dihydroxyindolins-2-carbonsäure.Particularly preferred derivatives of indole are 5,6-dihydroxyindoline, N-methyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline, N-ethyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline, N-propyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline, N-butyl-5, 6-dihydroxyindoline, 5,6-dihydroxyindoline-2-carboxylic acid.
Innerhalb dieser Gruppe hervorzuheben sind N-Methyl-5,6-dihydroxyindolins, N-Ethyl-5,6- dihydroxyindolins, N-Propyl-5,6-dihydroxyindolins, N-Butyl-5,6-dihydroxyindolins sowie insbesondere das 5,6-Dihydroxyindolins.Emphasized within this group are N-methyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline, N-ethyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline, N-propyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline, N-butyl-5,6-dihydroxyindoline, and especially the 5,6 -Dihydroxyindolins.
Im Sinne der Erfindung sind die einsetzbaren Oxidationsmittel von Luftsauerstoff verschieden und besitzen ein solches Oxidationspotenzial, das es ermöglicht das natürliche Farbpigment Melanin oxidativ aufzuhellen und/oder ein Oxidationsfarbstoffvorprodukt vom Entwicklertyp zu oxidieren.For the purposes of the invention, the usable oxidizing agents are different from atmospheric oxygen and have such an oxidation potential which makes it possible to lighten the natural color pigment melanin oxidatively and / or to oxidize a developer-type oxidation dye precursor.
Solche Oxidationsmittel sind beispielsweise Wasserstoffperoxid und seine Anlagerungsprodukte, organische Percarbonsäuren oder organische Peroxide.Such oxidizing agents are, for example, hydrogen peroxide and its addition products, organic percarboxylic acids or organic peroxides.
Als organische Percarbonsäuren eignen sich erfindungsgemäß besonders Monoperphthalsäure, Peressigsäure oder 6-(Phthalimidoperoxy)hexansäure (CAS-Nr.: 128275-31-0).Suitable organic percarboxylic acids according to the invention are in particular monoperphthalic acid, peracetic acid or 6- (phthalimidoperoxy) hexanoic acid (CAS No .: 128275-31-0).
Als Oxidationsmittel kommt jedoch bevorzugt Wasserstoffperoxid und/oder mindestens ein Anlagerungsprodukt davon, insbesondere an anorganische oder organische Verbindungen, in Frage. Die geeigneten Anlagerungsprodukte von Wasserstoffperoxid werden wiederum bevorzugt ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Gruppe, bestehend aus Natriumperborat,As the oxidizing agent, however, hydrogen peroxide and / or at least one addition product thereof, in particular inorganic or organic compounds, are preferred. The suitable addition products of hydrogen peroxide are in turn preferably selected from at least one compound of the group consisting of sodium perborate,
Natriumpercarbonat, Magnesiumpercarbonat, Natriumpercarbamid, Polyvinylpyrrolidon n H2O2 (n ist eine positive ganze Zahl größer 0), Harnstoffperoxid und Melaminperoxid. Erfindungsgemäß können die Oxidationsmittel auch zusammen mit einem Katalysator Anwendung finden. Der Katalysator aktiviert die Oxidation des Substrats, wie beispielsweise die Oxidation der Oxidationsfarbstoffvorprodukte oder des Melanins. Solche Katalysatoren sind z.B. Metallionen, lodide, Chinone oder bestimmte Enzyme.Sodium, Magnesiumpercarbonat, percarbamide, polyvinylpyrrolidone n H 2 O 2 (n is a positive integer greater than 0), urea and melamine. According to the invention, the oxidizing agents can also be used together with a catalyst. The catalyst activates the oxidation of the substrate, such as oxidation of the oxidation dye precursors or melanin. Such catalysts are, for example, metal ions, iodides, quinones or certain enzymes.
Geeignete Metallionen sind beispielsweise Zn2+, Cu2+, Fe2+, Fe3+, Mn2+, Mn4+, Li+, Mg2+, Ca2+ und Al3+. Besonders geeignet sind dabei Zn2+, Cu2+ und Mn2+. Die Metallionen können prinzipiell in der Form eines beliebigen, physiologisch verträglichen Salzes oder in Form einer Komplexverbindung eingesetzt werden. Bevorzugte Salze sind die Acetate, Sulfate, Halogenide, Lactate und Tartrate. Durch Verwendung dieser Metallsalze kann die Oxidation beschleunigt als auch im Rahmen einer oxidativen Färbung die Farbnuance gezielt beeinflusst werden.Suitable metal ions are, for example, Zn 2+ , Cu 2+ , Fe 2+ , Fe 3+ , Mn 2+ , Mn 4+ , Li + , Mg 2+ , Ca 2+ and Al 3+ . Particularly suitable are Zn 2+ , Cu 2+ and Mn 2+ . The metal ions can in principle be used in the form of any physiologically acceptable salt or in the form of a complex compound. Preferred salts are the acetates, sulfates, halides, lactates and tartrates. By using these metal salts, the oxidation can be accelerated as well as the color shade can be specifically influenced in the context of an oxidative dyeing.
Geeignete Enzyme sind z.B. Peroxidasen, die die Wirkung geringer Mengen an Wasserstoffperoxid deutlich verstärken können. Weiterhin sind solche Enzyme erfindungsgemäß geeignet, die mit Hilfe von Luftsauerstoff in situ geringe Mengen Wasserstoffperoxid erzeugen und auf diese Weise die Oxidation der Farbstoffvorprodukte biokatalytisch aktivieren. Besonders geeignete Katalysatoren für die Oxidation von Farbstoffvorprodukten sind die sogenannten 2- Elektronen-Oxidoreduktasen in Kombination mit den dafür spezifischen Substraten, z.B. Pyranose-Oxidase und z.B. D-Glucose oder Galactose,Suitable enzymes are e.g. Peroxidases that can significantly increase the effect of small amounts of hydrogen peroxide. Furthermore, such enzymes are suitable according to the invention, which generate with the aid of atmospheric oxygen in situ small amounts of hydrogen peroxide and biocatalytically activate the oxidation of the dye precursors in this way. Particularly suitable catalysts for the oxidation of dye precursors are the so-called 2-electron oxidoreductases in combination with the specific substrates, e.g. Pyranose oxidase and e.g. D-glucose or galactose,
Glucose-Oxidase und D-Glucose, Glycerin-Oxidase und Glycerin,Glucose oxidase and D-glucose, glycerol oxidase and glycerin,
Pyruvat-Oxidase und Benztraubensäure oder deren Salze, - Alkohol-Oxidase und Alkohol (MeOH, EtOH), Lactat-Oxidase und Milchsäure und deren Salze, Tyrosinase-Oxidase und Tyrosin, Uricase und Harnsäure oder deren Salze, Cholinoxidase und Cholin, Aminosäure-Oxidase und Aminosäuren.Pyruvate oxidase and pyruvic acid or its salts, - alcohol oxidase and alcohol (MeOH, EtOH), lactate oxidase and lactic acid and its salts, tyrosinase oxidase and tyrosine, uricase and uric acid or their salts, choline oxidase and choline, amino acid oxidase and amino acids.
Das Oxidationsmittel ist bevorzugt in einer Menge von 1 ,0 bis 20 Gew.-%, insbesondere von 3,0 bis 15,0 Gew.-%, jeweils bezogen auf das Gewicht des anwendungsbereiten Mittels, in einem erfindungsgemäß verwendbaren Mittel enthalten. Bei einer gleichzeitigen Verwendung von Oxidationsmitteln wird die anwendungsfertige Zubereitung zweckmäßigerweise unmittelbar vor der Anwendung durch Mischung einer Zusammensetzung, enthaltend das Oxidationsmittel mit der Zusammensetzung, enthaltend die farbverändernden Komponenten, hergestellt. Wenn das erfindungsgemäße Mittel beispielsweise als oxidatives Färbemittel vorliegt, dann wird das eigentliche oxidative Färbemittel bei getrennter Lagerung der Farbstoffvorprodukte und des Oxidationsmittels unmittelbar vor der Anwendung durch Mischen hergestellt. In der Ausführungsform als oxidatives Färbemittel wird daher das erfindungsgemäße Mittel vor der Applikation aus einer Zusammensetzung, enthaltend in einem kosmetischen Träger besagte Lumineszenzpigmente und mindestens eine zusätzliche farbverändernde Komponente, und einer weiteren Zusammensetzung, enthaltend in einem kosmetischen Träger mindestens ein Oxidationsmittel, gemischt. Das dabei entstehende gebrauchsfertige Präparat sollte bevorzugt einen pH-Wert im Bereich von 6 bis 12, insbesondere von pH 7,5 bis 10, aufweisen.The oxidizing agent is preferably contained in an amount of from 1.0 to 20% by weight, in particular from 3.0 to 15.0% by weight, in each case based on the weight of the ready-to-use agent, in an agent which can be used according to the invention. With simultaneous use of oxidizing agents, the ready-to-use composition is conveniently prepared immediately prior to use by mixing a composition containing the oxidizing agent with the composition containing the color-changing components. If the agent according to the invention is present, for example, as an oxidative colorant, the actual oxidative colorant is prepared by separate mixing of the dye precursors and the oxidizing agent immediately before use. In the embodiment as an oxidative colorant, the agent according to the invention is therefore mixed prior to application from a composition comprising said luminescent pigments in a cosmetic carrier and at least one additional color-modifying component, and a further composition containing at least one oxidizing agent in a cosmetic carrier. The resulting ready-to-use preparation should preferably have a pH in the range from 6 to 12, in particular from pH 7.5 to 10.
Für eine Farbveränderung mittels Aufhellung bzw. Bleichung des Substrats, beispielsweise der Haare, wird bevorzugt in den erfindungsgemäßen kosmetischen Mitteln neben mindestens einem Oxidationsmittel zusätzlich mindestens ein Bleichverstärker eingesetzt.For a color change by means of brightening or bleaching of the substrate, for example the hair, in addition to at least one oxidizing agent, at least one bleaching booster is preferably used in the cosmetic compositions according to the invention.
Bleichverstärker werden bevorzugt zur Steigerung der Bleichwirkung des Oxidationsmittels, insbesondere des Wasserstoffperoxids, eingesetzt. Geeignete Bleichverstärker sindBleach boosters are preferably used to increase the bleaching action of the oxidizing agent, in particular the hydrogen peroxide. Suitable bleach boosters are
(BV-i) Verbindungen, die unter Perhydrolysebedingungen aliphatische Peroxocarbonsäuren und/oder Perbenzoesäure oder deren Derivate ergeben, und/oder(BV-i) compounds which give aliphatic peroxycarboxylic acids and / or perbenzoic acid or their derivatives under perhydrolysis conditions, and / or
(BV-ii) Carbonatsalze und/oder Hydrogencarbonatsalze, und/oder(BV-ii) carbonate salts and / or bicarbonate salts, and / or
(BV-iii) organische Carbonate, und/oder(BV-iii) organic carbonates, and / or
(BV-iv) Carbonsäuren, und/oder (BV-v) Peroxoverbindungen.(BV-iv) carboxylic acids, and / or (BV-v) peroxo compounds.
Als Bleichverstärker können Verbindungen, die unter Perhydrolysebedingungen aliphatische Peroxocarbonsäuren mit vorzugsweise 1 bis 10 C-Atomen, insbesondere 2 bis 4 C-Atomen, und/oder gegebenenfalls substituierte Perbenzoesäure ergeben, eingesetzt werden. Geeignet sind Substanzen, die Sauerstoff- und/oder stichstoffgebundene Acylgruppen mit der genannten Anzahl an Kohlenstoffatomen und/oder gegebenenfalls substituierte Benzoylgruppen tragen. Bevorzugt sind mehrfach acylierte Alkylendiamine, insbesondere Tetraacetylethylendiamin (TAED), acylierte Triazinderivate, insbesondere 1 ,5-Diacetyl-2,4-dioxohexahydro-1 ,3,5-triazin (DADHT), acylierte Glykolurile, insbesondere Tetraacetylglykoluril (TAGU), N-Acylimide, insbesondere N-Nonanoylsuccinimid (NOSI), acylierte Phenolsulfonate, insbesondere n- Nonanoyl- oder Isononanoyloxybenzolsulfonat (n- bzw. iso-NOBS), Carbonsäureanhydride, insbesondere Phthalsäureanhydrid, acylierte mehrwertige Alkohole, insbesondere Triacetin, Ethylenglykoldiacetat und 2,5-Diacetoxy-2,5-dihydrofuran.As bleach amplifiers, it is possible to use compounds which, under perhydrolysis conditions, give aliphatic peroxycarboxylic acids having preferably 1 to 10 C atoms, in particular 2 to 4 C atoms, and / or optionally substituted perbenzoic acid. Suitable substances are the oxygen- and / or nitrogen-bonded acyl groups with the mentioned Number of carbon atoms and / or optionally substituted benzoyl groups bear. Preference is given to polyacylated alkylenediamines, in particular tetraacetylethylenediamine (TAED), acylated triazine derivatives, in particular 1,5-diacetyl-2,4-dioxohexahydro-1,3,5-triazine (DADHT), acylated glycolurils, in particular tetraacetylglycoluril (TAGU), N- Acylimides, in particular N-nonanoylsuccinimide (NOSI), acylated phenolsulfonates, in particular n-nonanoyl or isononanoyloxybenzenesulfonate (n- or iso-NOBS), carboxylic anhydrides, in particular phthalic anhydride, acylated polyhydric alcohols, in particular triacetin, ethylene glycol diacetate and 2,5-diacetoxy- 2,5-dihydrofuran.
Die Carbonat- bzw. Hydrogencarbonatsalze werden bevorzugt ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Gruppe bestehend aus Ammonium-, Alkali- (insbesondere Natrium- und Kalium-), sowie Erdalkali- (insbesondere Calcium-), -carbonatsalzen und -hydrogencarbonatsalzen. Besonders bevorzugte Carbonat-, bzw. Hydrogencarbonatsalze sindThe carbonate or bicarbonate salts are preferably selected from at least one compound of the group consisting of ammonium, alkali (especially sodium and potassium), and alkaline earth (especially calcium), carbonate salts and bicarbonate salts. Particularly preferred carbonate or bicarbonate salts are
Ammoniumhydrogencarbonat, Ammoniumcarbonat, Natriumhydrogencarbonat,Ammonium bicarbonate, ammonium carbonate, sodium bicarbonate,
Dinatriumcarbonat, Kaliumhydrogencarbonat, Dikaliumcarbonat und Calciumcarbonat. Diese besonders bevorzugten Salze können allein oder in deren Mischungen von mindestens zwei Vertretern als Bleichverstärker verwendet werden.Disodium carbonate, potassium bicarbonate, dipotassium carbonate and calcium carbonate. These particularly preferred salts can be used alone or in their mixtures of at least two representatives as bleaching amplifiers.
Bevorzugt nutzbare organische Carbonate werden ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Gruppe der Kohlensäuremonoester und/oder aus mindestens einer Verbindung der Gruppe der Kohlensäuremonoamide.Preferably usable organic carbonates are selected from at least one compound of the group of carbonic acid monoesters and / or from at least one compound of the group of carbonic acid monoamides.
Bevorzugt verwendbare Kohlensäuremonoester sind die Kohlensäuremonoester der Formel (BV- 1 ),Preferably usable carbonic acid monoesters are the carbonic acid monoesters of the formula (BV-1),
R— O— C— OHR- O- C- OH
0 (BV- 1 ) in der R für einen gesättigten oder ungesättigten, geradkettigen, verzweigten, oder cyclischen, substituierten oder unsubstituierten Kohlenwasserstoffrest, oder eine substituierte oder unsubstituierte Arylgruppe bzw. einen substituierten oder unsubstituierten Heterocyclus steht. 0 (BV-1) in which R is a saturated or unsaturated, straight-chain, branched, or cyclic, substituted or unsubstituted hydrocarbon radical, or a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group or a substituted or unsubstituted heterocycle.
In Formel (BV-1 ) steht R vorzugsweise für einen substituierten oder unsubstituierten, geradkettigen oder verzweigten Alkyl-, Alkenyl- oder Alkinylrest, wobei als Substituenten bevorzugt Hydroxy-, Amino-, Nitro-, Sulfonsäuregruppen oder Halogene in Frage kommen. Weitere bevorzugte Reste R sind Phenyl- und Benzylreste sowie weiter substituierte Vertreter. Besonders bevorzugt steht R für eine Ci_6-Alkylgruppe. Beispiele für erfindungsgemäße CrC6- Alkylgruppen sind die Gruppen Methyl, Ethyl, n-Propyl, Isopropyl, n-Butyl, sec-Butyl, iso-Butyl, tert-Butyl, Pentyl, iso-Pentyl und Hexyl.In formula (BV-1), R preferably represents a substituted or unsubstituted, straight-chain or branched alkyl, alkenyl or alkynyl radical, preference being given to hydroxy, amino, nitro, sulfonic acid groups or halogens as substituents. Further preferred radicals R are phenyl and benzyl radicals and further substituted representatives. More preferably, R is a Ci_ 6 alkyl group. Examples of CrC 6 -alkyl groups according to the invention are the groups methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, isopropyl, n-butyl, sec-butyl, isobutyl, tert-butyl, pentyl, isopentyl and hexyl.
Erfindungsgemäß besonders bevorzugt verwendete Zusammensetzungen sind dadurch gekennzeichnet, daß der Rest R in Formel (BV-1 ) ausgewählt ist aus Methyl-, Ethyl-, n-Propyl-, iso-Propyl-, n-Butyl-, iso-Butyl-, tert-Butyl- sowie Hydroxymethyl- und Hydroxyethyl-Resten.Compositions particularly preferably used according to the invention are characterized in that the radical R in formula (BV-1) is selected from methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, iso-propyl, n-butyl, iso-butyl, tert Butyl and hydroxymethyl and hydroxyethyl radicals.
Bevorzugte Kohlensäuremonoamide sind die Verbindungen der Formel (BV-2),Preferred carbonic acid monoamides are the compounds of the formula (BV-2),
R— N— C— OHR-N-C-OH
H IlH Il
0 (BV-2) in der R für einen gesättigten oder ungesättigten, geradkettigen, verzweigten, oder cyclischen, substituierten oder unsubstituierten Kohlenwasserstoff rest, oder eine substituierte oder unsubstituierte Arylgruppe bzw. einen substituierten oder unsubstituierten Heterocyclus steht. 0 (BV-2) in which R is a saturated or unsaturated, straight-chain, branched, or cyclic, substituted or unsubstituted hydrocarbon radical, or a substituted or unsubstituted aryl group or a substituted or unsubstituted heterocycle.
In Formel (BV-2) steht R vorzugsweise für einen substituierten oder unsubstituierten, geradkettigen oder verzweigten Alkyl-, Alkenyl- oder Alkinylrest, wobei als Substituenten bevorzugt Hydroxy-, Amino-, Nitro-, Sulfonsäuregruppen oder Halogene in Frage kommen. Weitere Bevorzugte Reste R sind Phenyl- und Benzylreste sowie weiter substituierte Vertreter. Besonders bevorzugt steht R für eine C-|.6-Alkylgruppe. Beispiele für erfindungsgemäße C1-C6- Alkylgruppen sind die Gruppen Methyl, Ethyl, n-Propyl, Isopropyl, n-Butyl, sec-Butyl, iso-Butyl, tert-Butyl, Pentyl, iso-Pentyl und Hexyl.In formula (BV-2), R preferably represents a substituted or unsubstituted, straight-chain or branched alkyl, alkenyl or alkynyl radical, preference being given to hydroxy, amino, nitro, sulfonic acid groups or halogens as substituents. Further preferred radicals R are phenyl and benzyl radicals and further substituted representatives. More preferably R is a C-. 6- alkyl group. Examples of C 1 -C 6 -alkyl groups according to the invention are the groups methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, isopropyl, n-butyl, sec-butyl, isobutyl, tert-butyl, pentyl, isopentyl and hexyl.
Erfindungsgemäß besonders bevorzugte Bleichverstärker der Formel (BV-2) sind dadurch gekennzeichnet, daß der Rest R in Formel (BV-2) ausgewählt ist aus Methyl-, Ethyl-, n-Propyl-, iso-Propyl-, n-Butyl-, iso-Butyl-, tert-Butyl- sowie Hydroxymethyl- und Hydroxyethyl-Resten.Bleach enhancers of the formula (BV-2) which are particularly preferred according to the invention are characterized in that the radical R in formula (BV-2) is selected from methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, isopropyl, n-butyl, Iso-butyl, tert-butyl and hydroxymethyl and hydroxyethyl radicals.
Das acide H-Atom des Kohlensäuremonoesters bzw. -monoamids kann auch in neutralisierter Form vorliegen, d.h. es können erfindungsgemäß auch Salze von Kohlensäuremonoestern bzw. Kohlensäuremonoamiden eingesetzt werden. Hier sind erfindungsgemäß Kohlensäuremonoester bzw. das Kohlensäuremonoamide bevorzugt, die in ganz oder teilweise neutralisierter Form, vorzugsweise in Form des Alkalimetall-, Ammonium-, Erdalkalimetall- oder Aluminiumsalzes und insbesondere in Form seines Natriumsalzes, vorliegen. Als bleichverstärkende Carbonsäure kann in den erfindungsgemäßen Zusammensetzungen bevorzugt mindestens eine Verbindung aus der Gruppe, bestehend aus Essigsäure, Milchsäure, Weinsäure, Zitronensäure, Salicylsäure und ortho-Phthalsäure, enthalten sein.The acidic H atom of the carbonic acid monoester or monoamide can also be present in neutralized form, ie according to the invention it is also possible to use salts of carbonic acid monoesters or carbonic acid monoamides. Carbonic acid monoesters or the carbonic acid monoamides which are present in completely or partially neutralized form, preferably in the form of the alkali metal, ammonium, alkaline earth metal or aluminum salt and in particular in the form of its sodium salt, are preferred according to the invention. As the bleach-enhancing carboxylic acid, in the compositions of the present invention, at least one compound selected from the group consisting of acetic acid, lactic acid, tartaric acid, citric acid, salicylic acid and orthophthalic acid may preferably be contained.
Bleichverstärker sind bevorzugt Peroxoverbindungen, insbesondere anorganische Peroxoverbindungen. Unter die erfindungsgemäß bleichverstärkenden Peroxoverbindungen fallen keine Anlagerungsprodukte von Wasserstoffperoxid an andere Komponenten und auch nicht Wasserstoffperoxid selbst. Die Auswahl der Peroxoverbindungen unterliegt darüber hinaus keinen Beschränkungen. Bevorzugte Peroxoverbindungen sind Peroxidisulfatsalze, Persulfatsalze, Peroxidiphosphatsalze (insbesondere Ammoniumperoxidisulfat, Kaliumperoxidisulfat, Natriumperoxidisulfat, Ammoniumpersulfat, Kaliumpersulfat, Natriumpersulfat,Bleach boosters are preferably peroxo compounds, in particular inorganic peroxo compounds. Among the bleach-enhancing peroxy compounds according to the invention there are no addition products of hydrogen peroxide to other components and also not hydrogen peroxide itself. Moreover, the choice of peroxo compounds is subject to no restrictions. Preferred peroxo compounds are peroxydisulfate salts, persulfate salts, peroxydiphosphate salts (in particular ammonium peroxydisulfate, potassium peroxodisulfate, sodium peroxodisulfate, ammonium persulfate, potassium persulfate, sodium persulfate,
Kaliumperoxidiphosphat) und Peroxide (wie Bariumperoxid und Magnesiumperoxid). Unter diesen Peroxoverbindungen, die auch in Kombination eingesetzt werden können, sind erfindungsgemäß die Peroxidisulfate, insbesondere Ammoniumperoxidisulfat, bevorzugt.Potassium peroxide phosphate) and peroxides (such as barium peroxide and magnesium peroxide). Among these peroxo compounds which can also be used in combination, according to the invention, the peroxydisulfates, in particular ammonium peroxydisulfate, are preferred.
Die Bleichverstärker sind in den erfindungsgemäßen Mitteln bevorzugt in Mengen von 5 bis 30 Gew.-%, insbesondere in Mengen von 8 bis 20 Gew.-%, jeweils bezogen auf das Gewicht des anwendungsbereiten Mittels, enthalten.The bleach boosters are contained in the compositions according to the invention preferably in amounts of from 5 to 30% by weight, in particular in amounts of from 8 to 20% by weight, based in each case on the weight of the ready-to-use agent.
Die kosmetischen Mittel der Erfindung enthalten, wenn sie als Bleichmittel fungieren, als bevorzugtes Alkalisierungsmittel mindestens eine Verbindung, ausgewählt aus Ammonium-, Alkalimetall- und Erdalkalimetallhydroxiden, -metasilikaten und -Carbamiden, sowie Alkaliphosphaten.The cosmetic agents of the invention, when acting as a bleaching agent, contain as preferred alkalizing agent at least one compound selected from ammonium, alkali metal and alkaline earth metal hydroxides, metasilicates and carbamides, as well as alkali phosphates.
Die in dem erfindungsgemäßen Verfahren eingesetzten kosmetischen Mittel können weiterhin alle für solche Zubereitungen bekannten Wirk-, Zusatz- und Hilfsstoffe enthalten:The cosmetic agents used in the process according to the invention may furthermore contain all active substances, additives and auxiliaries known for such preparations:
Das Nachwaschen mit einem Shampoo entfällt, wenn ein stark tensidhaltiger Träger verwendet wurde.The washing with a shampoo is eliminated if a strong surfactant-containing carrier was used.
In vielen Fällen enthalten die erfindungsgemäßen Mittel zur verbesserten Anwendung zusätzlich mindestens ein Tensid, wobei prinzipiell sowohl anionische als auch zwitterionische, am- pholytische, nichtionische und kationische Tenside geeignet sind. In vielen Fällen hat es sich aber als vorteilhaft erwiesen, die Tenside aus anionischen, zwitterionischen oder nichtionischen Tensiden auszuwählen. Als anionische Tenside eignen sich in den kosmetischen Mitteln alle für die Verwendung am menschlichen Körper geeigneten anionischen oberflächenaktiven Stoffe. Diese sind gekennzeichnet durch eine wasserlöslichmachende, anionische Gruppe wie z. B. eine Carboxylat-, Sulfat-, Sulfonat- oder Phosphat-Gruppe und eine lipophile Alkylgruppe mit etwa 10 bis 22 C-Ato- men. Zusätzlich können im Molekül Glykol- oder Polyglykolether-Gruppen, Ester-, Ether- und Amidgruppen sowie Hydroxylgruppen enthalten sein. Beispiele für geeignete anionische Tenside sind, jeweils in Form der Natrium-, Kalium- und Ammonium- sowie der Mono-, Di- und Trialkanol- ammoniumsalze mit 2 oder 3 C-Atomen in der Alkanolgruppe, lineare Fettsäuren mit 10 bis 22 C-Atomen (Seifen),In many cases, the agents according to the invention for improved use additionally contain at least one surfactant, with both anionic and zwitterionic, ampholytic, nonionic and cationic surfactants being suitable in principle. In many cases, however, it has proved to be advantageous to select the surfactants from anionic, zwitterionic or nonionic surfactants. Suitable anionic surfactants in the cosmetic compositions are all anionic surfactants suitable for use on the human body. These are characterized by a water-solubilizing, anionic group such. Example, a carboxylate, sulfate, sulfonate or phosphate group and a lipophilic alkyl group with about 10 to 22 C-men men. In addition, glycol or polyglycol ether groups, ester, ether and amide groups and hydroxyl groups may be present in the molecule. Examples of suitable anionic surfactants are, in each case in the form of the sodium, potassium and ammonium as well as mono-, di- and trialkanol ammonium salts with 2 or 3 C atoms in the alkanol group, linear fatty acids having 10 to 22 C atoms (Soap),
Ethercarbonsäuren der Formel R-O-(CH2-CH2O)x -CH2-COOH, in der R eine lineare Alkylgruppe mit 10 bis 22 C-Atomen und x = 0 oder 1 bis 16 ist, Acylsarcoside mit 10 bis 18 C-Atomen in der Acylgruppe, Acyltauride mit 10 bis 18 C-Atomen in der Acylgruppe, Acylisethionate mit 10 bis 18 C-Atomen in der Acylgruppe,Ethercarbonsäuren the formula RO- (CH 2 -CH 2 O) x -CH 2 -COOH, in which R is a linear alkyl group having 10 to 22 carbon atoms and x = 0 or 1 to 16, acylsarcosides having 10 to 18 C Atoms in the acyl group, acyltaurides having 10 to 18 C atoms in the acyl group, acyl isethionates having 10 to 18 C atoms in the acyl group,
Sulfobernsteinsäuremono- und -dialkylester mit 8 bis 18 C-Atomen in der Alkylgruppe und Sulfobernsteinsäuremono-alkylpolyoxyethylester mit 8 bis 18 C-Atomen in der Alkylgruppe und 1 bis 6 Oxyethylgruppen, lineare Alkansulfonate mit 12 bis 18 C-Atomen, lineare Alpha-Olefinsulfonate mit 12 bis 18 C-Atomen, Alpha-Sulfofettsäuremethylester von Fettsäuren mit 12 bis 18 C-Atomen, Alkylsulfate und Alkylpolyglykolethersulfate der Formel R-O(CH2-CH2O)x-SO3H, in der R eine bevorzugt lineare Alkylgruppe mit 10 bis 18 C-Atomen und x = 0 oder 1 bis 12 ist, anionische Alkyloligoglykoside bzw. anionische Alkenyloligoglykosid-Derivate, ausgewählt aus Alkyl- und/oder Alkenyl-Oligoglykosidcarboxylaten, -sulfaten, -phosphaten und/oder - isethionaten, die sich von Alkyl- und/oder Alkenyloligoglykosiden der allgemeinen Formel (IM) ableiten,
Figure imgf000054_0001
mit der Bedeutung
Sulfobernsteinsäuremono- and dialkyl esters having 8 to 18 carbon atoms in the alkyl group and sulfosuccinic monoalkylpolyoxyethylester having 8 to 18 carbon atoms in the alkyl group and 1 to 6 oxyethyl groups, linear alkanesulfonates having 12 to 18 carbon atoms, linear alpha-olefinsulfonates with 12 to 18 carbon atoms, alpha-sulfofatty acid methyl esters of fatty acids having 12 to 18 carbon atoms, alkyl sulfates and Alkylpolyglykolethersulfate the formula RO (CH 2 -CH 2 O) x -SO 3 H, in the R is a preferably linear alkyl group with 10 bis 18 C atoms and x = 0 or 1 to 12, anionic alkyl oligoglycosides or anionic alkenyl oligoglycoside derivatives selected from alkyl and / or alkenyl oligoglycoside carboxylates, sulfates, phosphates and / or isethionates, which differ from alkyl and / or alkenyl oligoglycosides of the general formula (III),
Figure imgf000054_0001
with the meaning
R C6.22-Alkyl oder C6.22-Alkenyl,RC 6 . 22 alkyl or C 6 . 22 alkenyl,
G Glykosideinheit, die sich von einem Zucker mit 5 oder 6 Kohlenstoffatomen ableitet, p Zahl von 1 bis 10, insbesondere das Laurylglucosidcarboxylat, wie es als Plantapon® LGC von Cognis Deutschland erhältlich ist, Gemische oberflächenaktiver Hydroxysulfonate gemäß DE-A-37 25 030, sulfatierte Hydroxyalkylpolyethylen- und/oder Hydroxyalkylenpropylenglykolether gemäßG glycoside unit which is derived from a sugar containing 5 or 6 carbon atoms, p number from 1 to 10, in particular the Laurylglucosidcarboxylat, such as is available as Plantapon ® LGC from Cognis Germany, Mixtures of surface-active hydroxysulfonates according to DE-A-37 25 030, sulfated hydroxyalkylpolyethylene and / or hydroxyalkylene glycol ethers according to
DE-A-37 23 354,DE-A-37 23 354,
Sulfonate ungesättigter Fettsäuren mit 12 bis 24 C-Atomen und 1 bis 6 Doppelbindungen gemäß DE-A-39 26 344,Sulfonates of unsaturated fatty acids having 12 to 24 carbon atoms and 1 to 6 double bonds according to DE-A-39 26 344,
Ester der Weinsäure und Zitronensäure mit Alkoholen, die Anlagerungsprodukte von etwaEsters of tartaric acid and citric acid with alcohols, the addition products of about
2-15 Molekülen Ethylenoxid und/oder Propylenoxid an Fettalkohole mit 8 bis 22 C-2-15 molecules of ethylene oxide and / or propylene oxide with fatty alcohols containing 8 to 22 C
Atomen darstellen.Represent atoms.
Bevorzugte anionische Tenside sind Alkylsulfate, Alkylpolyglykolethersulfate und Ethercar- bonsäuren mit 10 bis 18 C-Atomen in der Alkylgruppe und bis zu 12 Glykolethergruppen im Molekül sowie insbesondere Salze von gesättigten und insbesondere ungesättigten C8-C22- Carbonsäuren, wie Ölsäure, Stearinsäure, Isostearinsäure und Palmitinsäure.Preferred anionic surfactants are alkyl sulfates, alkyl polyglycol ether sulfates and ether carboxylic acids having 10 to 18 carbon atoms in the alkyl group and up to 12 glycol ether groups in the molecule and in particular salts of saturated and in particular unsaturated C 8 -C 22 carboxylic acids, such as oleic acid, stearic acid, isostearic acid and palmitic acid.
Nichtionogene Tenside enthalten als hydrophile Gruppe z. B. eine Polyolgruppe, eine Po- lyalkylenglykolethergruppe oder eine Kombination aus Polyol- und Polyglykolethergruppe. Solche Verbindungen sind beispielsweiseNonionic surfactants contain as hydrophilic group z. A polyol group, a polyalkylene glycol ether group or a combination of polyol and polyglycol ether groups. Such compounds are, for example
Anlagerungsprodukte von 2 bis 30 Mol Ethylenoxid und/oder 0 bis 5 Mol Propylenoxid an lineare Fettalkohole mit 8 bis 22 C-Atomen, an Fettsäuren mit 12 bis 22 C-Atomen und anAddition products of 2 to 30 moles of ethylene oxide and / or 0 to 5 moles of propylene oxide to linear fatty alcohols having 8 to 22 carbon atoms, to fatty acids having 12 to 22 carbon atoms and on
Alkylphenole mit 8 bis 15 C-Atomen in der Alkylgruppe,Alkylphenols having 8 to 15 C atoms in the alkyl group,
Ci2-C22-Fettsäuremono- und -diester von Anlagerungsprodukten von 1 bis 30 MolC 2 -C 22 -fatty acid mono- and diesters of addition products of 1 to 30 mol
Ethylenoxid an Glycerin,Ethylene oxide with glycerol,
C8-C22-Alkylmono- und -oligoglycoside und deren ethoxylierte Analoga sowieC 8 -C 22 alkyl mono- and oligoglycosides and their ethoxylated analogs and
Anlagerungsprodukte von 5 bis 60 Mol Ethylenoxid an Rizinusöl und gehärtetes Rizinusöl.Addition products of 5 to 60 moles of ethylene oxide with castor oil and hydrogenated castor oil.
Bevorzugte nichtionische Tenside sind Alkylpolyglykoside der allgemeinen Formel R1O-(Z)x. Diese Verbindungen sind durch die folgenden Parameter gekennzeichnet.Preferred nonionic surfactants are alkyl polyglycosides of the general formula R 1 O- (Z) x . These connections are identified by the following parameters.
Der Alkylrest R1 enthält 6 bis 22 Kohlenstoffatome und kann sowohl linear als auch verzweigt sein. Bevorzugt sind primäre lineare und in 2-Stellung methylverzweigte aliphatische Reste. Solche Alkylreste sind beispielsweise 1-Octyl, 1-Decyl, 1-Lauryl, 1-Myristyl, 1-Cetyl und 1-Stearyl. Besonders bevorzugt sind 1-Octyl, 1-Decyl, 1-Lauryl, 1-Myristyl. Bei Verwendung sogenannter "Oxo-Alkohole" als Ausgangsstoffe überwiegen Verbindungen mit einer ungeraden Anzahl von Kohlenstoffatomen in der Alkylkette. Die erfindungsgemäß verwendbaren Alkylpolyglykoside können beispielsweise nur einen bestimmten Alkylrest R1 enthalten. Üblicherweise werden diese Verbindungen aber ausgehend von natürlichen Fetten und Ölen oder Mineralölen hergestellt. In diesem Fall liegen als Alkylreste R Mischungen entsprechend den Ausgangsverbindungen bzw. entsprechend der jeweiligen Aufarbeitung dieser Verbindungen vor.The alkyl radical R 1 contains 6 to 22 carbon atoms and may be both linear and branched. Preference is given to primary linear and methyl-branched in the 2-position aliphatic radicals. Such alkyl radicals are, for example, 1-octyl, 1-decyl, 1-lauryl, 1-myristyl, 1-cetyl and 1-stearyl. Particularly preferred are 1-octyl, 1-decyl, 1-lauryl, 1-myristyl. When using so-called "oxo-alcohols" as starting materials, compounds with an odd number of carbon atoms in the alkyl chain predominate. The alkyl polyglycosides which can be used according to the invention can contain, for example, only one particular alkyl radical R 1 . Usually, however, these compounds are prepared starting from natural fats and oils or mineral oils. In this case, the alkyl radicals R are mixtures corresponding to the starting compounds or corresponding to the particular work-up of these compounds.
Besonders bevorzugt sind solche Alkylpolyglykoside, bei denen R1 im wesentlichen aus C8- und C10-Alkylgruppen, im wesentlichen aus C12- und C14-Alkylgruppen, im wesentlichen aus C8- bis C16-Alkylgruppen oder im wesentlichen aus C12- bis C16-Alkylgruppen besteht.Particular preference is given to those alkyl polyglycosides in which R 1 consists essentially of C 8 and C 10 alkyl groups, essentially of C 12 and C 14 alkyl groups, essentially of C 8 to C 16 alkyl groups or essentially of C 12 - to C 16 alkyl groups.
Als Zuckerbaustein Z können beliebige Mono- oder Oligosaccharide eingesetzt werden. Üblicherweise werden Zucker mit 5 bzw. 6 Kohlenstoffatomen sowie die entsprechenden Oligosaccharide eingesetzt. Solche Zucker sind beispielsweise Glucose, Fructose, Galactose, Arabinose, Ribose, Xylose, Lyxose, Allose, Altrose, Mannose, Gulose, Idose, Talose und Sucrose. Bevorzugte Zuckerbausteine sind Glucose, Fructose, Galactose, Arabinose und Sucrose; Glucose ist besonders bevorzugt.As sugar building block Z it is possible to use any desired mono- or oligosaccharides. Usually, sugars with 5 or 6 carbon atoms and the corresponding oligosaccharides are used. Such sugars are, for example, glucose, fructose, galactose, arabinose, ribose, xylose, lyxose, allose, altrose, mannose, gulose, idose, talose and sucrose. Preferred sugar building blocks are glucose, fructose, galactose, arabinose and sucrose; Glucose is particularly preferred.
Die erfindungsgemäß verwendbaren Alkylpolyglykoside enthalten im Schnitt 1 ,1 bis 5 Zuckereinheiten. Alkylpolyglykoside mit x-Werten von 1 ,1 bis 1 ,6 sind bevorzugt. Ganz besonders bevorzugt sind Alkylglykoside, bei denen x 1 ,1 bis 1 ,4 beträgt.The alkyl polyglycosides which can be used according to the invention contain on average from 1.1 to 5 sugar units. Alkyl polyglycosides having x values of 1.1 to 1.6 are preferred. Very particular preference is given to alkyl glycosides in which x is 1: 1 to 1, 4.
Die Alkylglykoside können neben ihrer Tensidwirkung auch dazu dienen, die Fixierung von Duftkomponenten auf dem Haar zu verbessern. Der Fachmann wird also für den Fall, dass eine über die Dauer der Haarbehandlung hinausgehende Wirkung des Parfümöles auf dem Haar gewünscht wird, bevorzugt zu dieser Substanzklasse als weiterem Inhaltsstoff der erfindungsgemäßen Zubereitungen zurückgreifen.In addition to their surfactant action, the alkyl glycosides can also serve to improve the fixation of fragrance components on the hair. The person skilled in the art will therefore prefer to use this substance class as a further constituent of the preparations according to the invention in the event that an effect of the perfume oil on the hair which exceeds the duration of the hair treatment is desired.
Auch die alkoxylierten Homologen der genannten Alkylpolyglykoside können erfindungsgemäß eingesetzt werden. Diese Homologen können durchschnittlich bis zu 10 Ethylenoxid- und/oder Propylenoxideinheiten pro Alkylglykosideinheit enthalten.The alkoxylated homologs of said alkyl polyglycosides can also be used according to the invention. These homologs may contain on average up to 10 ethylene oxide and / or propylene oxide units per alkyl glycoside unit.
Weiterhin können, insbesondere als Co-Tenside, zwitterionische Tenside verwendet werden. Als zwitterionische Tenside werden solche oberflächenaktive Verbindungen bezeichnet, die im Molekül mindestens eine quartäre Ammoniunngruppe und mindestens eine -COO( )- oder -SO3 ( )- Gruppe tragen. Besonders geeignete zwitterionische Tenside sind die sogenannten Betaine wie die N-Alkyl-N,N-dimethylammonium-glycinate, beispielsweise das Kokosalkyl-di- methylammonium-glycinat, N-Acyl-aminopropyl-N,N-dimethylammoniumglycinate, beispielsweise das Kokosacylaminopropyl-dimethylammoniumglycinat, und 2-Alkyl-3-carboxylmethyl-3-hydroxy- ethyl-imidazoline mit jeweils 8 bis 18 C-Atomen in der Alkyl- oder Acylgruppe sowie das Kokos- acylaminoethylhydroxyethylcarboxymethylglycinat. Ein bevorzugtes zwitterionisches Tensid ist das unter der INCI-Bezeichnung Cocamidopropyl Betaine bekannte Fettsäureamid-Derivat.Furthermore, zwitterionic surfactants can be used, in particular as cosurfactants. As zwitterionic surfactants such surface-active compounds are referred to in the Molecule at least one quaternary ammonium group and at least one -COO () - or -SO 3 () - group wear. Particularly suitable zwitterionic surfactants are the so-called betaines such as N-alkyl-N, N-dimethylammonium glycinates, for example cocoalkyldimethylammonium glycinate, N-acylaminopropyl-N, N-dimethylammonium glycinates, for example cocoacylaminopropyl-dimethylammonium glycinate, and 2-alkyl-3-carboxylmethyl-3-hydroxyethyl imidazolines having in each case 8 to 18 C atoms in the alkyl or acyl group and the coco acylaminoethylhydroxyethylcarboxymethylglycinate. A preferred zwitterionic surfactant is the fatty acid amide derivative known by the INCI name Cocamidopropyl Betaine.
Ebenfalls insbesondere als Co-Tenside geeignet sind ampholytische Tenside. Unter ampholyti- schen Tensiden werden solche oberflächenaktiven Verbindungen verstanden, die außer einer C8- C-is-Alkyl- oder Acylgruppe im Molekül mindestens eine freie Aminogruppe und mindestens eine - COOH- oder -SO3H-Gruppe enthalten und zur Ausbildung innerer Salze befähigt sind. Beispiele für geeignete ampholytische Tenside sind N-Alkylglycine, N-Alkylpropionsäuren, N-Alkylamino- buttersäuren, N-Alkyliminodipropionsäuren, N-Hydroxyethyl-N-alkylamidopropylglycine, N-Alkyl- taurine, N-Alkylsarcosine, 2-Alkylaminopropionsäuren und Alkylaminoessigsäuren mit jeweils etwa 8 bis 18 C-Atomen in der Alkylgruppe. Besonders bevorzugte ampholytische Tenside sind das N-Kokosalkylaminopropionat, das Kokosacylaminoethylaminopropionat und das C12-18- Acylsarcosin.Also particularly suitable as co-surfactants are ampholytic surfactants. Ampholytic surfactants are understood as meaning those surface-active compounds which contain, in addition to a C 8 -C -alkyl or acyl group in the molecule, at least one free amino group and at least one -COOH or -SO 3 H group and for the formation of internal salts are capable. Examples of suitable ampholytic surfactants are N-alkylglycines, N-alkylpropionic acids, N-alkylaminobutyric acids, N-alkyliminodipropionic acids, N-hydroxyethyl-N-alkylamidopropylglycines, N-alkyltaurines, N-alkylsarcosines, 2-alkylaminopropionic acids and alkylaminoacetic acids each having about 8 to 18 C atoms in the alkyl group. Particularly preferred ampholytic surfactants are N-cocoalkylaminopropionate, cocoacylaminoethyl aminopropionate and C 12 - 18 - sarcosine.
Erfindungsgemäß werden als kationische Tenside insbesondere solche vom Typ der quartären Ammoniumverbindungen, der Esterquats und der Amidoamine eingesetzt.According to the invention, the cationic surfactants used are, in particular, those of the quaternary ammonium compound type, the esterquats and the amidoamines.
Bevorzugte quaternäre Ammoniumverbindungen sind Ammoniumhalogenide, insbesondere Chloride und Bromide, wie Alkyltrimethylammoniumchloride, Dialkyldimethylammoniumchloride und Trialkylmethylammoniumchloride, z. B. Cetyltrimethylammoniumchlorid, Stearyltri- methylammoniumchlorid, Distearyldimethylammoniumchlorid, Lauryldimethylammoniumchlorid, Lauryldimethylbenzylammoniumchlorid und Tricetylmethylammoniumchlorid, sowie die unter den INCI-Bezeichnungen Quaternium-27 und Quaternium-83 bekannten Imidazolium-Verbindungen. Die langen Alkylketten der oben genannten Tenside weisen bevorzugt 10 bis 18 Kohlenstoffatome auf.Preferred quaternary ammonium compounds are ammonium halides, especially chlorides and bromides, such as alkyltrimethylammonium chlorides, dialkyldimethylammonium chlorides and trialkylmethylammonium chlorides, e.g. For example, cetyltrimethylammonium chloride, stearyltrimethylammonium chloride, distearyldimethylammonium chloride, lauryldimethylammonium chloride, lauryldimethylbenzylammonium chloride and tricetylmethylammonium chloride, as well as the imidazolium compounds known under the INCI names Quaternium-27 and Quaternium-83. The long alkyl chains of the above-mentioned surfactants preferably have 10 to 18 carbon atoms.
Bei Esterquats handelt es sich um bekannte Stoffe, die sowohl mindestens eine Esterfunktion als auch mindestens eine quartäre Ammoniumgruppe als Strukturelement enthalten. Bevorzugte Esterquats sind quaternierte Estersalze von Fettsäuren mit Triethanolamin, quaternierte Estersalze von Fettsäuren mit Diethanolalkylaminen und quaternierten Estersalze von Fettsäuren mit 1 ,2-Dihydroxypropyldialkylaminen. Solche Produkte werden beispielsweise unter den Warenzeichen Stepantex®, Dehyquart® und Armocare® vertrieben. Die Produkte Armocare® VGH-70, ein N,N-Bis(2-Palmitoyloxyethyl)dimethylammoniumchlorid, sowie Dehyquart® F-75 und Dehyquart® AU-35 sind Beispiele für solche Esterquats.Esterquats are known substances which contain both at least one ester function and at least one quaternary ammonium group as a structural element. Preferred ester quats are quaternized ester salts of fatty acids with triethanolamine, quaternized Ester salts of fatty acids with Diethanolalkylaminen and quaternized ester salts of fatty acids with 1, 2-Dihydroxypropyldialkylaminen. Such products are marketed under the trade names Stepantex® ®, ® and Dehyquart® Armocare® ®. The products Armocare ® VGH-70, a N, N-bis (2-palmitoyloxyethyl) dimethylammonium chloride, as well as Dehyquart ® F-75 and Dehyquart ® AU-35 are examples of such esterquats.
Die Alkylamidoamine werden üblicherweise durch Amidierung natürlicher oder synthetischer Fettsäuren und Fettsäureschnitte mit Dialkylaminoaminen hergestellt. Eine erfindungsgemäß besonders geeignete Verbindung aus dieser Substanzgruppe stellt das unter der Bezeichnung Tegoamid® S 18 im Handel erhältliche Stearamidopropyl-dimethylamin dar.The alkylamidoamines are usually prepared by amidation of natural or synthetic fatty acids and fatty acid cuts with dialkylaminoamines. An inventively particularly suitable compound from this group of substances under the name Tegoamid ® S 18 commercial stearamidopropyl dimethylamine is.
Weitere erfindungsgemäß verwendbare kationische Tenside stellen die quaternisierten Proteinhydrolysate dar.Further cationic surfactants which can be used according to the invention are the quaternized protein hydrolysates.
Erfindungsgemäß ebenfalls geeignet sind kationische Silikonöle wie beispielsweise die im Handel erhältlichen Produkte Q2-7224 (Hersteller: Dow Corning; ein stabilisiertes Trime- thylsilylamodimethicon), Dow Corning 929 Emulsion (enthaltend ein hydroxylamino-modifiziertes Silicon, das auch als Amodimethicone bezeichnet wird), SM-2059 (Hersteller: General Electric), SLM-55067 (Hersteller: Wacker) sowie Abil®-Quat 3270 und 3272 (Hersteller: Th. Goldschmidt; diquaternäre Polydimethylsiloxane, Quaternium-80).Also suitable according to the invention are cationic silicone oils such as, for example, the commercially available products Q2-7224 (manufacturer: Dow Corning, a stabilized trimethylsilylamodimethicone), Dow Corning 929 emulsion (containing a hydroxylamino-modified silicone, also referred to as amodimethicones), SM -2059 (manufacturer: General Electric), SLM-55067 (manufacturer: Wacker) and Abil ® quat 3270 and 3272 (manufacturer: Th Goldschmidt; diquaternary polydimethylsiloxanes, quaternium-80.).
Ein Beispiel für ein als kationisches Tensid einsetzbares quaternäres Zuckerderivat stellt das Handelsprodukt Glucquat®100 dar, gemäß INCI-Nomenklatur ein "Lauryl Methyl Gluceth-10 Hydroxypropyl Dimonium Chloride".An example of a suitable cationic surfactant quaternary sugar derivative is the commercially available product Glucquat ® 100 is, according to INCI nomenclature a "lauryl methyl Gluceth-10 Hydroxypropyl Dimonium Chloride".
Bei den als Tensid eingesetzten Verbindungen mit Alkylgruppen kann es sich jeweils um einheitliche Substanzen handeln. Es ist jedoch in der Regel bevorzugt, bei der Herstellung dieser Stoffe von nativen pflanzlichen oder tierischen Rohstoffen auszugehen, so dass man Substanzgemische mit unterschiedlichen, vom jeweiligen Rohstoff abhängigen Alkylkettenlängen erhält.The compounds used as surfactant with alkyl groups may each be uniform substances. However, it is generally preferred to use native vegetable or animal raw materials in the production of these substances, so that substance mixtures having different alkyl chain lengths depending on the respective raw material are obtained.
Bei den Tensiden, die Anlagerungsprodukte von Ethylen- und/oder Propylenoxid an Fettalkohole oder Derivate dieser Anlagerungsprodukte darstellen, können sowohl Produkte mit einer "normalen" Homologenverteilung als auch solche mit einer eingeengten Homologenverteilung verwendet werden. Unter "normaler" Homologenverteilung werden dabei Mischungen von Homologen verstanden, die man bei der Umsetzung von Fettalkohol und Alkylenoxid unter Verwendung von Alkalimetallen, Alkalimetallhydroxiden oder Alkalimetallalkoholaten als Katalysatoren erhält. Eingeengte Homologenverteilungen werden dagegen erhalten, wenn beispielsweise Hydrotalcite, Erdalkalimetallsalze von Ethercarbonsäuren, Erdalkalimetalloxide, -hydroxide oder - alkoholate als Katalysatoren verwendet werden. Die Verwendung von Produkten mit eingeengter Homologenverteilung kann bevorzugt sein.In the case of the surfactants which are adducts of ethylene oxide and / or propylene oxide with fatty alcohols or derivatives of these addition products, both products with a "normal" homolog distribution and those with a narrow homolog distribution can be used. Under "normal" homolog distribution are mixtures of Homologs obtained in the reaction of fatty alcohol and alkylene oxide using alkali metals, alkali metal hydroxides or alkali metal alcoholates as catalysts. Narrowed homolog distributions are obtained when, for example, hydrotalcites, alkaline earth metal salts of ether carboxylic acids, alkaline earth metal oxides, hydroxides or alkoxides are used as catalysts. The use of products with narrow homolog distribution may be preferred.
Die erfindungsgemäßen Mittel können zusätzlich mindestens ein Silikon enthalten. Die Silikone, wenn sie in den erfindungsgemäßen Mitteln zugegen sind, vorzugsweise in Mengen von 0,05 bis 5 Gew.-%, vorzugsweise von 0,2 bis 5 Gew.-%, jeweils bezogen auf das anwendungsbereite Mittel, enthalten.The agents according to the invention may additionally contain at least one silicone. The silicones, if they are present in the agents according to the invention, preferably in amounts of 0.05 to 5 wt .-%, preferably from 0.2 to 5 wt .-%, each based on the ready-to-use agent.
Insbesondere bevorzugt werden die Silikone ausgewählt, aus mindestens einem Vertreter aus derWith particular preference, the silicones are selected from at least one member of the
Liste, die gebildet wird aus:List formed by:
(i) Polyalkylsiloxanen, Polyarylsiloxanen, Polyalkylarylsiloxanen, die flüchtig oder nicht flüchtig, geradkettig, verzweigt oder cyclisch, vernetzt oder nicht vernetzt sind;(i) polyalkyl siloxanes, polyaryl siloxanes, polyalkylaryl siloxanes which are volatile or nonvolatile, straight chain, branched or cyclic, crosslinked or uncrosslinked;
(ii) Polysiloxanen, die in ihrer allgemeinen Struktur eine oder mehrere organofunktionelle Gruppen enthalten, die ausgewählt sind unter: a) substituierten oder unsubstituierten aminierten Gruppen; b) (per)fluorierten Gruppen; c) Thiolgruppen; d) Carboxylatgruppen; e) hydroxylierten Gruppen; f) alkoxylierten Gruppen; g) Acyloxyalkylgruppen; h) amphoteren Gruppen; i) Bisulfitgruppen; j) Hydroxyacylaminogruppen; k) Carboxygruppen;(ii) polysiloxanes containing in their general structure one or more organofunctional groups selected from: a) substituted or unsubstituted aminated groups; b) (per) fluorinated groups; c) thiol groups; d) carboxylate groups; e) hydroxylated groups; f) alkoxylated groups; g) acyloxyalkyl groups; h) amphoteric groups; i) bisulfite groups; j) hydroxyacylamino groups; k) carboxy groups;
I) Sulfonsäuregruppen; und m) Sulfat- oder Thiosulfatgruppen;I) sulfonic acid groups; and m) sulfate or thiosulfate groups;
(iii) linearen Polysiloxan(A)- Polyoxyalkylen(B)- Blockcopoylmeren vom Typ (A-B)n mit n > 3; (iv) gepfropften Silikonpolymeren mit nicht silikonhaltigem, organischen Grundgerüst, die aus einer organischen Hauptkette bestehen, welche aus organischen Monomeren gebildet wird, die kein Silikon enthalten, auf die in der Kette sowie gegebenenfalls an mindestens einem Kettenende mindestens ein Polysiloxanmakromer gepfropft wurde;(iii) linear polysiloxane (A) - polyoxyalkylene (B) - block copolymers of the type (AB) n with n>3; (iv) grafted silicone polymers having a non-silicone-containing organic backbone consisting of an organic backbone formed from organic monomers, which contain no silicone to which at least one polysiloxane macromer has been grafted in the chain and optionally on at least one chain end;
(v) gepfropften Silikonpolymeren mit Polysiloxan-Grundgerüst, auf das nicht silikonhaltige, organische Monomere gepfropft wurden, die eine Polysiloxan-Hauptkette aufweisen, auf die in der Kette sowie gegebenenfalls an mindestens einem ihrer Enden mindestens ein organisches Makromer gepfropft wurde, das kein Silikon enthält, wie beispielsweise das unter der INCI-Bezeichnung Bis-PEG/PPG-20/20 Dimethicone vertriebene Handelsprodukt Abil B 8832 der Firma Degussa;(v) grafted polysiloxane backbone silicone polymers having grafted thereto non-silicone-containing organic monomers having a polysiloxane backbone to which at least one organic macromer containing no silicone has been grafted in the chain, and optionally at least at one of its ends , such as the commercial product Abil B 8832 from Degussa marketed under the INCI name Bis-PEG / PPG-20/20 dimethicone;
(vi) oder deren Gemischen.(vi) or mixtures thereof.
Besonders bevorzugte erfindungsgemäße kosmetische oder dermatologische Zubereitungen sind dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass sie mindestens ein Silikon der Formel (Si-1 )Particularly preferred cosmetic or dermatological preparations according to the invention are characterized in that they contain at least one silicone of the formula (Si-1)
(CH3)3Si-[O-Si(CH3)2]χ-O-Si(CH3)3 (Si-1 ),(CH 3 ) 3 Si - [O-Si (CH 3 ) 2] χ-O-Si (CH 3 ) 3 (Si-1),
enthalten, in der x für eine Zahl von 0 bis 100, vorzugsweise von 0 bis 50, weiter bevorzugt von 0 bis 20 und insbesondere 0 bis 10, steht.in which x is a number from 0 to 100, preferably from 0 to 50, more preferably from 0 to 20 and in particular 0 to 10.
Die erfindungsgemäß bevorzugten kosmetischen oder dermatologischen Zubereitungen enthalten ein Silikon der vorstehenden Formel (Si-1 ). Diese Silikone werden nach der INCI-Nomenklatur als Dimethicone bezeichnet. Es werden im Rahmen der vorliegenden Erfindung als Silikon der Formel (Si-1 ) vorzugsweise die Verbindungen:
Figure imgf000060_0001
The inventively preferred cosmetic or dermatological preparations contain a silicone of the above formula (Si-1). These silicones are referred to as dimethicones according to the INCI nomenclature. It is in the context of the present invention as the silicone of the formula (Si-1), preferably the compounds:
Figure imgf000060_0001
(CH3)3Si-O-(CH3)2Si-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH 3 ) 3 Si-O- (CH 3 ) 2 Si-O-Si (CH 3 ) 3
(CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]2-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH 3 ) 3 Si [O- (CH 3 ) 2 Si] 2 -O-Si (CH 3 ) 3
(CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]3-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH 3 ) 3 Si [O- (CH 3 ) 2 Si] 3 -O-Si (CH 3 ) 3
(CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]4-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH 3 ) 3 Si [O- (CH 3 ) 2 Si] 4 -O-Si (CH 3 ) 3
(CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]5-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH 3 ) 3 Si [O- (CH 3 ) 2 Si] 5 -O-Si (CH 3 ) 3
(CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]6-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH 3 ) 3 Si [O- (CH 3 ) 2 Si] 6 -O-Si (CH 3 ) 3
(CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]7-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH 3 ) 3 Si [O- (CH 3 ) 2 Si] 7 -O-Si (CH 3 ) 3
(CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]8-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH 3 ) 3 Si [O- (CH 3 ) 2 Si] 8 -O-Si (CH 3 ) 3
(CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]9-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH 3 ) 3 Si [O- (CH 3 ) 2 Si] 9 -O-Si (CH 3 ) 3
(CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]10-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH 3 ) 3 Si [O- (CH 3 ) 2 Si] 10 -O-Si (CH 3 ) 3
(CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]11-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]12-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]13-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]14-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]15-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]16-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]17-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]18-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]19-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH3)3Si-[O-(CH3)2Si]20-O-Si(CH3)3 (CH 3 ) 3 Si [O- (CH 3 ) 2 Si] 11 -O-Si (CH 3 ) 3 (CH 3) 3 Si - [O - (CH 3) 2 Si] 12 - O - Si (CH 3) 3 (CH 3) 3 Si - [O - (CH 3) 2 Si] 13 --O - Si (CH 3) 3 (CH 3) 3 Si - [ O- (CH3) 2Si] 14 -O-Si (CH3) 3 (CH3) 3 Si- [O- (CH 3) 2 Si] 15 -O-Si (CH3) 3 (CH 3) 3 Si- [O- (CH 3) 2Si] 16 -O-Si (CH 3) 3 (CH 3) 3 Si- [O- (CH 3) 2 Si] 17 -O-Si (CH3) 3 (CH3) 3 Si- [O- (CH 3) 2 Si] 18 -O (3 (CH 3) 3 Si- [O- (CH 3) 2 Si] 20-O-Si -Si (CH3) 3 (CH 3) 3 Si- [O- (CH 3) 2 Si] 19 -O-Si (CH 3) CH3) 3
eingesetzt, wobei (CHs)3Si-O-Si(C!-^, (CH3)3Si-O-(CH3)2Si-O-Si(CH3)3 und/oder (CH3)3Si-[O- (CH3)2Si]2-O-Si(CH3)3 besonders bevorzugt sind.where (CH 3 ) 3 Si-O-Si (C 1 -), (CH 3 ) 3 Si-O- (CH 3 ) 2 Si-O-Si (CH 3 ) 3 and / or (CH 3 ) 3 Si [ O- (CH 3 ) 2 Si] 2 -O-Si (CH 3 ) 3 are particularly preferred.
Selbstverständlich können auch Mischungen der o.g. Silikone in den bevorzugten erfindungs- gemäßen Mitteln enthalten sein.Of course, mixtures of o.g. Silicones be included in the preferred inventive means.
Bevorzugte erfindungsgemäß einsetzbare Silikone weisen bei 2O0C Viskositäten von 0,2 bis 2 mmV1 auf, wobei Silikone mit Viskositäten von 0,5 bis 1 mmV1 besonders bevorzugt sind.Preferred silicones according to invention have at 2O 0 C to viscosities of 0.2 to 2 mmV 1, wherein silicones having viscosities of 0.5 to 1 mmV 1 are particularly preferred.
Besonders bevorzugte erfindungsgemäße Mittel enthalten ein oder mehrere aminofunktionelle Silikone. Solche Silikone können z.B. durch die Formel (Si-2)Particularly preferred agents according to the invention contain one or more amino-functional silicones. Such silicones may e.g. by the formula (Si-2)
M(RaQbSi0(4-a-b)/2)x(RcSi0(4-c)/2)yM (Si-2)M (R a Q b Si0 (4 - a - b) / 2 ) x (R c Si0 (4 - c) / 2 ) y M (Si-2)
Beschrieben werden, wobei in der obigen FormelBe described, taking in the above formula
R ein Kohlenwasserstoff oder ein Kohlenwasserstoffrest mit 1 bis etwa 6R is a hydrocarbon or a hydrocarbon radical having from 1 to about 6
Kohlenstoffatomen ist,Carbon atoms,
Q ein polarer Rest der allgemeinen Formel -R1HZ ist, worinQ is a polar radical of the general formula -R 1 HZ, in which
R1 eine zweiwertige, verbindende Gruppe ist, die an Wasserstoff und den Rest Z gebunden ist, zusammengesetzt aus Kohlenstoff- und Wasserstoffatomen, Kohlenstoff-, Wasserstoff- und Sauerstoffatomen oder Kohlenstoff-, Wasserstoff- und Stickstoffatomen, undR 1 is a divalent linking group bonded to hydrogen and the radical Z composed of carbon and hydrogen atoms, carbon, hydrogen and oxygen atoms or carbon, hydrogen and nitrogen atoms, and
Z ein organischer, aminofunktioneller Rest ist, der mindestens eine aminofunktionelle Gruppe enthält; a Werte im Bereich von etwa 0 bis etwa 2 annimmt, b Werte im Bereich von etwa 1 bis etwa 3 annimmt, a + b kleiner als oder gleich 3 ist, und c eine Zahl im Bereich von etwa 1 bis etwa 3 ist, und x eine Zahl im Bereich von 1 bis etwa 2.000, vorzugsweise von etwa 3 bis etwa 50 und am bevorzugtesten von etwa 3 bis etwa 25 ist, und y eine Zahl im Bereich von etwa 20 bis etwa 10.000, vorzugsweise von etwa 125 bis etwa 10.000 und am bevorzugtesten von etwa 150 bis etwa 1.000 ist, und M eine geeignete Silikon-Endgruppe ist, wie sie im Stande der Technik bekannt ist, vorzugsweise Trimethylsiloxy.Z is an organic, amino-functional group containing at least one amino-functional group; a assumes values in the range of about 0 to about 2, b takes values in the range of about 1 to about 3, a + b is less than or equal to 3, and c is a number in the range of about 1 to about 3, and x a number ranging from 1 to about 2,000, preferably from about 3 to about 50, and most preferably from about 3 to about 25; and y is a number ranging from about 20 to about 10,000, preferably from about 125 to about 10,000 and most preferred is from about 150 to about 1000, and M is a suitable silicone end group as known in the art, preferably trimethylsiloxy.
Nicht einschränkende Beispiele der in Formel (Si-2) durch R repräsentierten Reste schließen Alkylreste, wie Methyl, Ethyl, Propyl, Isopropyl, Isopropyl, Butyl, Isobutyl, Amyl, Isoamyl, Hexyl, Isohexyl und ähnliche; Alkenylreste, wie Vinyl, Halogenvinyl, Alkylvinyl, AIIyI, Halogenallyl, Alkylallyl; Cycloalkylreste, wie Cyclobutyl, Cyclopentyl, Cyclohexyl und ähnliche; Phenylreste, Benzylreste, Halogenkohlenwasserstoffreste, wie 3- Chlorpropyl, 4-Brombutyl, 3,3,3-Trifluor- propyl, Chlorcyclohexyl, Bromphenyl, Chlorphenyl und ähnliche sowie schwefelhaltige Reste, wie Mercaptoethyl, Mercaptopropyl, Mercaptohexyl, Mercaptophenyl und ähnliche ein; vorzugsweise ist R ein Alkylrest, der 1 bis etwa 6 Kohlenstoffatomen enthält, und am bevorzugtesten ist R Methyl. Beispiele von R1 schließen Methylen, Ethylen, Propylen, Hexamethylen, Decamethylen, - CH2CH(CH3)CH2-, Phenylen, Naphthylen, -CH2CH2SCH2CH 2-, -CH2CH2OCH2-, -OCH2CH2-, - OCH2 CH2CH2-, -CH2CH(CH3)C(O)OCH2-, -(CHz)3 CC(O)OCH2CH2-, -C6H 4C6H4-, -C6H 4CH2C6H4-; und -(CH 2)3C(O)SCH2CH2- ein.Non-limiting examples of the groups represented by R in formula (Si-2) include alkyl groups such as methyl, ethyl, propyl, isopropyl, isopropyl, butyl, isobutyl, amyl, isoamyl, hexyl, isohexyl and the like; Alkenyl radicals such as vinyl, halovinyl, alkylvinyl, allyl, haloallyl, alkylallyl; Cycloalkyl radicals such as cyclobutyl, cyclopentyl, cyclohexyl and the like; Phenyl radicals, benzyl radicals, halohydrocarbon radicals such as 3-chloropropyl, 4-bromobutyl, 3,3,3-trifluoropropyl, chlorocyclohexyl, bromophenyl, chlorophenyl and the like, as well as sulfur-containing radicals such as mercaptoethyl, mercaptopropyl, mercaptohexyl, mercaptophenyl and the like; preferably R is an alkyl radical containing from 1 to about 6 carbon atoms, and most preferably R is methyl. Examples of R 1 include methylene, ethylene, propylene, hexamethylene, decamethylene, - CH 2 CH (CH 3 ) CH 2 -, phenylene, naphthylene, -CH 2 CH 2 SCH 2 CH 2 -, -CH 2 CH 2 OCH 2 - , -OCH 2 CH 2 -, - OCH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -, -CH 2 CH (CH 3 ) C (O) OCH 2 -, - (CHz) 3 CC (O) OCH 2 CH 2 -, -C 6 H 4 C 6 H 4 -, -C 6 H 4 CH 2 C 6 H 4 -; and - (CH 2 ) 3 C (O) SCH 2 CH 2 -.
Z ist gemäß Formel (Si-2) ein organischer, aminofunktioneller Rest, enthaltend mindestens eine funktionelle Aminogruppe. Eine mögliche Formel für besagtes Z ist NH(CH2)ZNH2, worin z eine ganze Zahl von größer gleich 1 ist. Eine andere mögliche Formel für besagtes Z ist -NH(CH2)Z(CH 2)zzNH, worin sowohl z als auch zz unabhängig voneinander eine ganze Zahl von größer gleich 1 sind, wobei diese Struktur Diamino-Ringstrukturen umfasst, wie Piperazinyl. Besagtes Z ist am bevorzugtesten ein -NHCH2CH 2NH2-Rest. Eine andere mögliche Formel für besagtes Z ist - N(CH2)Z(CH2)ZZNX2 oder -NX2, worin jedes X von X2 unabhängig ausgewählt ist aus der Gruppe bestehend aus Wasserstoff und Alkylgruppen mit 1 bis 12 Kohlenstoffatomen, und zz 0 ist.Z is according to formula (Si-2) an organic, amino-functional radical containing at least one functional amino group. A possible formula for said Z is NH (CH 2 ) Z NH 2 , where z is an integer greater than or equal to 1. Another possible formula for said Z is -NH (CH 2 ) Z (CH 2 ) zz NH, wherein both z and zz independently of one another are an integer greater than or equal to 1, this structure comprising diamino ring structures, such as piperazinyl. Said Z is most preferably an -NHCH 2 CH 2 NH 2 radical. Another possible formula for said Z is - N (CH 2 ) Z (CH 2 ) ZZ NX 2 or -NX 2 , wherein each X of X 2 is independently selected from the group consisting of hydrogen and alkyl groups of 1 to 12 carbon atoms, and zz is 0.
Q gemäß Formel (Si-2) ist am bevorzugtesten ein polarer aminofunktioneller Rest der Formel - CH2CH2CH2NHCH2CH2NH 2. In der Formel (Si-2) nimmt a Werte im Bereich von 0 bis 2 an, b nimmt Werte im Bereich von 2 bis 3 an, a + b ist kleiner als oder gleich 3, und c ist eine Zahl im Bereich von 1 bis 3. Das molare Verhältnis der RaQb SiO(4.a.b)/2-Einheiten zu den R0SiO (4_C)/2-Einheiten in Formel (Si-2) liegt im Bereich von etwa 1 : 2 bis 1 : 65, vorzugsweise von etwa 1 : 5 bis etwa 1 : 65 und am bevorzugtesten von etwa 1 : 15 bis etwa 1 : 20. Werden ein oder mehrere Silikone der obigen Formel (Si-2) eingesetzt, dann können die verschiedenen variablen Substituenten in der obigen Formel bei den verschiedenen Silikonkomponenten, die in der Silikonmischung vorhanden sind, verschieden sein.Q according to formula (Si-2) is most preferably a polar amino-functional radical of formula - CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 CH 2 CH 2 NH 2 . In the formula (Si-2), α assumes values in the range of 0 to 2, b takes values in the range of 2 to 3, a + b is less than or equal to 3, and c is a number in the range of 1 to 3. The molar ratio of the R a Q b SiO (4 a a b) / 2 units to the R 0 SiO (4 C) 2 units in formula (Si-2) is in the range of about 1: From 2 to 1: 65, preferably from about 1: 5 to about 1:65, and most preferably from about 1:15 to about 1: 20. If one or more of the above formula (Si-2) silicones are used then the various variable substituents in the above formula may be different for the various silicone components present in the silicone blend.
Bevorzugte erfindungsgemäße kosmetische oder dermatologische Zubereitungen enthalten ein aminofunktionelles Silikon der Formel (Si-3)Preferred cosmetic or dermatological preparations according to the invention contain an amino-functional silicone of the formula (Si-3)
R'aG3-a-Si(OSiG 2)n-(OSiG bR'2- b)m-O-SiG3-a-R'a (Si-3),R 'a G 3 - a -Si (OSiG 2) n - (OSiG b R' 2-b) m -O-SiG 3 - a -R 'a (Si-3),
worin bedeutet:where:
G ist -H, eine Phenylgruppe, -OH, -0-CH3, -CH3, -0-CH2CH3, -CH2CH3, -0-CH2CH2CH3, -C/H2C/H2C/H3, -L)~C/H(C/H3)2) ~C-/H(L/H3)2J -O~C/Π2C/H2C/Π2C/H3, -C/H2C/H2C/Π2C/Π3, -O-CH2CH(CH3)2, -CH2CH(CHs)2, -0-CH(CH3)CH2CH3, -CH(CH3)CH2CH3, -O-C(CH3)3, -C(CH3)3 ; a steht für eine Zahl zwischen 0 und 3, insbesondere 0; b steht für eine Zahl zwischen 0 und 1 , insbesondere 1 , m und n sind Zahlen, deren Summe (m + n) zwischen 1 und 2000, vorzugsweise zwischen 50 und 150 beträgt, wobei n vorzugsweise Werte von 0 bis 1999 und insbesondere von 49 bis 149 und m vorzugsweise Werte von 1 bis 2000, insbesondere von 1 bis 10 annimmt,G is -H, a phenyl group, -OH, -O-CH 3 , -CH 3 , -O-CH 2 CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 3 , -O-CH 2 CH 2 CH 3 , -C / H 2 C / H2C / H3, -L) ~ C / H (C / H3) 2) ~ C / H (L / H3) 2 -O ~ J C / Π2C / H2C / Π2C / H3, -C / H2C / H2C / Π2C / Π3, -O-CH 2 CH (CH 3) 2, -CH 2 CH (CHs) 2, -0-CH (CH 3) CH 2 CH 3, -CH (CH 3) CH 2 CH 3, - OC (CH 3 ) 3 , -C (CH 3 ) 3 ; a is a number between 0 and 3, in particular 0; b is a number between 0 and 1, in particular 1, m and n are numbers whose sum (m + n) is between 1 and 2000, preferably between 50 and 150, where n preferably values from 0 to 1999 and in particular from 49 to 149 and m preferably assumes values from 1 to 2000, in particular from 1 to 10,
R' ist ein monovalenter Rest ausgewählt aus -Q-N(R")-CH2-CH2-N(R")2 -Q-N(R11J2 -Q-N+(R")3A- -Q-N+H(R")2 A" -Q-N+H2(R")A" -Q-N(R")-CH2-CH2-N+R"H2A" , wobei jedes Q für eine chemische Bindung, -CH2-, -CH2-CH2-, -CH2CH2CH2-, -C(CHs)2-, -CH2CH2CH2CH2-, -CH2C(CH3)2-, -CH(CH3)CH2CH2- steht, R" für gleiche oder verschiedene Reste aus der Gruppe -H, -Phenyl, -Benzyl, -CH2-CH(CH3)Ph, der Ci_20-Alkylreste, vorzugsweise -CH3, -CH2CH3, -CH2CH2CH3, -CH(CH3)2, -CH2CH2CH2CH3, -CH2CH(CH3)2, -CH(CH3)CH2CH3, -C(CH3J3, steht und A ein Anion repräsentiert, welches vorzugsweise ausgewählt ist aus Chlorid, Bromid, lodid oder Methosulfat.R ' is a monovalent radical selected from -QN (R ") - CH 2 -CH 2 -N (R") 2 -QN (R 11 J 2 -QN + (R ") 3 A- -QN + H (R ") 2 a" QN + H 2 (R ") a" -QN (R ") - CH 2 -CH 2 -N + R" H 2 a ", each Q is a chemical bond, -CH 2 - , -CH 2 -CH 2 -, -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -, -C (CHs) 2 -, -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 -, -CH 2 C (CH 3 ) 2 -, -CH (CH 3 ) CH 2 CH 2 -, R "represents the same or different radicals from the group of -H, -phenyl, -benzyl, -CH 2 -CH (CH 3) Ph, the CI_ 20 -alkyl, preferably -CH 3, -CH 2 CH 3, -CH 2 CH 2 CH 3, -CH (CH 3 ) 2 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 3 , -CH 2 CH (CH 3 ) 2 , -CH (CH 3 ) CH 2 CH 3 , -C (CH 3 J 3 , and A is an anion which is preferably selected from chloride, bromide, iodide or methosulfate.
Erfindungsgemäß geeignet sind kationische Silikonöle wie beispielsweise die im Handel erhältliche Dow Corning 929 Emulsion (enthaltend ein hydroxylamino-modifiziertes Silikon, das als Amodimethicone bezeichnet wird), DC 2-2078 (Hersteller Dow Corning, INCI-Bezeichnung: Aminopropyl Phenyl Trimethicone), DC 5-7113 (Hersteller Dow Corning, INCI-Bezeichnung: Silicone Quaternium 16), SM-2059 (Hersteller: General Electric), SLM-55067 (Hersteller: Wacker) sowie Abil®-Quat 3270 und 3272 (Hersteller: Th. Goldschmidt; diquaternäre Polydimethylsiloxane, Quaternium-80).Cationic silicone oils, such as the commercially available Dow Corning 929 emulsion (containing a hydroxylamino-modified silicone referred to as amodimethicone), DC 2-2078 (manufacturer Dow Corning, INCI name: Aminopropyl Phenyl Trimethicone), DC 5 are suitable according to the invention -7113 (manufacturer Dow Corning, INCI name: Silicone Quaternium 16), SM-2059 (manufacturer: General Electric), SLM-55067 (manufacturer: Wacker) and Abil ® quat 3270 and 3272 (manufacturer: Th Goldschmidt; diquaternary. Polydimethylsiloxanes, quaternium-80).
Besonders bevorzugte erfindungsgemäße Mittel sind dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass sie mindestens es ein aminofunktionelles Silikon der Formel (Si3-a)Particularly preferred agents according to the invention are characterized in that they contain at least one amino-functional silicone of the formula (Si 3-a)
(CH3)3Si-[O-Si(CH3)2]n[O-Si(CH3)]m-OSi(CH3)3 (Si-3a),(CH 3 ) 3 Si [O-Si (CH 3 ) 2 ] n [O-Si (CH 3 )] m -OSi (CH 3 ) 3 (Si-3a),
CH2CH(CH3)CH2NH(CH2)2NH2 CH 2 CH (CH 3 ) CH 2 NH (CH 2 ) 2 NH 2
enthalten, worin m und n Zahlen sind, deren Summe (m + n) zwischen 1 und 2000, vorzugsweise zwischen 50 und 150 beträgt, wobei n vorzugsweise Werte von 0 bis 1999 und insbesondere von 49 bis 149 und m vorzugsweise Werte von 1 bis 2000, insbesondere von 1 bis 10 annimmt.in which m and n are numbers whose sum (m + n) is between 1 and 2000, preferably between 50 and 150, where n preferably values of 0 to 1999 and in particular of 49 to 149 and m preferably values of 1 to 2000 , in particular from 1 to 10 assumes.
Diese Silikone werden nach der INCI-Deklaration als Trimethylsilylamodimethicone bezeichnet und sind beispielsweise unter der Bezeichnung Q2-7224 (Hersteller: Dow Corning; ein stabilisiertes Trimethylsilylamodimethicon) erhältlich.These silicones are referred to as trimethylsilylamodimethicones according to the INCI declaration and are available, for example, under the name Q2-7224 (manufacturer: Dow Corning, a stabilized trimethylsilylamodimethicone).
Besonders bevorzugt sind auch erfindungsgemäße Mittel, die mindestens ein aminofunktionelles Silikon der Formel (Si-3b)Particular preference is also given to compositions according to the invention which contain at least one amino-functional silicone of the formula (Si-3b)
R-[Si(CH3)2-O]n1 [Si(R>O]m-[Si(CH3)2-O]n2-SiMe2R (Si-3b),R- [Si (CH 3) 2 -O] n1 [Si (R> O] m - [Si (CH 3) 2 -O] n2 SiMe 2 R (Si-3b),
II
(CH2)3NH(CH2)2NH2 enthalten, worin(CH 2 ) 3 NH (CH 2 ) 2 NH 2 contain, in which
R für -OH, eine (gegebenenfalls ethoxylierte und/oder propoxylierte) (Ci bis C2o)-R is -OH, an (optionally ethoxylated and / or propoxylated) (Ci to C 2 o) -
Alkoxygruppe oder eine -CH3-Gruppe steht,Alkoxy group or a -CH 3 group,
R' für -OH, eine (Ci bis C2o)-Alkoxygruppe oder eine -CH3-Gruppe und m, n1 und n2 Zahlen sind, deren Summe (m + n1 + n2) zwischen 1 und 2000, vorzugsweise zwischen 50 und 150 beträgt, wobei die Summe (n1 + n2) vorzugsweise Werte von 0 bis 1999 und insbesondere von 49 bis 149 und m vorzugsweise Werte von 1 bis 2000, insbesondere von 1 bis 10 annimmt.R 'is -OH, a (Ci to C 2 o) alkoxy group or a -CH 3 group and m, n1 and n2 are numbers whose sum (m + n1 + n2) is between 1 and 2000, preferably between 50 and Is 150, wherein the sum (n1 + n2) preferably takes values from 0 to 1999 and in particular from 49 to 149 and m preferably values from 1 to 2000, in particular from 1 to 10.
Diese Silikone werden nach der INCI-Deklaration als Amodimethicone, bzw. als funktionalisierte Amodimethicone, wie beispielsweise Bis(C13-15 Alkoxy) PG Amodimethicone (beispielsweise als Handelsprodukt: DC 8500 der Firma Dow Corning erhältlich), Trideceth-9 PG-Amodimethicone (beispielsweise als Handelsprodukt Silcare Silicone SEA der Firma Clariant erhältlich) bezeichnet.These silicones are according to the INCI declaration as Amodimethicone, or as functionalized Amodimethicone, such as bis (C13-15 alkoxy) PG Amodimethicone (for example, as a commercial product: DC 8500 from Dow Corning available), trideceth-9 PG-amodimethicones (for example as a commercial product Silcare Silicone SEA available from Clariant).
Unabhängig davon, welche aminofunktionellen Silikone eingesetzt werden, sind erfindungsgemäße kosmetische oder dermatologische Zubereitungen bevorzugt, die ein aminofunktionelles Silikon enthalten dessen Aminzahl oberhalb von 0,25 meq/g, vorzugsweise oberhalb von 0,3 meq/g und insbesondere oberhalb von 0,4 meq/g liegt. Die Aminzahl steht dabei für die Milli-Äquivalente Amin pro Gramm des aminofunktionellen Silikons. Sie kann durch Titration ermittelt und auch in der Einheit mg KOH/g angegeben werden.Regardless of which amino-functional silicones are used, preference is given to cosmetic or dermatological preparations according to the invention which contain an amino-functional silicone whose amine number is above 0.25 meq / g, preferably above 0.3 meq / g and in particular above 0.4 meq / g is. The amine number stands for the milliequivalents of amine per gram of the amino-functional silicone. It can be determined by titration and also expressed in mg KOH / g.
Erfindungsgemäß bevorzugte kosmetische oder dermatologische Zubereitungen sind dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass sie, bezogen auf ihr Gewicht, 0,01 bis 10 Gew.%, vorzugsweise 0,1 bis 8 Gew.%, besonders bevorzugt 0,25 bis 7,5 Gew.% und insbesondere 0,5 bis 5 Gew.% aminofunk- tionelle(s) Silikon(e) enthalten.Cosmetic or dermatological preparations preferred according to the invention are characterized in that, based on their weight, they contain 0.01 to 10% by weight, preferably 0.1 to 8% by weight, particularly preferably 0.25 to 7.5% by weight and in particular from 0.5 to 5% by weight of amino-functional silicone (s).
Auch die nach INCI als Cyclomethicone bezeichneten cyclischen Dimethicone sind erfindungsgemäß mit Vorzug einsetzbar. Hier sind erfindungsgemäße kosmetische oder dermatologische Zubereitungen bevorzugt, die mindestens ein Silikon der Formel (Si-4) The cyclic dimethicones designated as cyclomethicones according to INCI are also preferably used according to the invention. Here, cosmetic or dermatological preparations according to the invention are preferred which contain at least one silicone of the formula (Si-4)
Figure imgf000066_0001
enthalten, in der x für eine Zahl von 0 bis 200, vorzugsweise von 0 bis 10, weiter bevorzugt von 0 bis 7 und insbesondere 0, 1 , 2, 3, 4, 5 oder 6, steht.
Figure imgf000066_0001
in which x is a number from 0 to 200, preferably from 0 to 10, more preferably from 0 to 7 and in particular 0, 1, 2, 3, 4, 5 or 6 stands.
Die vorstehend beschriebenen Silikone weisen ein Rückgrat auf, welches aus -Si-O-Si-Einheiten aufgebaut ist. Selbstverständlich können diese Si-O-Si-Einheiten auch durch Kohlenstoffketten unterbrochen sein. Entsprechende Moleküle sind durch Kettenverlängerungsreaktionen zugänglich und kommen vorzugsweise in Form von Silikon-in-Wasser-Emulsionen zum Einsatz.The silicones described above have a backbone composed of -Si-O-Si units. Of course, these Si-O-Si units may also be interrupted by carbon chains. Appropriate molecules are accessible by chain extension reactions and are preferably used in the form of silicone-in-water emulsions.
Die erfindungsgemäß einsetzbaren Silikon-in-Wasser Emulsionen können nach bekannten Verfahren hergestellt werden, wie sie beispielsweise in US 5,998,537 und EP 0 874 017 A1 offenbart sind.The silicone-in-water emulsions which can be used according to the invention can be prepared by known processes, as disclosed, for example, in US Pat. No. 5,998,537 and EP 0 874 017 A1.
Zusammenfassend umfasst dieses Herstellungsverfahren die emulgierende Mischung von Komponenten, deren eine mindestens ein Polysiloxane enthält, deren andere mindestens ein Organosilikonmaterial enthält, das mit dem Polysiloxane in einer Kettenverlängerungsreaktion reagiert, wobei mindestens ein Metallion-enthaltender Katalysator für die Kettenverlängerungsreaktion, mindestens ein Tensid und Wasser zugegen sind.In summary, this method of preparation comprises the emulsifying mixture of components, one of which contains at least one polysiloxane, the other of which contains at least one organosilicone material which reacts with the polysiloxane in a chain extension reaction, with at least one metal ion-containing catalyst for the chain extension reaction, at least one surfactant and water present are.
Kettenverlängerungsreaktionen mit Polysiloxanen sind bekannt und können beispielsweise die Hydrosilylierungsreaktion umfassen, in der eine Si-H Gruppe mit einer aliphatisch ungesättigten Gruppe in Gegenwart eines Platin/Rhodium-Katalysators unter Bildung von Polysiloxanes mit einigen Si-(C)P-Si Bindungen (p = 1-6) reagiert, wobei die Polysiloxane auch als Polysiloxane-Poly- silalkylene-Copolymere bezeichnet werden.Chain extension reactions with polysiloxanes are known and may include, for example, the hydrosilylation reaction in which an Si-H group having an aliphatically unsaturated group in the presence of a platinum / rhodium catalyst to form polysiloxanes having some Si (C) P- Si bonds (p = 1-6), the polysiloxanes also being referred to as polysiloxane-polysilalkylene copolymers.
Die Kettenverlängerungsreaktion kann auch die Reaktion einer Si-OH Gruppe (beispielsweise eines Hydroxy-terminierten Polysiloxans) mit einer Alkoxygruppe (beispielsweise Alkoxysilanen, Silikaten oder Alkoxysiloxanen) in Gegenwart eines metallhaltigen Katalysators unter Bildung von Polysiloxanen umfassen. Die Polysiloxane, die in der Kettenverlängerungsreaktion eingesetzt werden, umfassen ein substantiell lineares Polymer der folgenden Struktur:The chain extension reaction may also include the reaction of an Si-OH group (e.g., a hydroxy-terminated polysiloxane) with an alkoxy group (e.g., alkoxysilanes, silicates, or alkoxysiloxanes) in the presence of a metal-containing catalyst to form polysiloxanes. The polysiloxanes used in the chain extension reaction comprise a substantially linear polymer of the following structure:
R-Si(R2H-O-Si(R2Hn-O-SiR3 R-Si (R 2 HO-Si (R 2 Hn-O-SiR 3
In dieser Struktur steht jedes R unabhängig voneinander für einen Kohlenwasserstoffrest mit bis zu 20 Kohlenstoffatomen, vorzugsweise mit 1 bis 6 C-Atomen, wie beispielsweise einer Alkylgruppe (beispielsweise Methyl, Ethyl, Propyl oder Butyl), eine Arylgruppe (beispielsweise Phenyl), oder die für die Kettenverlängerungsreaktion benötigte Gruppe ("reaktive Gruppe", beispielsweise Si-gebundene H-Atome, aliphatisch ungesättigte Gruppen wie Vinyl, AIIyI oder Hexenyl, Hydroxy, Alkoxy wie Methoxy, Ethoxy oder Propoxy, Alkoxy-Alkoxy, Acetoxy, Amino usw.), mit der Maßgabe, dass durchschnittlich ein bis zwei reaktive Gruppen pro Polymer vorliegen, n ist eine positive Zahl > 1. Vorzugsweise ist eine Mehrzahl der reaktiven Gruppen, besonders bevorzugt > 90%, und insbesondere > 98% der reaktiven Gruppen, an den endständigen Si-Atomen im Siloxan gebunden. Vorzugsweise steht n für Zahlen, die Polysiloxane beschreiben, welche Viskositäten zwischen 1 und 1.000.000 mm2/s besitzen, besonders bevorzugt Viskositäten zwischen 1.000 und 100.000 mm2/s.In this structure, each R independently represents a hydrocarbon radical having up to 20 carbon atoms, preferably having 1 to 6 carbon atoms, such as an alkyl group (for example, methyl, ethyl, propyl or butyl), an aryl group (for example, phenyl), or group required for the chain extension reaction ("reactive group", for example, Si-bonded H atoms, aliphatic unsaturated groups such as vinyl, allyl or hexenyl, hydroxy, alkoxy such as methoxy, ethoxy or propoxy, alkoxy-alkoxy, acetoxy, amino, etc.), with the proviso that on average one to two reactive groups are present per polymer, n is a positive number> 1. Preferably, a plurality of the reactive groups, more preferably> 90%, and especially> 98% of the reactive groups, at the terminal Si -Atomen bound in siloxane. Preferably, n is numbers describing polysiloxanes having viscosities between 1 and 1,000,000 mm 2 / s, more preferably viscosities between 1,000 and 100,000 mm 2 / s.
Die Polysiloxane können zu einem geringen Grad verzweigt sein (beispielsweise < 2 Mol-% der Siloxaneinheiten), bzw. sind die Polymere aber substantiell linear, besonders bevorzugt vollständig linear. Zudem können die Substituenten R ihrerseits substituiert sein, beispielsweise mit N-haltigen Gruppen (beispielsweise Aminogruppen), Epoxygruppen, S-haltige Gruppen, Si- haltige Gruppen, O-haltige Gruppen usw.. Vorzugsweise sind mindestens 80% der Reste R Alkylreste, besonders bevorzugt Methylgruppen.The polysiloxanes may be branched to a low degree (for example, <2 mol% of the siloxane units), but the polymers are substantially linear, more preferably fully linear. In addition, the substituents R may in turn be substituted, for example with N-containing groups (for example amino groups), epoxy groups, S-containing groups, Si-containing groups, O-containing groups, etc. Preferably, at least 80% of the radicals R are alkyl radicals, especially preferably methyl groups.
Das Organosilikonmaterial, das mit dem Polysiloxan in der Kettenverlängerungsreaktion reagiert, kann entweder ein zweites Polysiloxan sein, oder ein Molekül, das als Kettenverlängerer agiert. Wenn das Organosilikonmaterial ein Polysiloxan ist, hat es die vorstehend erwähnte generelle Struktur. In diesen Fällen besitzt ein Polysiloxan in der Reaktion (mindestens) eine reaktive Gruppe, und ein zweites Polysiloxan besitzt (mindestens) eine zweite reaktive Gruppe, die mit der ersten reagiert.The organosilicone material that reacts with the polysiloxane in the chain extension reaction may be either a second polysiloxane or a molecule that acts as a chain extender. When the organosilicone material is a polysiloxane, it has the above-mentioned general structure. In these cases, one polysiloxane in the reaction has (at least) one reactive group, and a second polysiloxane has (at least) a second reactive group that reacts with the first.
Falls das Organosilikonmaterial ein Kettenverlängerungs-Agens umfasst, kann dies ein Material sein wie beispielsweise ein Silan, ein Siloxan (beispielsweise Disiloxane oder Trisiloxan) oder ein Silazan. So kann beispielsweise eine Zusammensetzung, die ein Polysiloxan gemäß der vorstehend beschriebenen generellen Struktur umfasst, welches mindestens eine Si-OH Gruppe auf- weist, ketteverlängert werden, indem mit einem Alkoxysilan (beispielsweise einem Dialkoxysilan oder Trialkoxysilan) in Gegenwart von Zinn- oder Titan-haltigen Katalysatoren reagiert wird.If the organosilicone material comprises a chain-extending agent, it may be a material such as a silane, a siloxane (e.g. disiloxane or trisiloxane) or a silazane. Thus, for example, a composition which comprises a polysiloxane according to the above-described general structure which comprises at least one Si-OH group has been chain extended by reacting with an alkoxysilane (for example, a dialkoxysilane or trialkoxysilane) in the presence of tin or titanium-containing catalysts.
Die metallhaltigen Katalysatoren in der Kettenverlängerungsreaktion sind meist spezifisch für eine bestimmte Reaktion. Solche Katalysatoren sind im Stand der Technik bekannt und enthalten beispielsweise Metalle wie Platin, Rhodium, Zinn, Titan, Kupfer, Blei, etc.. In einer bevorzugten Kettenverlängerungsreaktion wird ein Polysiloxan mit mindestens einer aliphatisch ungesättigten Gruppe, vorzugsweise einer Endgruppe, mit einem Organosilikonmaterial in Gegenwart eines Hydrosilylierungskatalysators zur Reaktion gebracht, das ein Siloxan oder Polysiloxan mit mindestens einer (vorzugsweise endständigen) Si-H Gruppe ist. Das Polysiloxan besitzt mindestens eine aliphatisch ungesättigte Gruppe und genügt der allgemeinen oben angegeben Formel, in der R und n wie vorstehend definiert sind, wobei im Durchschnitt zwischen 1 und 2 Gruppen R eine aliphatisch ungesättigte Gruppe pro Polymer besitzen. Repräsentative aliphatisch ungesättigte Gruppen sind beispielsweise Vinyl, AIIyI, Hexenyl und Cyclohexenyl oder eine Gruppe R2CH=CHR3, in der R2 für eine divalente aliphatische an das Silicium gebundene Kette und R3 für ein Wasserstoffatom oder eine Alkylgruppe steht. Das Organosilikonmaterial mit mindestens einer Si-H Gruppe hat vorzugsweise die oben genannte Struktur, in der R und n wie vorstehend definiert sind und wobei im Durchschnitt zwischen 1 und 2 Gruppen R ein Wasserstoff bedeuten und n 0 oder eine positive ganze Zahl ist.The metal-containing catalysts in the chain extension reaction are usually specific for a particular reaction. Such catalysts are known in the art and include, for example, metals such as platinum, rhodium, tin, titanium, copper, lead, etc. In a preferred chain extension reaction, a polysiloxane having at least one aliphatically unsaturated group, preferably an end group, is reacted with an organosilicone material Presence of a hydrosilylation catalyst which is a siloxane or polysiloxane having at least one (preferably terminal) Si-H group. The polysiloxane has at least one aliphatically unsaturated group and satisfies the general formula given above in which R and n are as defined above, with an average of between 1 and 2 groups R having one aliphatically unsaturated group per polymer. Representative aliphatic unsaturated groups are, for example, vinyl, allyl, hexenyl and cyclohexenyl or a group R 2 CH = CHR 3 in which R 2 is a divalent aliphatic silicon-bonded chain and R 3 is a hydrogen atom or an alkyl group. The organosilicone material having at least one Si-H group preferably has the above-mentioned structure, wherein R and n are as defined above and wherein, on average, between 1 and 2 groups R is hydrogen and n is 0 or a positive integer.
Dieses Material kann ein Polymer oder ein niedermolekulares Material wie ein Siloxan sein (beispielsweise ein Disiloxane oder ein Trisiloxan).This material may be a polymer or a low molecular weight material such as a siloxane (for example, a disiloxane or a trisiloxane).
Das Polysiloxan mit mindestens einer aliphatisch ungesättigten Gruppe und das Organosilikonmaterial mit mindestens einer Si-H Gruppe reagieren in Gegenwart eines Hydrosilylierungskatalysators. Solche Katalysatoren sind aus dem Stand der Technik bekannt und umfassen beispielsweise Platin- und Rhodium-enthaltende Materialien. Die Katalysatoren können jede bekannte Form annehmen, beispielsweise auf Trägermaterialien (wie beispielsweise Silica Gel oder Aktivkohle) aufgebrachtes Platin oder Rhodium oder andere geeignete Compounds wie Platinchlorid, Salze von Platin- oder Chloroplatinsäuren. Ein wegen der guten Dispergierbarkeit in Organosilikonsystemen und der geringen Farbveränderung bevorzugter Katalysator ist Chloroplatinsäure entweder als kommerziell verfügbares Hexahydrat oder in wasserfreier Form.The polysiloxane having at least one aliphatic unsaturated group and the organosilicone material having at least one Si-H group react in the presence of a hydrosilylation catalyst. Such catalysts are known in the art and include, for example, platinum and rhodium-containing materials. The catalysts may take any known form, for example platinum or rhodium coated on support materials (such as silica gel or activated carbon) or other suitable compounds such as platinum chloride, salts of platinum or chloroplatinic acids. Chloroplatinic acid either as a commercially available hexahydrate or in anhydrous form is a preferred catalyst because of good dispersibility in organosilicone systems and low color change.
Bei einer weiteren bevorzugten Kettenerweiterungsreaktion wird ein Polysiloxan mit mindestens einer Si-OH Gruppe, vorzugsweise einer Endgruppe, mit einem Organosilikonmaterial zu Reaktion gebracht, das mindestens eine Alkoxygruppe besitzt, vorzugsweise ein Siloxan mit mindestens einer Si-OR Gruppe oder ein Alkoxysilan mit mindestens zwei Alkoxygruppen. Hierbei wird als Katalysator wieder ein metallhaltiger Katalysator eingesetzt.In another preferred chain extension reaction, a polysiloxane having at least one Si-OH group, preferably an end group, is added with an organosilicone material Reaction having at least one alkoxy group, preferably a siloxane having at least one Si-OR group or an alkoxysilane having at least two alkoxy groups. In this case, the catalyst used is again a metal-containing catalyst.
Für die Reaktion einer Si-OH Gruppe mit einer Si-OR Gruppe existieren viele literaturbekannte Katalysatoren, beispielsweise Organometallverbindungen wie Organozinnsalze, Titanate oder Titanchelate bzw. -komplexe. Beispiele umfassen Zinn-octoat, Dibutylzinn-dilaurat, Dibutylzinn- diacetat, Dimethyltinn-dineodecanoat, Dibutylzinn-dimethoxid, Isobutylzinn-triceroat, Dimethylzinn-dibutyrat, Dimethylzinn-dineodecanoat, Triethylzinn-tartrat, Zinnoleat, Zinnnaphthenat, Zinnbutyrat, Zinnacetat, Zinnbenzoat, Zinnsebacat, Zinnsuccinat, Tetrabutyltitanat, Tetraisopropyltitante, Tetraphenyltitanat, Tetraoctadecyltitanat, Titan- naphthanat, Ethyltriethanolamin-Titanat, Titani-diisopropyl-diethyl-acetoacetat, Titan-diisopropoxy- diacetyl-acetonat und Titani-tetra-Alkoxide, bei denen das Alkoxid Butoxy oder Propoxy ist.For the reaction of an Si-OH group with an Si-OR group, there are many catalysts known from the literature, for example organometallic compounds such as organotin salts, titanates or titanium chelates or complexes. Examples include stannous octoate, dibutyltin dilaurate, dibutyltin diacetate, dimethyltin dineodecanoate, dibutyltin dimethoxide, isobutyltin triceroate, dimethyltin dibutyrate, dimethyltin dineodecanoate, triethyltin tartrate, tin oleate, tin naphthenate, tin butyrate, tin acetate, tin benzoate, tin sebacate, Tin succinate, tetrabutyl titanate, tetraisopropyl titanate, tetraphenyl titanate, tetraoctadecyl titanate, titanium naphthanate, ethyl triethanolamine titanate, titanium diisopropyl diethyl acetoacetate, titanium diisopropoxy diacetyl acetonate and titanium tetra alkoxides in which the alkoxide is butoxy or propoxy.
Erfindungsgemäß ebenfalls bevorzugte Mittel sind dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass sie mindestens ein Silikon der Formel (Si-5)Agents which are likewise preferred according to the invention are characterized in that they contain at least one silicone of the formula (Si-5)
R3Si-[O-SiR2]χ-(CH2)n-[O-SiR2]y-O-SiR3 (Si-5),R 3 Si [O-SiR 2] χ- (CH 2 ) n - [O-SiR 2 ] y -O-SiR 3 (Si-5),
enthalten, in der R für gleiche oder verschiedene Reste aus der Gruppe -H, -Phenyl, -Benzyl, -CH2-CH(CH3)Ph, der d_2o-Alkylreste, vorzugsweise -CH3, -CH2CH3, -CH2CH2CH3, -CH(CH3)2, -CH2CH2CH2H3, -CH2CH(CH3)2, -CH(CH3)CH2CH3, -C(CH3J3, steht, x bzw. y für eine Zahl von 0 bis 200, vorzugsweise von 0 bis 10, weiter bevorzugt von 0 bis 7 und insbesondere 0, 1 , 2, 3, 4, 5 oder 6, stehen, und n für eine Zahl von 0 bis 10, bevorzugt von 1 bis 8 und insbesondere für 2, 3, 4, 5, 6 steht.in which R is identical or different radicals from the group -H, -phenyl, -benzyl, -CH 2 -CH (CH 3 ) Ph, the d_ 2 o-alkyl radicals, preferably -CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 3 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 3 , -CH (CH 3 ) 2 , -CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 H 3 , -CH 2 CH (CH 3 ) 2 , -CH (CH 3 ) CH 2 CH 3 , -C (CH 3 J 3) , x or y is a number from 0 to 200, preferably from 0 to 10, more preferably from 0 to 7 and in particular 0, 1, 2, 3, 4, 5 or 6, and n is a number from 0 to 10, preferably from 1 to 8 and in particular from 2, 3, 4, 5, 6.
Mit Vorzug sind die Silikone wasserlöslich. Erfindungsgemäß bevorzugte Mittel der Ausführungsform mit einem Silikon sind dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass das Silikon wasserlöslich ist.The silicones are preferably water-soluble. According to preferred means of the embodiment with a silicone are characterized in that the silicone is water-soluble.
Entsprechende hydrophile Silikone werden beispielsweise aus den Verbindungen der Formeln (Si-6) und/oder (Si-7) ausgewählt. Insbesondere bevorzugte wasserlösliche Tenside auf Silikonbasis sind ausgewählt aus der Gruppe der Dimethiconcopolyole die bevorzugt alkoxyliert, insbesondere polyethoxyliert oder polypropoxyliert sind. Unter Dimethiconcopolyolen werden erfindungsgemäß bevorzugt Polyoxyalkylen-modifizierte Dimethylpolysiloxane der allgemeinen Formeln (Si-6) oder (Si-7) verstanden:Corresponding hydrophilic silicones are selected, for example, from the compounds of the formulas (Si-6) and / or (Si-7). Particularly preferred water-soluble silicone-based surfactants are selected from the group of dimethicone copolyols which are preferably alkoxylated, in particular polyethoxylated or polypropoxylated. Dimethicone copolyols are understood according to the invention as meaning preferably polyoxyalkylene-modified dimethylpolysiloxanes of the general formulas (Si-6) or (Si-7):
Figure imgf000070_0001
O)b-R (Si-6)
Figure imgf000070_0001
O) b -R (Si-6)
R1— Si- [OSi(CH3)2]x-(OC2H4)a-(OC3H6)b-OR"R 1 - Si- [OSi (CH 3) 2] x - (OC 2 H 4) a - (OC 3 H 6) b -OR "
(Si-7) worin der Rest R steht für ein Wasserstoffatom, eine Alkylgruppe mit 1 bis 12 C-Atomen, eine(Si-7) wherein R represents a hydrogen atom, an alkyl group having 1 to 12 C atoms, a
Alkoxygruppe mit 1 bis 12 C-Atomen oder eine Hydroxylgruppe, die Reste R' und R" bedeuten Alkylgruppen mit 1 bis 12 C-Atomen, x steht für eine ganze Zahl von 1 bis 100, bevorzugt von 20 bis 30, y steht für eine ganze Zahl von 1 bis 20, bevorzugt von 2 bis 10 und a und b stehen für ganze Zahlen von 0 bis 50, bevorzugt von 10 bis 30.Alkoxy group having 1 to 12 carbon atoms or a hydroxyl group, the radicals R 'and R "are alkyl groups having 1 to 12 carbon atoms, x is an integer from 1 to 100, preferably from 20 to 30, y is a integer from 1 to 20, preferably from 2 to 10 and a and b are integers from 0 to 50, preferably from 10 to 30.
Verbindungen die unter die oben genannten Formeln fallen, werden in den folgenden Patentanmeldungen, auf die explizit Bezug genommen wird, offenbart: US-A-4, 122,029; US-A- 4,265,878; US-A-4,421 ,769 und GB-A-2,066,659.Compounds falling within the above formulas are disclosed in the following patent applications, which are incorporated herein by reference: US-A-4,122,029; US-A-4,265,878; US-A-4,421,769 and GB-A-2,066,659.
Besonders bevorzugte Dimethiconcopolyole im Sinne der Erfindung sind beispielsweise die kommerziell unter dem Handelsnamen SILWET (Union Carbide Corporation) und DOW CORNING (Dow) vertriebenen Produkte.Particularly preferred dimethicone copolyols according to the invention are, for example, the products sold commercially under the trade name SILWET (Union Carbide Corporation) and DOW CORNING (Dow).
Erfindungsgemäß besonders bevorzugte Dimethiconcopolyole sind Dow Corning 190 und Dow Corning 193 (Dow).Dimethicone copolyols particularly preferred according to the invention are Dow Corning 190 and Dow Corning 193 (Dow).
Zusätzlich können die erfindungsgemäßen Mittel mindestens ein Proteinhydrolysat enthalten. Die Proteinhydrolysate sind Produktgemische, die durch sauer, basisch oder enzymatisch katalysierten Abbau von Proteinen (Eiweißen) erhalten werden. Erfindungsgemäß können Proteinhydrolysate sowohl pflanzlichen als auch tierischen Ursprungs eingesetzt werden.In addition, the agents according to the invention may contain at least one protein hydrolyzate. The protein hydrolysates are product mixtures obtained by acid, alkaline or enzymatically catalyzed degradation of proteins (proteins). According to the invention, protein hydrolysates of both vegetable and animal origin can be used.
Tierische Proteinhydrolysate sind beispielsweise Elastin-, Kollagen-, Keratin-, Seiden- und Milch- eiweiß-Proteinhydrolysate, die auch in Form von Salzen vorliegen können. Solche Produkte werden beispielsweise unter den Warenzeichen Keratin DEC® (Vincience), Dehylan® (Cognis), Promois® (Interorgana), Collapuron® (Cognis), Nutrilan® (Cognis), Gelita-Sol® (Deutsche Gelatine Fabriken Stoess & Co), Lexein® (Inolex) und Kerasol® (Croda) vertrieben.Animal protein hydrolysates are, for example, elastin, collagen, keratin, silk and milk protein protein hydrolysates, which may also be present in the form of salts. Such products are, for example, under the trademarks keratin DEC ® (Vincience) Dehylan ® (Cognis), Promois® ® (Interorgana) Collapuron ® (Cognis), Nutrilan® ® (Cognis), Gelita-Sol ® (German Gelatinefabriken Stoess & Co) distributed Lexein ® (Inolex) and kerasol tm ® (Croda).
Erfindungsgemäß bevorzugt ist die Verwendung von Proteinhydrolysaten pflanzlichen Ursprungs, z. B. Soja-, Mandel-, Reis-, Erbsen-, Kartoffel- und Weizenproteinhydrolysate. Solche Produkte sind beispielsweise unter den Warenzeichen Gluadin® (Cognis), DiaMin® (Diamalt), Lexein® (Inolex) und Crotein® (Croda) erhältlich.Preferred according to the invention is the use of protein hydrolysates of plant origin, eg. Soybean, almond, rice, pea, potato and wheat protein hydrolysates. Such products are, for example, under the trademarks Gluadin ® (Cognis), diamine ® (Diamalt) ® (Inolex) and Crotein ® (Croda) available.
Wenngleich der Einsatz der Proteinhydrolysate als solche bevorzugt ist, können an deren Stelle gegebenenfalls auch anderweitig erhaltene Aminosäuregemische oder einzelne Aminosäuren wie beispielsweise Arginin, Lysin, Histidin oder Pyrroglutaminsäure eingesetzt werden. Ebenfalls möglich ist der Einsatz von Derivaten der Proteinhydrolysate, beispielsweise in Form ihrer Fettsäure-Kondensationsprodukte. Solche Produkte werden beispielsweise unter den Bezeichnungen Lamepon® (Cognis), Gluadin® (Cognis), Lexein® (Inolex), Crolastin® (Croda) oder Crotein® (Croda) vertrieben.Although the use of the protein hydrolysates is preferred as such, amino acid mixtures or individual amino acids obtained otherwise, such as, for example, arginine, lysine, histidine or pyrroglutamic acid, may also be used in their place. Also possible is the use of derivatives of protein hydrolysates, for example in the form of their fatty acid condensation products. Such products are marketed for example under the names Lamepon ® (Cognis), Gluadin ® (Cognis), Lexein ® (Inolex), Crolastin ® (Croda) or Crotein ® (Croda).
Bevorzugt sind die Proteinhydrolysate in einer Menge von 0,05 bis 5 Gew.-%, besonders bevorzugt von 0,5 bis 2,0 Gew.-%, jeweils bezogen auf das Gewicht des anwendungsbereiten Mittels, enthalten.Preferably, the protein hydrolysates in an amount of 0.05 to 5 wt .-%, particularly preferably from 0.5 to 2.0 wt .-%, each based on the weight of the ready-to-use agent included.
In einer weiteren Ausführungsform enthalten die erfindungsgemäßen Mittel zusätzlich mindestens ein kationisches und/oder mindestens ein amphoteres Polymer.In a further embodiment, the agents according to the invention additionally contain at least one cationic and / or at least one amphoteric polymer.
Unter kationischen Polymeren sind Polymere zu verstehen, welche in der Haupt- und/oder Seitenkette Gruppen aufweisen, welche „temporär" oder „permanent" kationisch sein kann. Als „permanent kationisch" werden erfindungsgemäß solche Polymere bezeichnet, die unabhängig vom pH-Wert des Mittels eine kationische Gruppe aufweisen. Dies sind in der Regel Polymere, die ein quartäres Stickstoffatom, beispielsweise in Form einer Ammoniumgruppe, enthalten. Bevorzugte kationische Gruppen sind quartäre Ammoniunngruppen. Insbesondere solche Polymere, bei denen die quartäre Ammoniunngruppe über eine Ci_4-Kohlenwasserstoffgruppe an eine aus Acrylsäure, Methacrylsäure oder deren Derivaten aufgebaute Polymerhauptkette gebunden sind, haben sich als besonders geeignet erwiesen. Homopolymere der allgemeinen Formel (P1 ),Cationic polymers are polymers which have groups in the main and / or side chain which may be "temporary" or "permanent" cationic. According to the invention, "permanently cationic" refers to those polymers which have a cationic group independently of the pH of the agent These are generally polymers containing a quaternary nitrogen atom, for example in the form of an ammonium group. Preferred cationic groups are quaternary ammonium groups. In particular, those polymers in which the quaternary Ammoniunngruppe are bonded via a CI_ 4 hydrocarbon group to a synthesized from acrylic acid, methacrylic acid or derivatives thereof, polymer backbone have been found to be particularly suitable. Homopolymers of the general formula (P1),
R18 R 18
-[CH2-C-Jn X" (P1 )- [CH 2 -CJ n X " (P1)
CO-O-(CH2)m-N+R19R20R21 CO-O- (CH 2 ) m -N + R 19 R 20 R 21
in der R18 = -H oder -CH3 ist, R19, R20 und R21 unabhängig voneinander ausgewählt sind aus d-4-Alkyl-, -Alkenyl- oder -Hydroxyalkylgruppen, m = 1 , 2, 3 oder 4, n eine natürliche Zahl und X" ein physiologisch verträgliches organisches oder anorganisches Anion ist, sowie Copolymere, bestehend im wesentlichen aus den in Formel (P1 ) aufgeführten Struktureinheiten sowie nichtionogenen Monomereinheiten, sind besonders bevorzugte kationische Polymere. Im Rahmen dieser Polymere sind diejenigen erfindungsgemäß bevorzugt, für die mindestens eine der folgenden Bedingungen gilt:R 18 = -H or -CH 3, R 19, R 20 and R 21 are independently selected from d-4 alkyl, alkenyl or hydroxyalkyl groups, m = 1, 2, 3 or 4, n is a natural number and X "is a physiologically acceptable organic or inorganic anion, and copolymers consisting essentially of the structural units listed in formula (P1) and nonionic monomer units are particularly preferred cationic polymers. for at least one of the following conditions:
R18 steht für eine Methylgruppe - R19, R20 und R21 stehen für Methylgruppen m hat den Wert 2.R 18 is a methyl group - R 19 , R 20 and R 21 are methyl groups m is 2.
Als physiologisch verträgliches Gegenionen X' kommen beispielsweise Halogenidionen, Sulfationen, Phosphationen, Methosulfationen sowie organische Ionen wie Lactat-, Citrat-, Tartrat- und Acetationen in Betracht. Bevorzugt sind Halogenidionen, insbesondere Chlorid.Suitable physiologically acceptable counterions X ' are, for example, halide ions, sulfate ions, phosphate ions, methosulfate ions and organic ions such as lactate, citrate, tartrate and acetate ions. Preference is given to halide ions, in particular chloride.
Ein besonders geeignetes Homopolymer ist das, gewünschtenfalls vernetzte, Poly(methacryloyloxyethyltrimethylammoniumchlorid) mit der INCI-Bezeichnung Polyquaternium- 37. Die Vernetzung kann gewünschtenfalls mit Hilfe mehrfach olefinisch ungesättigter Verbindungen, beispielsweise Divinylbenzol, Tetraallyloxyethan, Methylenbisacrylamid, Diallylether, Polyallylpolyglycerylether, oder Allylethern von Zuckern oder Zuckerderivaten wie Erythritol, Pentaerythritol, Arabitol, Mannitol, Sorbitol, Sucrose oder Glucose erfolgen. Methylenbisacrylamid ist ein bevorzugtes Vernetzungsagens.A particularly suitable homopolymer is, if desired, crosslinked, poly (methacryloyloxyethyltrimethylammoniumchlorid) with the INCI name Polyquaternium- 37. The crosslinking, if desired, using poly olefinically unsaturated compounds, for example divinylbenzene, tetraallyloxyethane, methylenebisacrylamide, diallyl ether, polyallylpolyglycerylether, or allyl ethers of sugars or Sugar derivatives such as erythritol, pentaerythritol, arabitol, mannitol, sorbitol, sucrose or glucose. Methylenebisacrylamide is a preferred crosslinking agent.
Das Homopolymer wird bevorzugt in Form einer nichtwäßrigen Polymerdispersion, die einen Polymeranteil nicht unter 30 Gew.-% aufweisen sollte, eingesetzt. Solche Polymerdispersionen sind unter den Bezeichnungen Salcare® SC 95 (ca. 50 % Polymeranteil, weitere Komponenten: Mineralöl (INCI-Bezeichnung: Mineral OiI) und Tridecyl-polyoxypropylen-polyoxyethylen-ether (INCI-Bezeichnung: PPG-1-Trideceth-6)) und Salcare® SC 96 (ca. 50 % Polymeranteil, weitere Komponenten: Mischung von Diestern des Propylenglykols mit einer Mischung aus Capryl- und Caprinsäure (INCI-Bezeichnung: Propylene Glycol Dicaprylate/Dicaprate) und Tridecyl- polyoxypropylen-polyoxyethylen-ether (INCI-Bezeichnung: PPG-1-Trideceth-6)) im Handel erhältlich.The homopolymer is preferably used in the form of a nonaqueous polymer dispersion which should not have a polymer content of less than 30% by weight. Such polymer dispersions are under the names Salcare ® SC 95 (about 50% polymer content, other components: mineral oil (INCI name: Mineral OiI) and tridecyl-polyoxypropylene-polyoxyethylene ether (INCI name: PPG-1-Trideceth-6)) and Salcare ® SC 96 (about 50% polymer content, other components: mixture of diesters of propylene glycol with a mixture of caprylic and capric acid (INCI name: Propylene Glycol Dicaprylate / Dicaprate) and tridecyl polyoxypropylene polyoxyethylene ether (INCI name : PPG-1-trideceth-6)) are commercially available.
Copolymere mit Monomereinheiten gemäß Formel (P1 ) enthalten als nichtionogene Monomereinheiten bevorzugt Acrylamid, Methacrylamid, Acrylsäure-C-|.4-alkylester und Methacrylsäure-C-ι-4-alkylester. Unter diesen nichtionogenen Monomeren ist das Acrylamid besonders bevorzugt. Auch diese Copolymere können, wie im Falle der Homopolymere oben beschrieben, vernetzt sein. Ein erfindungsgemäß bevorzugtes Copolymer ist das vernetzte Acrylamid-Methacryloyloxyethyltrimethylammoniumchlorid-Copolymer. Solche Copolymere, bei denen die Monomere in einem Gewichtsverhältnis von etwa 20:80 vorliegen, sind im Handel als ca. 50 %ige nichtwäßrige Polymerdispersion unter der Bezeichnung Salcare® SC 92 erhältlich.Copolymers with monomer units of the formula (P1) contain, as nonionic monomer units, preferably acrylamide, methacrylamide, acrylic acid-C-. 4- alkyl esters and methacrylic acid-C-ι- 4 -alkyl ester. Among these nonionic monomers, the acrylamide is particularly preferred. These copolymers can also be crosslinked, as described above in the case of the homopolymers. A copolymer preferred according to the invention is the crosslinked acrylamide-methacryloyloxyethyltrimethylammonium chloride copolymer. Such copolymers in which the monomers are present in a weight ratio of about 20:80, are commercially available as approximately 50% non-aqueous polymer dispersion 92 under the name Salcare ® SC.
Weitere bevorzugte kationische Polymere sind beispielsweise quaternisierte Cellulose-Derivate, wie sie unter den Bezeichnungen Celquat® und Polymer JR® im Handel erhältlich sind. Die Verbindungen Celquat® H 100, Celquat® L 200 und Polymer JR®400 sind bevorzugte quaternierte Cellulose-Derivate, kationisierter Honig, beispielsweise das Handelsprodukt Honeyquat® 50, kationische Guar-Derivate, wie insbesondere die unter den Handelsnamen Cosmedia®Guar und Jaguar® vertriebenen Produkte,Other preferred cationic polymers are, for example, quaternized cellulose derivatives, such as are available under the names of Celquat ® and Polymer JR ® commercially. The compounds Celquat ® H 100, Celquat ® L 200 and Polymer JR ® 400 are preferred quaternized cellulose derivatives, cationized honey, for example the commercial product Honeyquat ® 50, cationic guar derivatives, in particular under the trade name Cosmedia ® guar and Jaguar ® distributed products,
Polysiloxane mit quaternären Gruppen, wie beispielsweise die im Handel erhältlichen Produkte Q2-7224 (Hersteller: Dow Corning; ein stabilisiertes Trimethylsilylamodimethicon), Dow Corning® 929 Emulsion (enthaltend ein hydroxyl-amino-modifiziertes Silicon, das auch als Amodimethicone bezeichnet wird), SM-2059 (Hersteller: General Electric), SLM-55067 (Hersteller: Wacker) sowie Abil®-Quat 3270 und 3272 (Hersteller: Th. Goldschmidt; di- quaternäre Polydimethylsiloxane, Quaternium-80),Polysiloxanes having quaternary groups, such as the commercially available products Q2-7224 (manufactured by Dow Corning, a stabilized trimethylsilylamodimethicone), Dow Corning® 929 emulsion (containing a hydroxylamino-modified silicone, also referred to as amodimethicones), SM -2059 (manufacturer: General Electric), SLM-55067 (manufacturer: Wacker) and Abil ® quat 3270 and 3272 (manufacturer: Th Goldschmidt; di- quaternary polydimethylsiloxanes, quaternium-80).,
- polymere Dimethyldiallylammoniumsalze und deren Copolymere mit Estern und Amiden von Acrylsäure und Methacrylsäure. Die unter den Bezeichnungen Merquat®100 (Poly(dimethyldiallylammoniumchlorid)) und Merquat®550 (Dimethyldiallylammoniumchlorid- Acrylamid-Copolymer) im Handel erhältlichen Produkte sind Beispiele für solche kationischen Polymere,- Dimethyldiallylammoniumsalze polymeric and their copolymers with esters and amides of acrylic acid and methacrylic acid. Under the names Merquat ® 100 (Poly (dimethyldiallylammonium chloride)) and Merquat ® 550 (dimethyldiallylammonium chloride Acrylamide copolymer) commercially available products are examples of such cationic polymers,
Copolymere des Vinylpyrrolidons mit quaternierten Derivaten des Dialkylaminoalkylacrylats und -methacrylats, wie beispielsweise mit Diethylsulfat quaternierte Vinylpyrrolidon- Dimethylaminoethylmethacrylat-Copolymere. Solche Verbindungen sind unter den Bezeichnungen Gafquat®734 und Gafquat®755 im Handel erhältlich,Copolymers of vinylpyrrolidone with quaternized derivatives of dialkylaminoalkyl acrylate and methacrylate, such as diethyl sulfate quaternized vinylpyrrolidone-dimethylaminoethyl methacrylate copolymers. Such compounds are sold under the names Gafquat ® 734 and Gafquat ® 755 commercially,
Vinylpyrrolidon-Vinylimidazoliummethochlorid-Copolymere, wie sie unter den Bezeichnungen Luviquat® FC 370, FC 550, FC 905 und HM 552 angeboten werden, quaternierter Polyvinylalkohol,Vinylpyrrolidone-vinyl imidazolium copolymers, such as those offered under the names Luviquat ® FC 370, FC 550, FC 905 and HM 552, quaternized polyvinyl alcohol,
sowie die unter den Bezeichnungenas well as those under the designations
Polyquaternium 2 (z.B. Mirapol® A-15 der Firma Rhodia), Polyquaternium 17, Polyquaternium 18 undPolyquaternium 2 (e.g., Mirapol® A-15 from Rhodia), Polyquaternium 17, Polyquaternium 18 and
Polyquaternium 27 bekannten Polymeren mit quartären Stickstoffatomen in der Polymerhauptkette.Polyquaternium 27 known polymers with quaternary nitrogen atoms in the polymer main chain.
Gleichfalls als kationische Polymere eingesetzt werden können die unter den Bezeichnungen Polyquaternium-24 (Handelsprodukt z. B. Quatrisoft® LM 200), bekannten Polymere. Ebenfalls erfindungsgemäß verwendbar sind die Copolymere des Vinylpyrrolidons, wie sie als Handelsprodukte Copolymer 845 (Hersteller: ISP), Gaffix® VC 713 (Hersteller: ISP), Gafquat®ASCP 1011 , Gafquat®HS 110, Luviquat®8155 und Luviquat® MS 370 erhältlich sind.Can be used as cationic polymers are sold under the names Polyquaternium-24 (commercial product z. B. Quatrisoft ® LM 200), known polymers. , Gaffix ® VC 713 (manufactured by ISP): Also according to the invention can be used the copolymers of vinylpyrrolidone, such as the commercial products Copolymer 845 (ISP manufacturer) are Gafquat ® ASCP 1011, Gafquat ® HS 110, Luviquat ® 8155 and Luviquat ® MS 370 available are.
Weitere erfindungsgemäße kationische Polymere sind die sogenannten „temporär kationischen" Polymere. Diese Polymere enthalten üblicherweise eine Aminogruppe, die bei bestimmten pH- Werten als quartäre Ammoniumgruppe und somit kationisch vorliegt. Bevorzugt sind beispielsweise Chitosan und dessen Derivate, wie sie beispielsweise unter den Handelsbezeichnungen Hydagen® CMF, Hydagen® HCMF, Kytamer® PC und Chitolam® NB/101 im Handel frei verfügbar sind. Chitosane sind deacetylierte Chitine, die in unterschiedlichen Deacetylierungsgraden und unterschiedlichen Abbaugraden (Molekulargewichten) im Handel erhältlich sind. Ihre Herstellung ist z.B. in DE 44 40 625 A1 und in DE 1 95 03 465 A1 beschrieben.Other cationic polymers of the present invention, the "temporarily cationic" polymers. These polymers are usually contain an amino group present at certain pH values as a quaternary ammonium group and hence cationic. For example, chitosan and its derivatives are preferred, such as for example, under the trade designations Hydagen ® CMF, Hydagen® ® HCMF, Kytamer ® PC and Chitolam ® NB / 101 are freely available commercially. chitosans are deacetylated, in different degrees of deacetylation and varying degrees of degradation (molecular weights) are commercially available. Their preparation is, for example, in DE 44 40 625 A1 and described in DE 1 95 03 465 A1.
Besonders gut geeignete Chitosane weisen einen Deacetylierungsgrad von wenigstens 80 % und ein Molekulargewicht von 5 105 bis 5 106 (g/mol) auf. Zur Herstellung erfindungsgemäßer Zubereitungen muß das Chitosan in die Salzform überführt werden. Dies kann durch Auflösen in verdünnten wäßrigen Säuren erfolgen. Als Säuren sind sowohl Mineralsäuren wie z.B. Salzsäure, Schwefelsäure und Phosphorsäure als auch organische Säuren, z.B. niedermolekulare Carbonsäuren, Polycarbonsäuren und Hydroxycarbonsäuren geeignet. Weiterhin können auch höhermolekulare Alkylsulfonsäuren oder Alkylschwefelsäuren oder Organophosphorsäuren verwendet werden, soweit diese die erforderliche physiologische Verträglichkeit aufweisen. Geeignete Säuren zur Überführung des Chitosans in die Salzform sind z.B. Essigsäure, Glycolsäure, Weinsäure, Apfelsäure, Citronensäure, Milchsäure, 2-Pyrrolidinon-5-carbonsäure, Benzoesäure oder Salicylsäure. Bevorzugt werden niedermolekulare Hydroxycarbonsäuren wie z.B. Glycolsäure oder Milchsäure verwendet.Particularly suitable chitosans have a degree of deacetylation of at least 80% and a molecular weight of 5 10 5 to 5 10 6 (g / mol). For the production of preparations according to the invention, the chitosan must be converted into the salt form. This can be done by dissolving in dilute aqueous acids. Suitable acids are both mineral acids such as hydrochloric acid, sulfuric acid and phosphoric acid and organic acids, for example low molecular weight carboxylic acids, polycarboxylic acids and hydroxycarboxylic acids. Furthermore, higher molecular weight alkyl sulfonic acids or alkyl sulfuric acids or organophosphoric acids can be used, provided that they have the required physiological compatibility. Suitable acids for converting the chitosan into the salt form are, for example, acetic acid, glycolic acid, tartaric acid, malic acid, citric acid, lactic acid, 2-pyrrolidinone-5-carboxylic acid, benzoic acid or salicylic acid. Preference is given to using low molecular weight hydroxycarboxylic acids, for example glycolic acid or lactic acid.
Unter dem Begriff amphotere Polymere werden solche Polymere verstanden, die im Molekül sowohl freie Aminogruppen als auch freie -COOH- oder SO3H-Gruppen enthalten und zur Ausbildung innerer Salze befähigt sind, zwitterionische Polymere, die im Molekül quartäre Ammoniumgruppen und -COO -Gruppen oder -SO3 "-Gruppen enthalten, sowieThe term amphoteric polymers is understood as meaning those polymers which contain both free amino groups and free -COOH or SO 3 H groups in the molecule and are capable of forming internal salts, zwitterionic polymers having in the molecule quaternary ammonium groups and -COO groups or -SO 3 " groups, as well as
Polymere, die -COOH-Gruppen oder SO3H-Gruppen und quartäre Ammoniumgruppen enthalten.Polymers containing -COOH groups or SO 3 H groups and quaternary ammonium groups.
Die in der Aufzählung genannten Polymere mit quartären Ammoniumgruppen werden erfindungsgemäß bevorzugt als amphotere Polymere eingesetzt.The quaternary ammonium polymers mentioned in the list are preferably used according to the invention as amphoteric polymers.
Ein Beispiel für ein erfindungsgemäß einsetzbares Amphopolymer ist das unter der Bezeichnung Amphomer® erhältliche Acrylharz, das ein Copolymeres aus tert.-Butylaminoethylmethacrylat, N- (1 ,1 ,3,3-Tetramethylbutyl)acrylamid sowie zwei oder mehr Monomeren aus der Gruppe Acrylsäure, Methacrylsäure und deren einfachen Estern darstellt.An example of the present invention amphopolymer suitable is the acrylic resin commercially available as Amphomer ®, which is a copolymer of tert-butylaminoethyl methacrylate, N- (1, 1, 3,3-tetramethylbutyl) -acrylamide and two or more monomers from the group of acrylic acid, Represents methacrylic acid and its simple esters.
Weitere erfindungsgemäß einsetzbare amphotere Polymere sind die in der britischen Offenlegungsschrift 2 104 091 , der europäischen Offenlegungsschrift 47 714, der europäischen Offenlegungsschrift 217 274, der europäischen Offenlegungsschrift 283 817 und der deutschen Offenlegungsschrift 28 17 369 genannten Verbindungen. Erfindungsgemäß bevorzugte amphotere und/oder kationische Polymere sind solche Polymerisate, in denen sich eine kationische Gruppe ableitet von mindestens einem der folgenden Monomere:Further amphoteric polymers which can be used according to the invention are the compounds mentioned in British Patent Application 2,104,091, European Patent Application 47,714, European Offenlegungsschrift 217,274, European Offenlegungsschrift 283,817 and German Offenlegungsschrift 28 17 369. Amphoteric and / or cationic polymers preferred according to the invention are those polymers in which a cationic group is derived from at least one of the following monomers:
Monomeren mit quartären Ammoniumgruppen der allgemeinen Formel (M1 ),Monomers having quaternary ammonium groups of the general formula (M1),
R1-CH=CR2-CO-Z-(CnH2n)-N(+)R3R4R5 A( ) (M 1 )R 1 -CH = CR 2 -CO-Z- (C n H 2n ) -N (+) R 3 R 4 R 5 A () (M 1)
in der R1 und R2 unabhängig voneinander stehen für Wasserstoff oder eine Methylgruppe und R3, R4 und R5 unabhängig voneinander für Alkylgruppen mit 1 bis 4 Kohlenstoff- Atomen, Z eine NH-Gruppe oder ein Sauerstoffatom, n eine ganze Zahl von 2 bis 5 und A( ) das Anion einer organischen oder anorganischen Säure ist,in which R 1 and R 2 independently of one another are hydrogen or a methyl group and R 3 , R 4 and R 5 independently of one another are alkyl groups having 1 to 4 carbon atoms, Z is an NH group or an oxygen atom, n is an integer of 2 to 5 and A () is the anion of an organic or inorganic acid,
Monomeren mit quartären Ammoniumgruppen der allgemeinen Formel (M2),Monomers having quaternary ammonium groups of the general formula (M2),
Figure imgf000076_0001
worin R6 und R7 unabhängig voneinander stehen für eine (C1 bis C4)-Alkylgruppe, insbesondere für eine Methylgruppe und A" das Anion einer organischen oder anorganischen Säure ist.
Figure imgf000076_0001
wherein R 6 and R 7 are independently a (C 1 to C 4 ) alkyl group, in particular a methyl group and A "is the anion of an organic or inorganic acid.
Wenn sich eine kationische Gruppe der amphoteren bzw. kationischen Polymerisate vom Monomer der Formel (M 1 ) ableitet, stehen die Reste R3, R4 und R5 in Formel (M 1 ) bevorzugt für Methylgruppen, Z ist bevorzugt eine NH-Gruppe und A( ) bedeutet bevorzugt ein Halogenid-, Methoxysulfat- oder Ethoxysulfat-Ion. Besonders bevorzugt ist es in diesem Falle Acryl- amidopropyl-trimethyl-ammoniumchlorid als Monomer (M1 ) zu verwenden.When a cationic group of the amphoteric or cationic polymers is derived from the monomer of the formula (M 1), the radicals R 3 , R 4 and R 5 in the formula (M 1) are preferably methyl groups, Z is preferably an NH group and A () preferably denotes a halide, methoxysulfate or ethoxysulfate ion. It is particularly preferred in this case to use acrylamidopropyltrimethylammonium chloride as the monomer (M1).
In Formel (M2) steht A' bevorzugt für ein Halogenidion, insbesondere für Chlorid oder Bromid.In formula (M2), A 'is preferably a halide ion, in particular chloride or bromide.
Bevorzugte erfindungsgemäße amphotere Polymere sind Polymere, deren anionische Gruppe sich von mindestens einem Monomeren der Formel (M3) ableitetPreferred amphoteric polymers according to the invention are polymers whose anionic group is derived from at least one monomer of the formula (M3)
monomeren Carbonsäuren der allgemeinen Formel (M3) bzw. deren Salze mit einer organischen oder anorganischen Säure, R8-CH=CR9-COOH (M3)monomeric carboxylic acids of the general formula (M3) or their salts with an organic or inorganic acid, R 8 -CH = CR 9 -COOH (M 3 )
in denen R8 und R9 unabhängig voneinander Wasserstoff oder Methylgruppen sind.in which R 8 and R 9 are independently hydrogen or methyl groups.
Als Monomeres (M3) wird für die erfindungsgemäß bevorzugten amphoteren Polymerisate Acrylsäure verwendet.As the monomer (M3), acrylic acid is used for the amphoteric polymers preferred according to the invention.
Besonders bevorzugte amphotere Polymere sind Copolymere, aus mindestens einem Monomer (M 1 ) bzw. (M2) mit dem Momomer (M3), insbesondere Copolymere aus den Monomeren (M2) und (M3). Erfindungsgemäß ganz besonders bevorzugt verwendete amphotere Polymere sind Copolymerisate aus Diallyl-dimethylammoniumchlorid und Acrylsäure. Diese Copolymerisate werden unter der INCI-Bezeichnung Polyquaternium-22 unter anderem mit dem Handelsnamen Merquat® 280 (Nalco) vertrieben.Particularly preferred amphoteric polymers are copolymers of at least one monomer (M 1) or (M2) with the monomer (M3), in particular copolymers of the monomers (M2) and (M3). Very particularly preferably used according to the invention amphoteric polymers are copolymers of diallyl dimethyl ammonium chloride and acrylic acid. These copolymers are sold under the INCI name Polyquaternium-22, among others, with the trade name Merquat ® 280 (Nalco).
Darüber hinaus können die erfindungsgemäßen amphoteren Polymere neben einem Monomer (M1 ) oder M(2) und einem Monomer (M3) zusätzlich ein Monomer (M4)In addition, in addition to a monomer (M1) or M (2) and a monomer (M3), the amphoteric polymers according to the invention may additionally comprise a monomer (M4)
monomere Carbonsäureamide der allgemeinen Formel (M4),monomeric carboxamides of the general formula (M4),
R10-CH=CR11-C-N-R12 (M4) Il H O in denen R10 und R11 unabhängig voneinander Wasserstoff oder Methylgruppen sind und R12 für ein Wasserstoffatom oder eine (C1- bis C8)-Alkylgruppe steht, enthalten.R 10 -CH = CR 11 -CNR 12 (M 4) IIHO in which R 10 and R 11 are independently hydrogen or methyl groups and R 12 is a hydrogen atom or a (C 1 to C 8 ) alkyl group.
Erfindungsgemäß ganz besonders bevorzugt verwendete amphotere Polymere auf Basis eines Comonomers (M4) sind Terpolymere aus Diallyldimethylammoniumchlorid, Acrylamid und Acrylsäure. Diese Copolymerisate werden unter der INCI-Bezeichnung Polyquaternium-39 unter anderem mit dem Handelsnamen Merquat® Plus 3330 (Nalco) vertrieben.Very particularly preferably used according to the invention comonomer based on a comonomer (M4) are terpolymers of diallyldimethylammonium chloride, acrylamide and acrylic acid. These copolymers are marketed ® under the INCI name Polyquaternium-39, among others, with the trade name Merquat Plus 3330 (Nalco).
Besonders bevorzugt eingesetzte amphotere Polymere sind solche Polymerisate, die sich im wesentlichen zusammensetzen ausParticularly preferred amphoteric polymers are those polymers which are composed essentially
(i) Monomeren mit quartären Ammoniumgruppen der allgemeinen Formel (M1 ), R1-CH=CR2-CO-Z-(CnH2n)-N(+)R2R3R4 A( ) (M 1 ) in der R1 und R2 unabhängig voneinander stehen für Wasserstoff oder eine Methylgruppe und R3, R4und R5 unabhängig voneinander für Alkylgruppen mit 1 bis 4 Kohlenstoff-Atomen, Z eine NH-Gruppe oder ein Sauerstoffatom, n eine ganze Zahl von 2 bis 5 und A( ) das(i) Monomers having quaternary ammonium groups of the general formula (M1), R 1 -CH = CR 2 -CO-Z- (C n H 2n ) -N (+) R 2 R 3 R 4 A () (M 1) in which R 1 and R 2 independently of one another represent hydrogen or a methyl group and R 3 , R 4 and R 5 independently of one another represent alkyl groups having 1 to 4 carbon atoms, Z is an NH group or an oxygen atom, n is an integer from 2 to 5 and A () is the
Anion einer organischen oder anorganischen Säure ist und (ii) monomeren Carbonsäuren der allgemeinen Formel (M3),Anion of an organic or inorganic acid and (ii) monomeric carboxylic acids of the general formula (M3),
R8-CH=CR9-COOH (M3) in denen R0 und R9 unabhängig voneinander Wasserstoff oder Methylgruppen sind.R 8 -CH = CR 9 -COOH (M3) in which R 0 and R 9 are independently hydrogen or methyl groups.
Bezüglich der Einzelheiten der Herstellung dieser besonders bevorzugten Polymerisate wird ausdrücklich auf den Inhalt der deutschen Offenlegungsschrift 39 29 973 Bezug genommen. Ganz besonders bevorzugt sind solche Polymerisate, bei denen Monomere des Typs (i) eingesetzt werden, bei denen R3, R4 und R5 Methylgruppen sind, Z eine NH-Gruppe und A( ) ein Halogenid-, Methoxysulfat- oder Ethoxysulfat-Ion ist; Acrylamidopropyl-trimethyl- ammoniumchlorid ist ein besonders bevorzugtes Monomeres (i). Als Monomeres (ii) für die genannten Polymerisate wird bevorzugt Acrylsäure verwendet.With regard to the details of the preparation of these particularly preferred polymers is expressly made to the content of German Patent Application 39 29 973 reference. Very particular preference is given to those polymers in which monomers of the type (i) are used in which R 3 , R 4 and R 5 are methyl groups, Z is an NH group and A () is a halide, methoxysulfate or ethoxysulfate ion is; Acrylamidopropyl trimethyl ammonium chloride is a particularly preferred monomer (i). As the monomer (ii) for the polymers mentioned, acrylic acid is preferably used.
Die amphoteren Polymere können generell sowohl direkt als auch in Salzform, die durch Neutralisation der Polymerisate, beispielsweise mit einem Alkalihydroxid, erhalten wird, erfindungsgemäß eingesetzt werden.The amphoteric polymers can generally be used both directly and in salt form, which is obtained by neutralization of the polymers, for example with an alkali metal hydroxide, according to the invention.
Weiterhin ist es erfindungsgemäß bevorzugt, den Mitteln neben dem besagten Lumineszenzpigment zusätzlich mindestens ein filmbildendes Polymer zuzusetzen. Die erfindungsgemäßen Effekte werden auf diese Weise verbessert und sind unter anderem langanhaltender.Furthermore, it is preferred according to the invention to additionally add at least one film-forming polymer to the compositions in addition to the said luminescent pigment. The effects of the invention are improved in this way and are inter alia longer lasting.
Unter filmbildenden Polymeren sind solche Polymere zu verstehen, welche nach der Applikation in einem flüssigen Träger beim Trocknen einen kontinuierlichen Film auf dem Substrat, insbesondere auf der Haut, dem Haar oder den Fingernägeln hinterlassen. Derartige Filmbildner können in den unterschiedlichsten Darreichungsformen bzw. Produktkategorien der erfindungsgemäßen Mittels wie beispielsweise Gesichtsmasken, Make-up, Haarfestigern, Haarsprays, Haargelen, Haarfärbemitteln, Haarwachsen, Haarkuren, Shampoos oder Nagellacken verwendet werden.Film-forming polymers are to be understood as meaning those polymers which, after application in a liquid carrier, leave a continuous film on the substrate during drying, in particular on the skin, hair or fingernails. Such film formers can be used in a wide variety of administration forms or product categories of the agent according to the invention, such as, for example, face masks, make-up, hair fixatives, hair sprays, hair gels, hair dyes, hair waxes, hair treatments, shampoos or nail varnishes.
Beispiele für gebräuchliche Filmbildner sind Abies Balsamea (Balsam Canada) Resin, Acetylenediurea/Formaldehyde/Tosylamide Crosspolymer, Acrylamide/Ammonium Acrylate Copolymer, Acrylamides Copolymer, Acrylamides/DMAPA Acrylates/Methoxy PEG Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylamide/Sodium Acrylate Copolymer, Acrylamidopropyltrimoniunn Chloride/Acrylamide Copolymer, Acrylamidopropyltrimoniunn Chloride/Acrylates Copolymer, Acrylates/Acetoacetoxyethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates/Acrylamide Copolymer, Acrylates/Ammonium Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates/Behenyl Methacrylate/Dimethicone Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates/t-Butylacrylamide Copolymer, Acrylates Copolymer, Acrylates/Diacetoneacrylamide Copolymer, Acrylates/Dimethicone Copolymer,Examples of common film formers are Abies Balsamea (Balsam Canada) Resin, Acetylenediurea / Formaldehyde / Tosylamide Crosspolymer, Acrylamide / Ammonium Acrylate Copolymer, Acrylamide Copolymer, Acrylamide / DMAPA Acrylate / Methoxy PEG Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylamide / Sodium Acrylate Copolymer, Acrylamidopropyltrimoniunn Chloride / Acrylamide Copolymer, Acrylamidopropyltrimoniunn Chloride / Acrylates Copolymer, Acrylates / Acetoacetoxyethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates / Acrylamide Copolymer, Acrylates / Ammonium Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates / Behenyl Methacrylates / Dimethicone Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates / t- Butylacrylamide copolymer, acrylate copolymer, acrylates / diacetone acrylamide copolymer, acrylates / dimethicone copolymer,
Acrylates/Dimethicone Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates/Dimethiconol Acrylate Copolymer, Acrylates/Dimethylaminoethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates/Ethylhexyl Acrylate Copolymer, Acrylates/Ethylhexyl Acrylate/HEMA/Styrene Copolymer, Acrylates/Ethylhexyl Acrylate/Styrene Copolymer, Acrylates/Hydroxyesters Acrylates Copolymer, Acrylates/Lauryl Acrylate/Stearyl Acrylate/Ethylamine Oxide Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates/Octylacrylamide Copolymer, Acrylates/Propyl Trimethicone Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates/Stearyl Acrylate/Dimethicone Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates/Stearyl Acrylate/Ethylamine Oxide Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates/TDI/Trimethylolpropane Copolymer, Acrylates/VA Copolymer, Acrylates/VA Crosspolymer, Acrylates/VP Copolymer, Acrylates/VP/DimethylaminoethylAcrylates / Dimethicone Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates / Dimethiconol Acrylate Copolymer, Acrylates / Dimethylaminoethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates / Ethylhexyl Acrylate Copolymer, Acrylates / Ethylhexyl Acrylates / HEMA / Styrene Copolymer, Acrylates / Ethylhexyl Acrylates / Styrene Copolymer, Acrylates / Hydroxyesters Acrylates Copolymer, Acrylates / Lauryl Acrylates / Stearyl Acrylates / Ethylamine Oxides Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates / Octylacrylamide Copolymer, Acrylates / Propyl Trimethicone Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates / Stearyl Acrylates / Dimethicone Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates / Stearyl Acrylates / Ethylamine Oxide Methacrylate Copolymer, Acrylates / TDI / Trimethylolpropane Copolymer, Acrylates / VA Copolymer, Acrylates / VA Crosspolymer, Acrylates / VP Copolymer, Acrylates / VP / Dimethylaminoethyl
Methacrylate/Diacetone Acrylamide/Hydroxypropyl Acrylate Copolymer, Acrylic Acid/Acrylonitrogens Copolymer, Adipic Acid/CHDM/MA/Neopentyl Glycol/Trimellitic Anhydride Copolymer, Adipic Acid/Diethylene Glycol/Glycerin Crosspolymer, Adipic Acid/Diethylenetriamine Copolymer, Adipic Acid/Dilinoleic Acid/Hexylene Glycol Copolymer, Adipic Acid/Dimethylaminohydroxypropyl Diethylenetriamine Copolymer, Adipic Acid/Epoxypropyl Diethylenetriamine Copolymer, Adipic Acid/Fumaric Acid/Phthalic Acid/Tricyclodecane Dimethanol Copolymer, Adipic Acid/Isophthalic Acid/Neopentyl Glycol/Trimethylolpropane Copolymer, Adipic Acid/Neopentyl Glycol/Trimellitic Anhydride Copolymer, Adipic Acid/PPG-10 Copolymer, Albumen, AIIyI Stearate/VA Copolymer, Aloe Barbadensis Leaf Polysaccharides, Aminoethylacrylate Phosphate/Acrylates Copolymer, Aminoethylpropanediol-Methacrylates / Diacetones Acrylamide / Hydroxypropyl Acrylate Copolymer, Acrylic Acid / Acrylonitrogen Copolymer, Adipic Acid / CHDM / MA / Neopentyl Glycol / Trimellitic Anhydride Copolymer, Adipic Acid / Diethylene Glycol / Glycerol Crosspolymer, Adipic Acid / Diethylenetriamine Copolymer, Adipic Acid / Dilinoleic Acid / Hexylene glycol copolymer, adipic acid / dimethylaminohydroxypropyl diethylenetriamine copolymer, adipic acid / epoxypropyl diethylenetriamine copolymer, adipic acid / fumaric acid / phthalic acid / tricyclodecane dimethanol copolymer, adipic acid / isophthalic acid / neopentyl glycol / trimethylolpropane copolymer, adipic acid / neopentyl glycol / trimellitic Anhydride Copolymer, Adipic Acid / PPG-10 Copolymer, Albumen, AIIyI Stearate / VA Copolymer, Aloe Barbadensis Leaf Polysaccharide, Aminoethyl Acrylate Phosphate / Acrylate Copolymer, Aminoethylpropanediol
Acrylates/Acrylamide Copolymer, Aminoethylpropanediol-AMPD-Acrylates/Diacetoneacrylamide Copolymer, Ammonium Acrylates/Acrylonitrogens Copolymer, Ammonium Acrylates Copolymer, Ammonium Alginate, Ammonium Polyacrylate, Ammonium Styrene/Acrylates Copolymer, Ammonium VA/Acrylates Copolymer, AMPD-Acrylates/Diacetoneacrylamide Copolymer, AMP- Acrylates/Allyl Methacrylate Copolymer, AMP-Acrylates/C1-18 Alkyl Acrylates/C1-8 Alkyl Acrylamide Copolymer, AMP-Acrylates Copolymer, AMP-Acrylates/Diacetoneacrylamide Copolymer, AMP-Acrylates/Dimethylaminoethylmethacrylate Copolymer, Astragalus Gummifer Gum, Avena Sativa (Oat) Kernel Protein, Behenyl Methacrylate/Perfluorooctylethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Benzoguanamine/Formaldehyde/Melamine Crosspolymer, Benzoic Acid/Phthalic Anhydride/Pentaerythritol/Neopentyl Glycol/Palmitic Acid Copolymer, Bis-Hydrogenated Tallow Amine Dilinoleic Acid/Ethylenediamine Copolymer, Bis-PEG-15 Dimethicone/IPDI Copolymer, Bis-PPG-15 Dimethicone/IPDI Copolymer, Bis-Stearyl Dimethicone, Brassica Campestris/Aleurites Fordi OiI Copolymer, Butadiene/Acrylonitrile Copolymer, 1 ,4- Butandiol/Succinic Acid/Adipic Acid/HDI Copolymer, Butoxy Chitosan, Butyl Acrylate Crosspolymer, Butyl Acrylate/Ethylhexyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Butyl Acrylate/Hydroxyethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Butyl Acrylate/Hydroxypropyl Dimethicone Acrylate Copolymer, Butyl Acrylate/Styrene Copolymer, Butylated Polyoxymethylene Urea, Butylated PVP, Butyl Benzoic Acid/Phthalic Anhydride/Trimethylolethane Copolymer, Butylene/Ethylene/Propylene Copolymer, Butyl Ester of Ethylene/MA Copolymer, Butyl Ester of PVM/MA Copolymer, Butylethylpropanediol Dimer Dilinoleate, Butyl Methacrylate/DMAPA Acrylates/Vinylacetamide Crosspolymer, C23-43 Acid Pentaerythritol Tetraester, Calcium Carboxymethyl Cellulose, Calcium Carrageenan, Calcium Potassium Carbomer, Calcium/Sodium PVM/MA Copolymer, C5-6 Alkane/Cycloalkane/Terpene Copolymer, C30-45 Alkyl Dimethicone/Polycyclohexene Oxide Crosspolymer, C1-5 Alkyl Galactomannan, Candelilla Wax Hydrocarbons, Carboxybutyl Chitosan, Carboxymethyl Chitosan, Carboxymethyl Chitosan Succinamide, Carboxymethyl Dextran, Carboxymethyl Hydroxyethylcellulose, Castor Oil/IPDI Copolymer, Cellulose Acetate, Cellulose Acetate Butyrate, Cellulose Acetate Propionate, Cellulose Acetate Propionate Carboxylate, Cellulose Gum, Cetearyl Dimethicone/Vinyl Dimethicone Crosspolymer, Chitosan, Chitosan Adipate, Chitosan Ascorbate, Chitosan Formate, Chitosan Glycolate, Chitosan Lactate, Chitosan PCA, Chitosan Salicylate, Chitosan Succinamide, C5-6 Olefin/C8-10 Naphtha Olefin Copolymer, Collodion, Copaifera Officinalis (Balsam Copaiba) Resin, Copal, Com Starch/Acrylamide/Sodium Acrylate Copolymer, Com Starch Modified, C6-14 Perfluoroalkylethyl Acrylate/HEMA Copolymer, DEA-Styrene/Acrylates/DVB Copolymer, Dibutylhexyl IPDI, Didecyltetradecyl IPDI, Diethylene Glycolamine/Epichlorohydrin/Piperazine Copolymer, Diethylhexyl IPDI,Acrylates / Acrylamide Copolymer, Aminoethylpropanediol-AMPD Acrylates / Diacetone Acrylamide Copolymer, Ammonium Acrylates / Acrylonitrogen Copolymer, Ammonium Acrylates Copolymer, Ammonium Alginates, Ammonium Polyacrylates, Ammonium Styrene / Acrylates Copolymer, Ammonium VA / Acrylates Copolymer, AMPD Acrylates / Diacetone Acrylamide Copolymer, AMP Acrylates / Allyl Methacrylate Copolymer, AMP Acrylates / C1-18 Alkyl Acrylates / C1-8 Alkyl Acrylamide Copolymer, AMP Acrylates Copolymer, AMP Acrylates / Diacetone Acrylamide Copolymer, AMP Acrylates / Dimethylaminoethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Astragalus Gummifer Gum, Avena Sativa ( Oat) Kernel Protein, Behenyl Methacrylate / Perfluorooctylethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Benzoguanamine / Formaldehyde / Melamine Crosspolymer, Benzoic Acid / Phthalic Anhydride / Pentaerythritol / Neopentyl Glycol / Palmitic Acid Copolymer, Bis-Hydrogenated Tallow Amine Dilinoleic Acid / Ethylenediamine Copolymer, Bis-PEG-15 Dimethicone / IPDI Copolymer, Bis-PPG-15 Dimethicone / IPDI Copolymer, Bis-Stearyl Dimethicone, Brassica Campestris / Aleurites Fordi OiI Copolymer, Butadiene / Acrylonitrile Copolymer, 1, 4-Butanediol / Succinic Acid / Adipic Acid / HDI Copolymer, Butoxy Chitosan, Butyl Acrylate Crosspolymer, Butyl Acrylate / Ethylhexyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Butyl Acrylate / Hydroxyethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Butyl Acrylate / Hydroxypropyl Dimethicone Acrylate Copolymer, Butyl Acrylate / Styrene Copolymer, Butylated Polyoxymethylene Urea, Butylated PVP, Butyl Benzoic Acid / Phthalic Anhydride / Trimethylolethane Copolymer, Butylene / Ethylene / Propylene Copolymer, Butyl Ester of Ethylene / MA Copolymer, Butyl Ester of PVM / MA Copolymer, Butylethylpropanediol Dimer Dilinoleate, Butyl Methacrylate / DMAPA Acrylates / Vinylacetamide Crosspolymer, C23- 43 Acid Pentaerythritol Tetraester, Calcium Carboxymethyl Cellulose, Calcium Carrageenan, Calcium Potassium Carbomer, Calcium / So PVM / MA copolymer, C5-6 alkanes / cycloalkanes / terpene copolymer, C30-45 alkyl dimethicones / polycyclohexenes oxides crosspolymer, C1-5 alkyl galactomannan, candelilla wax hydrocarbons, carboxybutyl chitosan, carboxymethyl chitosan, carboxymethyl chitosan succinamides, carboxymethyl dextran, carboxymethyl Hydroxyethylcellulose, Castor Oil / IPDI Copolymer, Cellulose Acetate, Cellulose Acetate Butyrate, Cellulose Acetate Propionate, Cellulose Acetate Propionate Carboxylate, Cellulose Gum, Cetearyl Dimethicone / Vinyl Dimethicone Crosspolymer, Chitosan, Chitosan Adipate, Chitosan Ascorbate, Chitosan Formats, Chitosan Glycolate, Chitosan Lactate , Chitosan PCA, Chitosan Salicylates, Chitosan Succinamide, C5-6 Olefin / C8-10 Naphtha Olefin Copolymer, Collodion, Copaifera Officinalis (Balsam Copaiba) Resin, Copal, Com Starch / Acrylamide / Sodium Acrylate Copolymer, Com Starch Modified, C6-14 Perfluoroalkylethyl acrylate / HEMA copolymer, DEA-styrene / acrylates / DVB copolymer, dibutylhexyl IPDI, didecyltetradec yl IPDI, diethylene glycolamine / epichlorohydrin / piperazine copolymer, diethylhexyl IPDI,
Diglycol/CHDM/lsophthalates/SIP Copolymer, Diglycol/lsophthalates/SIP Copolymer, Dihydroxyethyl Tallowamine/IPDI Copolymer, Dilinoleic Acid/Glycol Copolymer, Dilinoleic Acid/Sebacic Acid/Piperazine/Ethylenediamine Copolymer, Dilinoleyl Alcohol/IPDI Copolymer, Dimethicone PEG-8 Polyacrylate, Dimethicone/Vinyltrimethylsiloxysilicate Crosspolymer, Dimethiconol/IPDI Copolymer, Dimethylamine/Ethylenediamine/Epichlorohydrin Copolymer, Dioctyldecyl IPDI, Dioctyldodecyl IPDI, Di-PPG-3 Myristyl Ether Adipate, Divinyldimethicone/Dimethicone Copolymer, Divinyldimethicone/Dimethicone Crosspolymer, DMAPA Acrylates/Acrylic Acid/Acrylonitrogens Copolymer, Dodecanedioic Acid/Cetearyl Alcohol/Glycol Copolymer, Ethylcellulose, Ethylene/Acrylic Acid Copolymer, Ethylene/Acrylic Acid/VA Copolymer, Ethylene/Calcium Acrylate Copolymer, Ethylene/MA Copolymer, Ethylene/Magnesium Acrylate Copolymer, Ethylene/Methacrylate Copolymer, Ethylene/Octene Copolymer, Ethylene/Propylene Copolymer, Ethylene/Sodium Acrylate Copolymer, Ethylene/VA Copolymer, Ethylene/Zinc Acrylate Copolymer, Ethyl Ester of PVM/MA Copolymer, Euphorbia Cerifera (Candelilla) Wax, Euphorbia Cerifera (Candelilla) Wax Extract, Fibroin/PEG-40/Sodium Acrylate Copolymer, Flexible Collodion, Formaldehyde/Melamine/Tosylamide Copolymer, Galactoarabinan, Glycereth-7 Hydroxystearate/IPDI Copolymer, Glycerin/MA/Rosin Acid Copolymer, Glycerin/Phthalic Acid Copolymer, Glycerin/Phthalic Acid Copolymer Castorate, Glycerin/Succinic Acid Copolymer Castorate, Glyceryl Diricinoleate/IPDI Copolymer, Glyceryl Polyacrylate, Glyceryl Polymethacrylate, Glyceryl Undecyl Dimethicone, Glycidyl C8-11 Acidate/Glycerin/Phthalic Anhydride Copolymer, Glycol Rosinate, Gutta Percha, Hexylene Glycol/Neopentyl Glycol/Adipic Acid/SMDI/DMPA Copolymer, Hydrogenated Brassica Campestris/Aleurites Fordi OiI Copolymer, Hydrogenated Caprylyl Olive Esters, Hydrogenated Cetyl Olive Esters, Hydrogenated Decyl Olive Esters, Hydrogenated Hexyl Olive Esters, Hydrogenated Lauryl Olive Esters, Hydrogenated Myristyl Olive Esters, Hydrogenated Rosin, Hydrogenated Styrene/Butadiene Copolymer, Hydrolyzed Candelilla Wax, Hydrolyzed Carnauba Wax, Hydrolyzed Chitosan, Hydrolyzed Gadidae Protein, Hydrolyzed Jojoba Esters, Hydrolyzed Sunflower Seed Wax, Hydrolyzed Wheat Protein, Hydrolyzed Wheat Protein/Cystine Bis-PG- Propyl Silanetriol Copolymer, Hydrolyzed Wheat Protein/Dimethicone PEG-7 Acetate, Hydrolyzed Wheat Protein/Dimethicone PEG-7 Phosphate Copolymer, Hydrolyzed Wheat Protein/PVP Crosspolymer, Hydroxybutyl Methylcellulose, Hydroxyethylcellulose, Hydroxyethyl Chitosan, Hydroxyethyl Ethylcellulose, Hydroxyethyl/Methoxyethyl Acrylate/Butyl Acrylate Copolymer, Hydroxyethyl/Methoxyethyl Acrylate Copolymer, Hydroxypropylcellulose, Hydroxypropyl Chitosan, Hydroxypropyl Guar, Hydroxypropyl Methylcellulose, Hydroxypropyl Methylcellulose Acetate/Succinate, Hydroxypropyl Oxidized Starch, Hydroxypropyltrimonium Hyaluronate, Hydroxypropyl Xanthan Gum, Isobutylene/Ethylmaleimide/Hydroxyethylmaleimide Copolymer, Isobutylene/MA Copolymer, Isobutylene/Sodium Maleate Copolymer, Isobutylmethacrylate/Bis- Hydroxypropyl Dimethicone Acrylate Copolymer, Isomerized Linoleic Acid, Isophorone Diamine/Cyclohexylamine/Isophthalic Acid/Azelaic Acid Copolymer,Diglycol / CHDM / isophthalates / SIP Copolymer, Diglycol / Isophthalates / SIP Copolymer, Dihydroxyethyl Tallowamine / IPDI Copolymer, Dilinoleic Acid / Glycol Copolymer, Dilinoleic Acid / Sebacic Acid / Piperazine / Ethylenediamine Copolymer, Dilinoleyl Alcohol / IPDI Copolymer, Dimethicone PEG-8 Polyacrylates , Dimethicone / Vinyltrimethylsiloxysilicate Crosspolymer, Dimethiconol / IPDI Copolymer, Dimethylamine / Ethylene Diamine / Epichlorohydrin Copolymer, Dioctyldecyl IPDI, Dioctyldodecyl IPDI, Di-PPG-3 Myristyl Ether Adipate, Divinyl Dimethicone / Dimethicone Copolymer, Divinyl Dimethicone / Dimethicone Crosspolymer, DMAPA Acrylates / Acrylic Acid / Acrylonitrogens Copolymer, Dodecanedioic Acid / Cetearyl Alcohol / Glycol Copolymer, Ethyl Cellulose, Ethylene / Acrylic Acid Copolymer, Ethylene / Acrylic Acid / VA Copolymer, Ethylene / Calcium Acrylate Copolymer, Ethylene / MA Copolymer, Ethylene / Magnesium Acrylate Copolymer, Ethylene / Methacrylate Copolymer, Ethylene / octenes Copolymer, Ethylene / Propylene Copolymer, Ethylene / Sodium Acrylate Copolymer, Ethylene / VA Copolymer, Ethylene / Zinc Acrylate Copolymer, Ethyl Ester of PVM / MA Copolymer, Euphorbia Cerifera (Candelilla) Wax, Euphorbia Cerifera (Candelilla) Wax Extract, Fibroin / PEG -40 / Sodium Acrylate Copolymer, Collodion Flexible, Formaldehyde / Melamine / Tosylamide Copolymer, Galactoarabinan, Glycereth-7 Hydroxystearate / IPDI Copolymer, Glycerol / MA / Rosin Acid Copolymer, Glycerol / Phthalic Acid Copolymer, Glycerol / Phthalic Acid Copolymer Castorate, Glycerin / Succinic Acid Copolymer Castorate, Glyceryl Diricinoleate / IPDI Copolymer, Glyceryl Polyacrylate, Glyceryl Polymethacrylate, Glyceryl Undecyl Dimethicone, Glycidyl C8-11 Acidate / Glycerol / Phthalic Anhydride Copolymer, Glycol Rosinate, Gutta Percha, Hexylene Glycol / Neopentyl Glycol / Adipic Acid / SMDI / DMPA Copolymer, Hydrogenated Brassica Campestris / Aleurites Fordi OiI Copolymer, Hydrogenated Caprylyl Olive Esters, Hydrogenated Cetyl Olive Esters, Hydrogenated Decy Olive Esters, Hydrogenated Hexyl Olive Esters, Hydrogenated Lauryl Olive Esters, Hydrogenated Myristyl Olive Esters, Hydrogenated Rosin, Hydrogenated Styrene / Butadiene Copolymer, Hydrolyzed Candelilla Wax, Hydrolyzed Carnauba Wax, Hydrolyzed Chitosan, Hydrolyzed Gadidae Protein, Hydrolyzed Jojoba Esters, Hydrolyzed Sunflower Seed Wax, Hydrolyzed Wheat Protein, Hydrolyzed Wheat Protein / Cystine Bis-PG-Propyl Silanetriol Copolymer, Hydrolyzed Wheat Protein / Dimethicone PEG-7 Acetate, Hydrolyzed Wheat Protein / Dimethicone PEG-7 Phosphate Copolymer, Hydrolyzed Wheat Protein / PVP Crosspolymer, Hydroxybutyl Methylcellulose, Hydroxyethylcellulose, hydroxyethyl chitosan, hydroxyethyl ethylcellulose, hydroxyethyl / methoxyethyl acrylate / butyl acrylate copolymer, hydroxyethyl / methoxyethyl acrylate copolymer, hydroxypropylcellulose, hydroxypropyl chitosan, hydroxypropyl guar, hydroxypropyl methylcellulose, hydroxypropyl methylcellulose acetate / succinate, hydroxypropyl oxidized starch, hydroxypropylt rimonium Hyaluronate, Hydroxypropyl Xanthan Gum, Isobutylene / Ethylmaleimide / Hydroxyethylmaleimide Copolymer, Isobutylene / MA Copolymer, Isobutylene / Sodium Maleate Copolymer, Isobutylmethacrylate / Bis-Hydroxypropyl Dimethicone Acrylate Copolymer, Isomerized Linoleic Acid, Isophorone Diamine / Cyclohexylamine / Isophthalic Acid / Azelaic Acid Copolymer,
Isophoronediamine/Isophthalic Acid/Pentaerythritol Copolymer, Isophorone Diamine/Isophthalic Acid/Trimethylolpropane Copolymer, Isopropyl Ester of PVM/MA Copolymer, 4,4'- Isopropylidenediphenol/Epichlorohydrin Copolymer, Lauryl Acrylate/VA Copolymer, Lauryl Methacrylate/Glycol Dimethacrylate Crosspolymer, Maltodextrin, Mannan, Melia Azadirachta Conditioned Media/Culture, Methacrylic Acid/Sodium Acrylamidomethyl Propane Sulfonate Copolymer, Methacryloyl Ethyl Betaine/Acrylates Copolymer, Methacryloyl Propyltrimethoxysilane, Methoxypolyoxymethylene Melamine, Methyl Ethylcellulose, Methyl Methacrylate/Acrylonitrile Copolymer, Methyl Methacrylate Crosspolymer, Methyl Methacrylate/Glycol Dimethacrylate Crosspolymer, Myrica Cerifera (Bayberry) Fruit Wax, Myroxylon Balsamum (Balsam ToIu) Resin, Myroxylon Pereirae (Balsam Peru) Resin, Nitrocellulose, Nylon-12/6/66 Copolymer, Octadecene/MA Copolymer,Isophorone Diamine / Isophthalic Acid / Pentaerythritol Copolymer, Isophorone Diamine / Isophthalic Acid / Trimethylolpropane Copolymer, Isopropyl Ester of PVM / MA Copolymer, 4,4'-Isopropylidenediphenol / Epichlorohydrin Copolymer, Lauryl Acrylate / VA Copolymer, Lauryl Methacrylate / Glycol Dimethacrylate Crosspolymer, Maltodextrin, Mannan, Melia Azadirachta Conditioned Media / Culture, Methacrylic Acid / Sodium Acrylamidomethyl Propane Sulfonate Copolymer, Methacryloyl Ethyl Betaine / Acrylate Copolymer, Methacryloyl Propyltrimethoxysilane, Methoxypolyoxymethylene Melamine, Methyl Ethyl Cellulose, Methyl Methacrylate / Acrylonitrile Copolymer, Methyl Methacrylate Crosspolymer, Methyl Methacrylate / Glycol Dimethacrylate Crosspolymer, Myrica Cerifera (Bayberry) Fruit Wax, Myroxylon Balsamum (Balsam ToIu) Resin, Myroxylon Pereirae (Balsam Peru) Resin, Nitrocellulose, Nylon 12/6/66 Copolymer, Octadecenes / MA Copolymer,
Octylacrylamide/Acrylates/Butylaminoethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Oxymethylene/Melamine Copolymer, Palmitic Acid/Pentaerythritol/Stearic Acid/Terephthalic Acid Copolymer, PEG- 150/Decyl Alcohol/SMDI Copolymer, PEG-7 Dimethicone, PEG/PPG-25/25 Dimethicone/Acrylates Copolymer, PEG-150/Stearyl Alcohol/SMDI Copolymer, Pentaerythritol/Terephthalic Acid Copolymer, Pentaerythrityl Cyclohexane Dicarboxylate, Perfluorononylethyl Stearyl Dimethicone, Phenylpropyldimethylsiloxysilicate, Phthalic Acid Denatured With Epoxy Resin Alkyd Resin, Phthalic Anhydride/Adipic Acid/Castor Oil/Neopentyl Glycol/PEG-3/Trimethylolpropane Copolymer, Phthalic Anhydride/Benzoic Acid/Glycerin Copolymer, Phthalic Anhydride/Benzoic Acid/Trimethylolpropane Copolymer, Phthalic Anhydride/Butyl Benzoic Acid/Propylene Glycol Copolymer, Phthalic Anhydride/Glycerin/Glycidyl Decanoate Copolymer, Phthalic Anhydride/Trimellitic Anhydride/Glycols Copolymer, Piperylene/Butene/Pentene Copolymer, Piperylene/Butene/Pentene/Pentadiene Copolymer, Pistacia Lentiscus (Mastic) Gum, Polianthes Tuberosa Extract, Polyacrylamide, Polyacrylamidomethylpropane Sulfonic Acid, Polyacrylate-1 , Polyacrylate-2, Polyacrylate-5, Polyacrylate-6, Polyacrylic Acid, Polyamide-1 , Polybeta-Alanine, Polybeta-Alanine/Glutaric Acid Crosspolymer, Polybutyl Acrylate, Polybutylene Terephthalate, Polychlorotrifluoroethylene, Polydiethyleneglycol Adipate/IPDI Copolymer, Polydimethylaminoethyl Methacrylate, Polyester-1 , Polyester-2, Polyester-3, Polyethylacrylate, Polyethylene, Polyethylene Naphthalate, Polyethylene Terephthalate, Polyethylglutamate, Polyethylmethacrylate, Polyglucuronic Acid, Polyglyceryl-2 Diisostearate/IPDI Copolymer, Polyisobutene, Polylysine, Polymethacrylamide, Polymethacrylamidopropyltrimonium Methosulfate, Polymethacrylic Acid, Polymethyl Acrylate, Polymethylglutamate, Polymethyl Methacrylate, Polyoxyisobutylene/Methylene Urea Copolymer, Polyoxymethylene Melamine, Polypentaerythrityl Terephthalate, Polypentene, Polyperfluoroperhydrophenanthrene, Poly-p-Phenylene Terephthalamide, Polyphosphorylcholine Glycol Acrylate, Polyquaternium-1 , Polyquaternium-2, Polyquaternium-4, Polyquaternium-5, Polyquaternium-6, Polyquaternium-7, Polyquaternium-8, Polyquaternium-9, Polyquaternium-10, Polyquaternium-11 , Polyquaternium-12, Polyquaternium-13, Polyquaternium-14, Polyquaternium- 15, Polyquaternium-16, Polyquaternium-17, Polyquaternium-18, Polyquaternium-19, Polyquaternium-20, Polyquaternium-22, Polyquaternium-24, Polyquaternium-27, Polyquaternium- 28, Polyquaternium-29, Polyquaternium-30, Polyquaternium-31 , Polyquaternium-32, Polyquaternium-33, Polyquaternium-34, Polyquaternium-35, Polyquaternium-36, Polyquaternium- 37, Polyquaternium-39, Polyquaternium-43, Polyquaternium-44, Polyquaternium-45, Polyquaternium-46, Polyquaternium-47, Polyquaternium-48, Polyquaternium-49, Polyquaternium- 50, Polyquaternium-51 , Polyquaternium-56, Polyquaternium-57, Polyquaternium-61 , Polysilicone- 6, Polysilicone-8, Polysilicone-11 , Polysilicone-14, Polystyrene, Polyurethane-1 , Polyurethane-2, Polyurethane-4, Polyurethane-5, Polyurethane-6, Polyurethane-7, Polyurethane-8, Polyurethane- 10, Polyurethane-11 , Polyurethane-12, Polyurethane-13, Polyvinylacetal Diethylaminoacetate, Polyvinyl Acetate, Polyvinyl Alcohol, Polyvinyl Butyral, Polyvinylcaprolactam, Polyvinyl Chloride, Polyvinyl Imidazolinium Acetate, Polyvinyl Isobutyl Ether, Polyvinyl Laurate, Polyvinyl Methyl Ether, Polyvinyl Stearyl Ether, Potassium Acrylates/Acrylamide Copolymer, Potassium Acrylates/C 10-30 Alkyl Acrylate Crosspolymer, Potassium Acrylates/Ethylhexyl Acrylate Copolymer, Potassium Butyl Ester of PVM/MA Copolymer, Potassium Carbomer, Potassium Carrageenan, Potassium Ethyl Ester of PVM/MA Copolymer, PPG-26/HDI Copolymer, PPG- 17/IPDI/DMPA Copolymer, PPG-12/SMDI Copolymer, PPG-7/Succinic Acid Copolymer, PPG- 26/TDI Copolymer, PPG-10 Tocophereth-30, PPG-20 Tocophereth-50, Propylene Glycol Diricinoleate/IPDI Copolymer, Pseudotsuga Menziesii (Balsam Oregon) Resin, Pullulan, PVM/MA Copolymer, PVM/MA Decadiene Crosspolymer, PVP, PVP Montmorillonite, PVP/V A/Itaconic Acid Copolymer, PVP/V A/Vinyl Propionate Copolymer, Quaternium-22, Rhizobian Gum, Rosin, Rubber Latex, Serum Albumin, Shellac, Sodium Acrylates/Acrolein Copolymer, Sodium Acrylates/Acrylonitrogens Copolymer, Sodium Acrylates/C 10-30 Alkyl Acrylates Crosspolymer, Sodium Acrylates Copolymer, Sodium Acrylate/Vinyl Alcohol Copolymer, Sodium Butyl Ester of PVM/MA Copolymer, Sodium Carbomer, Sodium Carboxymethyl Chitin, Sodium Carboxymethyl Starch, Sodium Carrageenan, Sodium C4-12 Olefin/Maleic Acid Copolymer, Sodium DVB/Acrylates Copolymer, Sodium Ethyl Ester of PVM/MA Copolymer, Sodium Isooctylene/MA Copolymer, Sodium MA/Diisobutylene Copolymer, Sodium MA/Vinyl Alcohol Copolymer, Sodium PG-Propyldimethicone Thiosulfate Copolymer, Sodium Polyacrylate, Sodium Polymethacrylate, Sodium Polystyrene Sulfonate, Sodium PVM/MA/Decadiene Crosspolymer, Sodium Styrene/Acrylates Copolymer, Sodium Tauride Acrylates/Acrylic Acid/Acrylonitrogens Copolymer, Starch/Acrylates/Acrylamide Copolymer, Starch Diethylaminoethyl Ether, Stearamidopropyl Dimethicone, Steareth-10 AIIyI Ether/Acrylates Copolymer, Stearoyl Epoxy Resin, Stearyl HDI/PEG-50 Copolymer, Stearyl Methacrylate/Perfluorooctylethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Stearylvinyl Ether/MA Copolymer, Styrax Benzoin Gum, Styrene/Acrylates/Acrylonitrile Copolymer, Styrene/Acrylates/Ammonium Methacrylate Copolymer, Styrene/Acrylates Copolymer, Styrene/Allyl Benzoate Copolymer, Styrene/DVB Crosspolymer, Styrene/Isoprene Copolymer, Styrene/MA Copolymer, Styrene/Methacrylamide/Acrylates Copolymer, Styrene/Methylstyrene/Indene Copolymer, Styrene/VA Copolymer, Styrene/VP Copolymer, Sucrose Benzoate/Sucrose Acetate Isobutyrate/Butyl Benzyl Phthalate Copolymer, Sucrose Benzoate/Sucrose Acetate Isobutyrate/Butyl Benzyl Phthalate/Methyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Sucrose Benzoate/Sucrose Acetate Isobutyrate Copolymer, TEA-Acrylates/Acrylonitrogens Copolymer, TEA-Diricinoleate, TEA-Diricinoleate/IPDI Copolymer, Terephthalic Acid/Isophthalic Acid/Sodium Isophthalic Acid Sulfonate/Glycol Copolymer, Tetrad ecyloctadecy I Behenate, Tetrad ecyloctadecy I Myristate, Tetrad ecyloctadecyl Stearate, Titanium Isostearates, Tosylamide/Epoxy Resin, Tosylamide/Formaldehyde Resin, Tricontanyl PVP, Triethylene Glycol Rosinate, Trimethylol Propane Cyclohexene Dicarboxylate, Trimethylolpropane Triacrylate, Trimethylpentanediol/Isophthalic Acid/Trimellitic Anhydride Copolymer,Octylacrylamide / Acrylates / Butylaminoethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Oxymethylene / Melamine Copolymer, Palmitic Acid / Pentaerythritol / Stearic Acid / Terephthalic Acid Copolymer, PEG-150 / Decyl Alcohol / SMDI Copolymer, PEG-7 Dimethicone, PEG / PPG-25/25 Dimethicone / Acrylates Copolymer, PEG-150 / Stearyl Alcohol / SMDI Copolymer, Pentaerythritol / Terephthalic Acid Copolymer, Pentaerythrityl Cyclohexane Dicarboxylate, Perfluorononylethyl Stearyl Dimethicone, Phenylpropyldimethylsiloxysilicate, Phthalic Acid Denatured With Epoxy Resin Alkyd Resin, Phthalic Anhydride / Adipic Acid / Castor Oil / Neopentyl Glycol / PEG -3 / Trimethylolpropane Copolymer, Phthalic Anhydride / Benzoic Acid / Glycerin Copolymer, Phthalic Anhydride / Benzoic Acid / Trimethylolpropane Copolymer, Phthalic Anhydride / Butyl Benzoic Acid / Propylene Glycol Copolymer, Phthalic Anhydride / Glycerol / Glycidyl Decanoate Copolymer, Phthalic Anhydride / Trimellitic Anhydride / Glycol copolymer, piperylene / butenes / pentenes copolymer, piperylenes / butenes / pentenes / pentadiene e Copolymer, Pistacia Lentiscus (Mastic) Gum, Polianthes Tuberosa Extract, Polyacrylamides, Polyacrylamidomethylpropanes, Sulfonic Acid, Polyacrylates-1, Polyacrylates-2, Polyacrylates-5, Polyacrylates-6, Polyacrylic Acid, Polyamides-1, Polybeta-Alanines, Polybeta-Alanines / Glutaric acid cross polymer, polybutyl acrylate, polybutylene terephthalate, polychlorotrifluoroethylene, polydiethylene glycol adipate / IPDI copolymer, polydimethylaminoethyl methacrylate, polyester-1, polyester-2, polyester-3, polyethylacrylate, polyethylene, polyethylene naphthalate, polyethylene terephthalate, polyethylglutamate, polyethylmethacrylate, polyglucuronic acid , Polyglyceryl-2 diisostearates / IPDI copolymer, polyisobutenes, polylysines, polymethacrylamides, polymethacrylamidopropyltrimonium methosulfates, polymethacrylic acid, polymethyl acrylates, polymethylglutamates, polymethyl methacrylates, polyoxyisobutylenes / methylene urea copolymer, polyoxymethylene melamines, polypentaerythrityl terephthalate, polypentenes, polyper fluoroperhydrophenanthrenes, poly-p-phenylenes terephthalamides, polyphosphorylcholines glycol acrylates, polyquaternium-1, polyquaternium-2, polyquaternium-4, polyquaternium-5, polyquaternium-6, polyquaternium-7, polyquaternium-8, polyquaternium-9, polyquaternium-10, polyquaternium -11, Polyquaternium-12, Polyquaternium-13, Polyquaternium-14, Polyquaternium-15, Polyquaternium-16, Polyquaternium-17, Polyquaternium-18, Polyquaternium-19, Polyquaternium-20, Polyquaternium-22, Polyquaternium-24, Polyquaternium-27 , Polyquaternium-28, Polyquaternium-29, Polyquaternium-30, Polyquaternium-31, Polyquaternium-32, Polyquaternium-33, Polyquaternium-34, Polyquaternium-35, Polyquaternium-36, Polyquaternium-37, Polyquaternium-39, Polyquaternium-43, Polyquaternium -44, Polyquaternium-45, Polyquaternium-46, Polyquaternium-47, Polyquaternium-48, Polyquaternium-49, Polyquaternium-50, Polyquaternium-51, Polyquaternium-56, Polyquaternium-57, Polyquaternium-61, Polysilicone-6, Polysilicone-8, Polysilicone-11, Polysilicone- 14, polystyrenes, polyurethanes-1, polyurethanes-2, polyurethanes-4, polyurethanes-5, polyurethanes-6, polyurethanes-7, polyurethanes-8, polyurethanes-10, polyurethanes-11, polyurethanes-12, polyurethanes-13, polyvinyl acetal, diethylaminoacetates , Polyvinyl Acetate, Polyvinyl Alcohol, Polyvinyl Butyral, Polyvinyl Caprolactam, Polyvinyl Chloride, Polyvinyl Imidazolinium Acetate, Polyvinyl Isobutyl Ether, Polyvinyl Laurate, Polyvinyl Methyl Ether, Polyvinyl Stearyl Ether, Potassium Acrylates / Acrylamide Copolymer, Potassium Acrylates / C 10-30 Alkyl Acrylate Crosspolymer , Potassium Acrylates / Ethylhexyl Acrylate Copolymer, Potassium Butyl Ester of PVM / MA Copolymer, Potassium Carbomer, Potassium Carrageenan, Potassium Ethyl Ester of PVM / MA Copolymer, PPG-26 / HDI Copolymer , PPG-17 / IPDI / DMPA Copolymer, PPG-12 / SMDI Copolymer, PPG-7 / Succinic Acid Copolymer, PPG-26 / TDI Copolymer, PPG-10 Tocophereth-30, PPG-20 Tocophereth-50, Propylene Glycol Diricinoleate / IPDI Copolymer, Pseudotsuga Menziesii (Balsam Oregon) Resin, Pullulan, PVM / MA Copolymer, PVM / MA Decadiene Crosspolymer, PVP, PVP Montmorillonite, PVP / VA / Itaconic Acid Copolymer, PVP / VA / Vinyl Propionate Copolymer, Quaternium-22, Rhizobian Gum, Rosin, Rubber Latex, Serum Albumin, Shellac, Sodium Acrylates / Acrolein Copolymer, Sodium Acrylates / Acrylonitrogens Copolymer, Sodium Acrylates / C 10-30 Alkyl Acrylates Crosspolymer, Sodium Acrylates Copolymer, Sodium Acrylates / Vinyl Alcohol Copolymer, Sodium Butyl Ester of PVM / MA Copolymer, Sodium Carbomer, Sodium Carboxymethyl Chitin, Sodium Carboxymethyl Starch, Sodium Carrageenan, Sodium C4-12 Olefin / Maleic Acid Copolymer, Sodium DVB / Acrylates Copolymer, Sodium Ethyl Ester of PVM / MA Copolymer, Sodium Isooctylene / MA Copolymer, Sodium MA / diisobutylene copolymer, Sodi MA / Vinyl Alcohol Copolymer, Sodium PG-Propyldimethicone Thiosulfate Copolymer, Sodium Polyacrylate, Sodium Polymethacrylate, Sodium Polystyrene Sulfonate, Sodium PVM / MA / Decadiene Crosspolymer, Sodium Styrene / Acrylate Copolymer, Sodium Tauride Acrylates / Acrylic Acid / Acrylonitrogen Copolymer, Starch / Acrylates / Acrylamide Copolymer, Starch Diethylaminoethyl Ether, Stearamidopropyl Dimethicone, Steareth-10 Allyl Ether / Acrylates Copolymer, Stearoyl Epoxy Resin, Stearyl HDI / PEG-50 Copolymer, Stearyl Methacrylate / Perfluorooctylethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Stearyl Vinyl Ether / MA Copolymer, Styrax Benzoin Gum, Styrene / Acrylates / Acrylonitrile Copolymer, Styrene / Acrylates / Ammonium Methacrylate Copolymer, Styrene / Acrylates Copolymer, Styrene / Allyl Benzoate Copolymer, Styrene / DVB Crosspolymer, Styrene / Isoprene Copolymer, Styrene / MA Copolymer, Styrene / Methacrylamide / Acrylate Copolymer, Styrene / Methylstyrene / Indene Copolymer, Styrene / VA Copolymer, Styrene / VP Copolymer, Sucrose Benzoate / Sucrose A cetate isobutyrate / butyl benzyl phthalate copolymer, sucrose Benzoates / Sucrose Acetates Isobutyrate / Butyl Benzyl Phthalate / Methyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Sucrose Benzoate / Sucrose Acetate Isobutyrate Copolymer, TEA Acrylates / Acrylonitrogen Copolymer, TEA Diricinoleate, TEA Diricinoleate / IPDI Copolymer, Terephthalic Acid / Isophthalic Acid / Sodium Isophthalic Acid Sulfonate / Glycol Copolymer, Tetrad ecyloctadecy I Behenate, Tetrad ecyloctadecy I Myristate, Tetrad ecyloctadecyl Stearate, Titanium Isostearates, Tosylamide / Epoxy Resin, Tosylamide / Formaldehyde Resin, Tricontanyl PVP, Triethylene Glycol Rosinate, Trimethylol Propane Cyclohexene Dicarboxylate, Trimethylolpropane Triacrylate, Trimethylpentanediol / Isophthalic Acid / Trimellitic Anhydride Copolymer,
Trimethylsiloxysilicate/Dimethiconol Crosspolymer, Trimethylsiloxysilylcarbamoyl Pullulan, Triticum Vulgäre (Wheat) Protein, Tromethamine Acrylates/Acrylonitrogens Copolymer, VA/Butyl Maleate/Isobornyl Acrylate Copolymer, VA/Crotonates Copolymer,Trimethylsiloxysilicate / Dimethiconol Crosspolymer, Trimethylsiloxysilylcarbamoyl Pullulan, Triticum Vulgary (Wheat) Protein, Tromethamine Acrylates / Acrylonitrogen Copolymer, VA / Butyl Maleate / Isobornyl Acrylate Copolymer, VA / Crotonates Copolymer,
VA/Crotonates/Methacryloxybenzophenone-1 Copolymer, VA/Crotonates/Vinyl Neodecanoate Copolymer, VA/Crotonates/Vinyl Propionate Copolymer, VA/Crotonic Acid/PEG-20M Copolymer, VA/DBM Copolymer, VA/Isobutyl Maleate/Vinyl Neodecanoate Copolymer, VA/Vinyl Butyl Benzoate/Crotonates Copolymer, VA/Vinyl Chloride Copolymer, Vinyl Acetate, Vinylamine/Vinyl Alcohol Copolymer, Vinyl Caprolactam/VP/Dimethylaminoethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Vinyl Chloride/Vinyl Laurate Copolymer, VP/Dimethiconylacrylate/Polycarbamyl/Polyglycol Ester, VP/Dimethylaminoethylmethacrylate Copolymer,VA / Crotonates / Methacryloxybenzophenone-1 Copolymer, VA / Crotonates / Vinyl Neodecanoate Copolymer, VA / Crotonates / Vinyl Propionate Copolymer, VA / Crotonic Acid / PEG-20M Copolymer, VA / DBM Copolymer, VA / Isobutyl Maleate / Vinyl Neodecanoate Copolymer, VA Vinyl Butyl Benzoate / Crotonates Copolymer, VA / Vinyl Chloride Copolymer, Vinyl Acetate, Vinylamine / Vinyl Alcohol Copolymer, Vinyl Caprolactam / VP / Dimethylaminoethyl Methacrylate Copolymer, Vinyl Chloride / Vinyl Laurate Copolymer, VP / Dimethiconyl Acrylates / Polycarbamyl / Polyglycol Ester, VP / Dimethylaminoethyl methacrylate copolymer,
VP/Dimethylaminoethylmethacrylate/Polycarbamyl Polyglycol Ester, VP/Eicosene Copolymer, VP/Hexadecene Copolymer, VP/Polycarbamyl Polyglycol Ester, VP/VA Copolymer, Welan Gum, Yeast Beta-Glucan, Yeast Polysaccharides, Zein.VP / dimethylaminoethyl methacrylate / polycarbamyl polyglycol ester, VP / eicosene copolymer, VP / hexadecene copolymer, VP / polycarbamyl polyglycol ester, VP / VA copolymer, welan gum, yeast beta-glucan, yeast polysaccharides, zein.
Die filmbildenden Polymere sind bevorzugt in einer Menge von 0,05 bis 10,0 Gew.-%, insbesondere von 1 ,0 bis 6,0 Gew.-% jeweils bezogen auf das Gewicht des erfindungsgemäßen Mittels, enthalten.The film-forming polymers are preferably present in an amount of from 0.05 to 10.0% by weight, in particular from 1.0 to 6.0% by weight, based in each case on the weight of the composition according to the invention.
In einer weiteren bevorzugten Ausführungsform der Erfindung kann die Wirkung durch Zusatz von mindestens einem Fettstoff weiter optimiert werden. Unter Fettstoffen sind zu verstehen Fettsäuren, Fettalkohole, natürliche und synthetische Wachse, welche sowohl in fester Form als auch flüssig in wäßriger Dispersion vorliegen können, und natürliche und synthetische kosmetische Ölkomponenten zu verstehen.In a further preferred embodiment of the invention, the effect can be further optimized by adding at least one fatty substance. Fatty substances are to be understood as meaning fatty acids, fatty alcohols, natural and synthetic waxes, which can be in solid form as well as liquid in aqueous dispersion, and natural and synthetic cosmetic oil components.
Als Fettsäuren können eingesetzt werden lineare und/oder verzweigte, gesättigte und/oder ungesättigte Fettsäuren mit 6 - 30 Kohlenstoffatomen. Bevorzugt sind Fettsäuren mit 10 - 22 Kohlenstoffatomen. Hierunter wären beispielsweise zu nennen die Isostearinsäuren, wie die Handelsprodukte Emersol 871 und Emersol 875, und Isopalmitinsäuren wie das Handelsprodukt Edenor® IP 95, sowie alle weiteren unter den Handelsbezeichnungen Edenor® (Cognis) vertriebenen Fettsäuren. Weitere typische Beispiele für solche Fettsäuren sind Capronsäure, Caprylsäure, 2-Ethylhexansäure, Caprinsäure, Laurinsäure, Isotridecansäure, My- ristinsäure, Palmitinsäure, Palmitoleinsäure, Stearinsäure, Isostearinsäure, Ölsäure, Elaidinsäure, Petroselinsäure, Linolsäure, Linolensäure, Elaeostearinsäure, Arachinsäure, Gadoleinsäure, Behensäure und Erucasäure sowie deren technische Mischungen, die z.B. bei der Druckspaltung von natürlichen Fetten und Ölen, bei der Oxidation von Aldehyden aus der Roelen'schen Oxosynthese oder der Dimerisierung von ungesättigten Fettsäuren anfallen. Besonders bevorzugt sind üblicherweise die Fettsäureschnitte, welche aus Cocosöl oder Palmöl erhältlich sind; insbesondere bevorzugt ist in der Regel der Einsatz von Stearinsäure.The fatty acids used can be linear and / or branched, saturated and / or unsaturated fatty acids having 6 to 30 carbon atoms. Preference is given to fatty acids having 10 to 22 carbon atoms. These include, for example, the isostearic acids, such as Commercial products Emersol 871 and Emersol 875, and isopalmitic acids such as the commercial product Edenor ® IP 95, and all other products sold under the trade names Edenor ® (Cognis) fatty acids. Further typical examples of such fatty acids are caproic acid, caprylic acid, 2-ethylhexanoic acid, capric acid, lauric acid, isotridecanoic acid, myristic acid, palmitic acid, palmitoleic acid, stearic acid, isostearic acid, oleic acid, elaidic acid, petroselinic acid, linoleic acid, linolenic acid, elaeostearic acid, arachidic acid, gadoleic acid, behenic acid and erucic acid and their technical mixtures, which are obtained, for example, in the pressure splitting of natural fats and oils, in the oxidation of aldehydes from Roelen's oxo synthesis or the dimerization of unsaturated fatty acids. Particularly preferred are usually the fatty acid cuttings obtainable from coconut oil or palm oil; In particular, the use of stearic acid is usually preferred.
Die Einsatzmenge beträgt dabei 0,1 - 15 Gew.%, bezogen auf das gesamte Mittel. In einer bevorzugten Ausführungsform beträgt die Menge 0,5 - 10 Gew.%, wobei ganz besonders vorteilhaft Mengen von 1 - 5 Gew.% sind.The amount used is 0.1 - 15 wt.%, Based on the total mean. In a preferred embodiment, the amount is 0.5-10% by weight, very particularly preferably amounts of 1-5% by weight.
Als Fettalkohole können eingesetzt werden gesättigte, ein- oder mehrfach ungesättigte, verzweigte oder unverzweigte Fettalkohole mit C6 - C30-, bevorzugt Ci0 - C22- und ganz besonders bevorzugt Ci2 - C22- Kohlenstoffatomen. Einsetzbar im Sinne der Erfindung sind beispielsweise Decanol, Octanol, Octenol, Dodecenol, Decenol, Octadienol, Dodecadienol, Decadienol, Oleylalkohol, Erucaalkohol, Ricinolalkohol, Stearylalkohol, Isostearylalkohol, Cetylalkohol, Laurylalkohol, Myristylalkohol, Arachidylalkohol, Caprylalkohol, Caprinalkohol, Linoleylalkohol, Linolenylalkohol und Behenylalkohol, sowie deren Guerbetalkohole, wobei diese Aufzählung beispielhaften und nicht limitierenden Charakter haben soll. Die Fettalkohole stammen jedoch von bevorzugt natürlichen Fettsäuren ab, wobei üblicherweise von einer Gewinnung aus den Estern der Fettsäuren durch Reduktion ausgegangen werden kann. Erfindungsgemäß einsetzbar sind ebenfalls solche Fettalkoholschnitte, die durch Reduktion natürlich vorkommender Triglyceride wie Rindertalg, Palmöl, Erdnußöl, Rüböl, Baumwollsaatöl, Sojaöl, Sonnenblumenöl und Leinöl oder aus deren Umesterungsprodukten mit entsprechenden Alkoholen entstehenden Fettsäureestern erzeugt werden, und somit ein Gemisch von unterschiedlichen Fettalkoholen darstellen. Solche Substanzen sind beispielsweise unter den Bezeichnungen Stenol®, z.B. Stenol® 1618 oder Lanette®, z.B. Lanette® O oder Lorol®, z.B. Lorol® C8, Lorol® C14, Lorol® C18, Lorol® C8-18, HD-Ocenol®, Crodacol®, z.B. Crodacol® CS, Novol®, Eutanol® G, Guerbitol® 16, Guerbitol® 18, Guerbitol® 20, Isofol® 12, Isofol® 16, Isofol® 24, Isofol® 36, Isocarb® 12, Isocarb® 16 oder Isocarb® 24 käuflich zu erwerben. Selbstverständlich können erfindungsgemäß auch Wollwachsalkohole, wie sie beispielsweise unter den Bezeichnungen Corona®, White Swan®, Coronet® oder Fluilan® käuflich zu erwerben sind, eingesetzt werden. Die Fettalkohole werden in Mengen von 0,1 - 20 Gew.-%, bezogen auf die gesamte Zubereitung, bevorzugt in Mengen von 0,1 - 10 Gew.-% eingesetzt.Fatty alcohols which may be used are saturated, mono- or polyunsaturated, branched or unbranched fatty alcohols with C 6 - C 30 -, preferably C 0 - C 22 - and particularly preferably C 2 - C 22 - carbon atoms. Decanols, octanols, dodecadienol, decadienol, oleyl alcohol, eruca alcohol, ricinoleic alcohol, stearyl alcohol, isostearyl alcohol, cetyl alcohol, lauryl alcohol, myristyl alcohol, arachidyl alcohol, caprylic alcohol, capric alcohol, linoleyl alcohol, linolenyl alcohol and behenyl alcohol are, for example, decanol, octanolol, dodecadienol, decadienol , as well as their Guerbet alcohols, this list should have exemplary and non-limiting character. However, the fatty alcohols are derived from preferably natural fatty acids, which can usually be based on recovery from the esters of fatty acids by reduction. Also usable according to the invention are those fatty alcohol cuts which are produced by reducing naturally occurring triglycerides such as beef tallow, palm oil, peanut oil, rapeseed oil, cottonseed oil, soybean oil, sunflower oil and linseed oil or fatty acid esters formed from their transesterification products with corresponding alcohols, and thus represent a mixture of different fatty alcohols. Such substances are, for example, under the names Stenol ® such as Stenol ® 1618 or Lanette ® such as Lanette ® O or Lorol ®, for example, Lorol ® C8, Lorol C14 ®, Lorol C18 ®, ® Lorol C8-18, HD-Ocenol ®, Crodacol ® such as Crodacol ® CS, Novol ®, Eutanol ® G, Guerbitol ® 16, Guerbitol ® 18, Guerbitol ® 20, Isofol ® 12, Isofol ® 16, Isofol ® 24, Isofol ® 36, Isocarb ® 12, Isocarb ® 16 or acquire Isocarb® ® 24 for sale. Of course you can According to the invention Wollwachsalkohole also how they can be purchased, for example, under the names of Corona ®, White Swan ®, Coronet ® or Fluilan ® can be used. The fatty alcohols are used in amounts of from 0.1 to 20% by weight, based on the total preparation, preferably in amounts of from 0.1 to 10% by weight.
Als natürliche oder synthetische Wachse können erfindungsgemäß eingesetzt werden feste Paraffine oder Isoparaffine, Carnaubawachse, Bienenwachse, Candelillawachse, Ozokerite, Ceresin, Walrat, Sonnenblumenwachs, Fruchtwachse wie beispielsweise Apfelwachs oder Citruswachs, Microwachse aus PE- oder PP. Derartige Wachse sind beispielsweise erhältlich über die Fa. Kahl & Co., Trittau.The natural or synthetic waxes used according to the invention are solid paraffins or isoparaffins, carnauba waxes, beeswaxes, candelilla waxes, ozokerites, ceresin, spermaceti, sunflower wax, fruit waxes such as apple wax or citrus wax, microwaxes of PE or PP. Such waxes are available, for example, from Kahl & Co., Trittau.
Zu den natürlichen und synthetischen kosmetischen Ölkörpern, welche die Wirkung des erfindungsgemäßen Wirkstoffes steigern können, sind beispielsweise zu zählen: pflanzliche Öle. Beispiele für solche Öle sind Sonnenblumenöl, Olivenöl, Sojaöl, Rapsöl, Mandelöl, Jojobaöl, Orangenöl, Weizenkeimöl, Pfirsichkernöl und die flüssigen Anteile des Kokosöls. Geeignet sind aber auch andere Triglyceridöle wie die flüssigen Anteile des Rindertalgs sowie synthetische Triglyceridöle. flüssige Paraffinöle, Isoparaffinöle und synthetische Kohlenwasserstoffe sowie Di-n-alkylether mit insgesamt zwischen 12 bis 36 C-Atomen, insbesondere 12 bis 24 C-Atomen, wie beispielsweise Di-n-octylether, Di-n-decylether, Di-n-nonylether, Di-n-undecylether, Di-n- dodecylether, n-Hexyl-n-octylether, n-Octyl-n-decylether, n-Decyl-n-undecylether, n-Undecyl- n-dodecylether und n-Hexyl-n-Undecylether sowie Di-tert-butylether, Di-iso-pentylether, Di-3- ethyldecylether, tert.-Butyl-n-octylether, iso-Pentyl-n-octylether und 2-Methyl-pentyl-n- octylether. Die als Handelsprodukte erhältlichen Verbindungen 1 ,3-Di-(2-ethyl-hexyl)- cyclohexan (Cetiol® S) und Di-n-octylether (Cetiol®OE) können bevorzugt sein. Esteröle. Unter Esterölen sind zu verstehen die Ester von C6 - C30 - Fettsäuren mit C2 - C30 - Fettalkoholen. Bevorzugt sind die Monoester der Fettsäuren mit Alkoholen mit 2 bis 24 C- Atomen. Beispiele für eingesetzte Fettsäurenanteile in den Estern sind Capronsäure, Capryl- säure, 2-Ethylhexansäure, Caprinsäure, Laurinsäure, Isotridecansäure, Myristinsäure, Palmitinsäure, Palmitoleinsäure, Stearinsäure, Isostearinsäure, Ölsäure, Elaidinsäure, Petroselinsäure, Linolsäure, Linolensäure, Elaeostearinsäure, Arachinsäure, Gadoleinsäure, Behensäure und Erucasäure sowie deren technische Mischungen, die z.B. bei der Druckspaltung von natürlichen Fetten und Ölen, bei der Oxidation von Aldehyden aus der Roelen'schen Oxosynthese oder der Dimerisierung von ungesättigten Fettsäuren anfallen. Beispiele für die Fettalkoholanteile in den Esterölen sind Isopropylalkohol, Capronalkohol, Caprylalkohol, 2-Ethylhexylalkohol, Caprinalkohol, Laurylalkohol, Isotridecylalkohol, My- ristylalkohol, Cetylalkohol, Palmoleylalkohol, Stearylalkohol, Isostearylalkohol, Oleylalkohol, Elaidylalkohol, Petroselinylalkohol, Linolylalkohol, Linolenylalkohol, Elaeostearylalkohol, Arachylalkohol, Gadoleylalkohol, Behenylalkohol, Erucylalkohol und Brassidylalkohol sowie deren technische Mischungen, die z.B. bei der Hochdruckhydrierung von technischen Methylestern auf Basis von Fetten und Ölen oder Aldehyden aus der Roelen'schen Oxosynthese sowie als Monomerfraktion bei der Dimerisierung von ungesättigten Fettalkoholen anfallen. Erfindungsgemäß besonders bevorzugt sind Isopropylmyristat (Rilanit® IPM), lsononansäure-C16-18-alkylester (Cetiol® SN), 2-Ethylhexylpalmitat (Cegesoft® 24), Stearinsäure-2-ethylhexylester (Cetiol® 868), Cetyloleat, Glycerintricaprylat, Kokosfettalkohol- caprinat/-caprylat (Cetiol® LC), n-Butylstearat, Oleylerucat (Cetiol® J 600), Isopropylpalmitat (Rilanit® IPP), Oleyl Oleate (Cetiol®), Laurinsäurehexylester (Cetiol® A), Di-n-butyladipat (Cetiol® B), Myristylmyristat (Cetiol® MM), Cetearyl Isononanoate (Cetiol® SN), Ölsäuredecylester (Cetiol® V).The natural and synthetic cosmetic oil bodies which can increase the action of the active ingredient according to the invention include, for example: vegetable oils. Examples of such oils are sunflower oil, olive oil, soybean oil, rapeseed oil, almond oil, jojoba oil, orange oil, wheat germ oil, peach kernel oil and the liquid portions of coconut oil. Also suitable, however, are other triglyceride oils such as the liquid portions of beef tallow as well as synthetic triglyceride oils. liquid paraffin oils, isoparaffin oils and synthetic hydrocarbons and di-n-alkyl ethers having a total of from 12 to 36 carbon atoms, in particular 12 to 24 carbon atoms, such as di-n-octyl ether, di-n-decyl ether, di-n-nonyl ether Di-n-undecyl ether, di-n-dodecyl ether, n-hexyl n-octyl ether, n-octyl n-decyl ether, n-decyl n-undecyl ether, n-undecyl n-dodecyl ether and n-hexyl-n Undecyl ether and di-tert-butyl ether, di-iso-pentyl ether, di-3-ethyldecyl ether, tert-butyl-n-octyl ether, iso-pentyl-n-octyl ether and 2-methyl-pentyl-n-octyl ether. The compounds are available as commercial products 1, 3-di- (2-ethyl-hexyl) - cyclohexane (Cetiol ® S), and di-n-octyl ether (Cetiol ® OE) may be preferred. Esteröle. Ester oils are to be understood as meaning the esters of C 6 - C 30 fatty acids with C 2 - C 30 fatty alcohols. The monoesters of the fatty acids with alcohols having 2 to 24 carbon atoms are preferred. Examples of fatty acid components used in the esters are caproic, caprylic, 2-ethylhexanoic, capric, lauric, isotridecanoic, myristic, palmitic, palmitoleic, stearic, isostearic, oleic, elaidic, petroselic, linoleic, linolenic Behenic acid and erucic acid and their technical mixtures which are obtained, for example, in the pressure splitting of natural fats and oils, in the oxidation of aldehydes from Roelen's oxo synthesis or the dimerization of unsaturated fatty acids. Examples of the fatty alcohol components in the ester oils are isopropyl alcohol, caproic alcohol, Caprylic alcohol, 2-ethylhexyl alcohol, capric alcohol, lauryl alcohol, isotridecyl alcohol, myristyl alcohol, cetyl alcohol, palmoleyl alcohol, stearyl alcohol, isostearyl alcohol, oleyl alcohol, elaidyl alcohol, petroselinyl alcohol, linolyl alcohol, linolenyl alcohol, elaeostearyl alcohol, arachyl alcohol, gadoleyl alcohol, behenyl alcohol, erucyl alcohol and brassidyl alcohol, and technical mixtures thereof, for example, in the high-pressure hydrogenation of technical methyl esters based on fats and oils or aldehydes from the Roelen oxo synthesis and as a monomer fraction in the dimerization of unsaturated fatty alcohols incurred. According to the invention, particularly preferred are isopropyl myristate (IPM Rilanit ®), isononanoic acid C16-18 alkyl ester (Cetiol ® SN), 2-ethylhexyl palmitate (Cegesoft ® 24), stearic acid-2-ethylhexyl ester (Cetiol ® 868), cetyl oleate, glycerol tricaprylate, Kokosfettalkohol- caprate / caprylate (Cetiol ® LC), n-butyl stearate, oleyl erucate (Cetiol ® J 600), isopropyl palmitate (IPP Rilanit ®), oleyl Oleate (Cetiol ®), hexyl laurate (Cetiol ® A), di-n-butyl adipate (Cetiol ® B), myristyl myristate (Cetiol ® MM), cetearyl isononanoate (Cetiol ® SN), oleic acid decyl ester (Cetiol ® V).
Dicarbonsäureester wie Di-n-butyladipat, Di-(2-ethylhexyl)-adipat, Di-(2-ethylhexyl)-succinat und Di-isotridecylacelaat sowie Diolester wie Ethylenglykol-dioleat, Ethylenglykol-di- isotridecanoat, Propylenglykol-di(2-ethylhexanoat), Propylenglykol-di-isostearat,Dicarboxylic acid esters such as di-n-butyl adipate, di- (2-ethylhexyl) adipate, di- (2-ethylhexyl) succinate and di-isotridecyl acelate, and diol esters such as ethylene glycol dioleate, ethylene glycol diisotridecanoate, propylene glycol di (2- ethylhexanoate), propylene glycol diisostearate,
Propylenglykol-di-pelargonat, Butandiol-di-isostearat, Neopentylglykoldicaprylat, symmetrische, unsymmetrische oder cyclische Ester der Kohlensäure mit Fettalkoholen, beispielsweise beschrieben in der DE-OS 197 56 454, Glycerincarbonat oder Dicaprylylcarbonat (Cetiol® CC),Propylene glycol di-pelargonat, butanediol di-isostearate, Neopentylglykoldicaprylat, symmetrical, asymmetric or cyclic esters of carbonic acid with fatty alcohols, for example described in DE-OS 197 56 454, glycerol carbonate or dicaprylyl carbonate (Cetiol ® CC),
Mono,- Di- und Trifettsäureester von gesättigten und/oder ungesättigten linearen und/oder verzweigten Fettsäuren mit Glycerin, wie beispielsweise Monomuls® 90-018, Monomuls® 90- L12 oder Cutina® MD.Mono, - di- and trifatty acid esters of saturated and / or unsaturated linear and / or branched fatty acids with glycerol such as Monomuls 90-018 ®, Monomuls 90 L12 ® or Cutina ® MD.
Die Einsatzmenge beträgt 0,1 - 50 Gew.% bezogen auf das gesamte Mittel, bevorzugt 0,1 - 20 Gew.% und besonders bevorzugt 0,1 - 15 Gew.% bezogen auf das gesamte Mittel.The amount used is 0.1-50 wt.% Based on the total agent, preferably 0.1 to 20 wt.% And particularly preferably 0.1 to 15 wt.% Based on the total agent.
Die Gesamtmenge an Öl- und Fettkomponenten in den erfindungsgemäßen Mitteln beträgt üblicherweise 6 - 45 Gew.-%, bezogen auf das gesamte Mittel. Mengen von 10- 35 Gew.-% sind erfindungsgemäß bevorzugt.The total amount of oil and fat components in the compositions according to the invention is usually from 6 to 45% by weight, based on the total agent. Amounts of 10-35% by weight are preferred according to the invention.
Weiterhin hat sich gezeigt, daß die Wirkung gesteigert werden kann, wenn die erfindungsgemäßen Mittel zusätzlich mindestens einen Hydroxycarbonsäureester enthalten. Bevorzugte Hydroxycarbonsäureester sind Vollester der Glycolsäure, Milchsäure, Äpfelsäure, Weinsäure oder Citronensäure. Weitere grundsätzlich geeigneten Hydroxycarbonsäureester sind Ester der ß-Hydroxypropionsäure, der Tartronsäure, der D-Gluconsäure, Zuckersäure, Schleimsäure oder Glucuronsäure. Als Alkoholkomponente dieser Ester eignen sich primäre, lineare oder verzweigte aliphatische Alkohole mit 8 - 22 C-Atomen, also z.B. Fettalkohole oder synthetische Fettalkohole. Dabei sind die Ester von Ci2-Ci5-Fettalkoholen besonders bevorzugt. Ester dieses Typs sind im Handel erhältlich, z.B. unter dem Warenzeichen Cosmacol® der EniChem, Augusta Industriale. Die Einsatzmenge der Hydroxycarbonsäureester beträgt dabei 0,1 - 15 Gew.% bezogen auf das Mittel, bevorzugt 0,1 - 10 Gew.% und ganz besonders bevorzugt 0,1 - 5 Gew.%.Furthermore, it has been found that the effect can be increased if the agents according to the invention additionally contain at least one hydroxycarboxylic acid ester. Preferred hydroxycarboxylic acid esters are full esters of glycolic acid, lactic acid, malic acid, Tartaric acid or citric acid. Further basically suitable hydroxycarboxylic esters are esters of β-hydroxypropionic acid, tartronic acid, D-gluconic acid, sugar acid, mucic acid or glucuronic acid. Suitable alcohol components of these esters are primary, linear or branched aliphatic alcohols having 8-22 C atoms, ie, for example, fatty alcohols or synthetic fatty alcohols. The esters of Ci 2 -Ci 5 fatty alcohols are particularly preferred. Esters of this type are commercially available, eg under the trademark Cosmacol® ® EniChem, Augusta Industriale. The amount of hydroxycarboxylic acid ester used is 0.1-15% by weight, based on the agent, preferably 0.1-10% by weight, and very particularly preferably 0.1-5% by weight.
Es ist erfindungsgemäß bevorzugt, dass die Mittel zusätzlich mindestens ein Alkalisierungsmittel enthalten. Die erfindungsgemäß verwendbaren Alkalisierungsmittel werden bevorzugt ausgewählt aus der Gruppe, die gebildet wird, aus Ammoniak, basischen Aminosäuren, Alkalihydroxiden, Alkanolaminen, Alkalimetallmetasilikaten, Harnstoff, Morpholin, N-Methylglucamin, Imidazol, Alkaliphosphaten und Alkalihydrogenphosphaten. Als Alkalimetallionen dienen bevorzugt Lithium, Natrium, Kalium, insbesondere Natrium oder Kalium.It is preferred according to the invention that the agents additionally contain at least one alkalizing agent. The alkalizing agents usable in the present invention are preferably selected from the group consisting of ammonia, basic amino acids, alkali hydroxides, alkanolamines, alkali metal metasilicates, urea, morpholine, N-methylglucamine, imidazole, alkali phosphates and alkali hydrogen phosphates. The alkali metal ions used are preferably lithium, sodium, potassium, in particular sodium or potassium.
Die als erfindungsgemäßes Alkalisierungsmittel einsetzbaren basischen Aminosäuren werden bevorzugt ausgewählt aus der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus L-Arginin, D-Arginin, D,L-Arginin, L- Histidin, D-Histidin, D,L-Histidin, L-Lysin, D-Lysin, D,L-Lysin, besonders bevorzugt L-Arginin, D- Arginin, D, L-Arginin als ein Alkalisierungsmittel im Sinne der Erfindung eingesetzt.The basic amino acids which can be used as alkalizing agents according to the invention are preferably selected from the group formed from L-arginine, D-arginine, D, L-arginine, L-histidine, D-histidine, D, L-histidine, L-lysine, D-lysine, D, L-lysine, more preferably L-arginine, D-arginine, D, L-arginine used as an alkalizing agent according to the invention.
Die als erfindungsgemäßes Alkalisierungsmittel einsetzbaren Alkalihydroxide werden bevorzugt ausgewählt aus der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus Natriumhydroxid und Kaliumhydroxid.The alkali metal hydroxides which can be used as the alkalizing agent according to the invention are preferably selected from the group formed from sodium hydroxide and potassium hydroxide.
Die als erfindungsgemäßes Alkalisierungsmittel einsetzbaren Alkanolamine werden bevorzugt ausgewählt aus primären Aminen mit einem C2-C6-Alkylgrundkörper, der mindestens eine Hydroxylgruppe trägt. Besonders bevorzugte Alkanolamine werden aus der Gruppe ausgewählt, die gebildet wird, aus 2-Aminoethan-1-ol (Monoethanolamin), 3-Aminopropan-1-ol, 4-Aminobutan- 1-ol, 5-Aminopentan-1-ol, 1-Aminopropan-2-ol, 1-Aminobutan-2-ol, 1-Aminopentan-2-ol, 1- Aminopentan-3-ol, 1-Aminopentan-4-ol, 3-Amino-2-methylpropan-1-ol, 1-Amino-2-methylpropan- 2-ol, 3-Aminopropan-1 ,2-diol, 2-Amino-2-methylpropan-1 ,3-diol. Erfindungsgemäß ganz besonders bevorzugte Alkanolamine werden ausgewählt aus der Gruppe 2-Aminoethan-1-ol, 2- Amino-2-methylpropan-1-ol und 2-Amino-2-methyl-propan-1 ,3-diol. Besonders bevorzugt wird das Alkalisierungsmittel ausgewählt aus mindestens einer Verbindung aus der Gruppe, die gebildet wird aus 2-Aminoethanol, 2-Amino-2-nnethylpropan-1-ol, 2-Amino-2- methyl-propan-1 ,3-diol, Kaliumhydroxid, L-Arginin, D-Arginin, DL-Arginin, N-Methylglucamin, Morpholin, Imidazol und Harnstoff.The alkanolamines which can be used as alkalizing agents according to the invention are preferably selected from primary amines having a C 2 -C 6 -alkyl basic body which carries at least one hydroxyl group. Particularly preferred alkanolamines are selected from the group formed from 2-aminoethan-1-ol (monoethanolamine), 3-aminopropan-1-ol, 4-aminobutan-1-ol, 5-aminopentan-1-ol, 1 -Aminopropan-2-ol, 1-aminobutan-2-ol, 1-aminopentan-2-ol, 1-aminopentan-3-ol, 1-aminopentan-4-ol, 3-amino-2-methylpropan-1-ol , 1-amino-2-methylpropan-2-ol, 3-aminopropane-1, 2-diol, 2-amino-2-methylpropane-1,3-diol. Very particularly preferred alkanolamines according to the invention are selected from the group consisting of 2-aminoethane-1-ol, 2-amino-2-methylpropan-1-ol and 2-amino-2-methylpropane-1,3-diol. The alkalizing agent is more preferably selected from at least one compound from the group formed from 2-aminoethanol, 2-amino-2-methylpropan-1-ol, 2-amino-2-methyl-propane-1,3-diol, Potassium hydroxide, L-arginine, D-arginine, DL-arginine, N-methylglucamine, morpholine, imidazole and urea.
In einer weiteren Ausführungsform sollten die erfindungsgemäßen Mittel zusätzlich mindestens einen UV-Lichtschutzfilter enthalten. Unter UV-Lichtschutzfiltern sind organische Substanzen zu verstehen, die in der Lage sind, ultra-violette Strahlen zu absorbieren und die aufgenommene Energie in Form längerwelliger Strahlung, z.B. Wärme wieder abzugeben. UVB-Filter können öllöslich oder wasserlöslich sein. Als öllösliche Substanzen sind z.B. zu nennen:In a further embodiment, the agents according to the invention should additionally contain at least one UV light protection filter. By UV light protection filters are meant organic substances capable of absorbing ultraviolet rays and absorbing the absorbed energy in the form of longer wavelength radiation, e.g. Heat again. UVB filters can be oil-soluble or water-soluble. As oil-soluble substances are e.g. to call:
3-Benzylidencampher und dessen Derivate, z.B. 3-(4-Methylbenzyliden)campher;3-benzylidene camphor and its derivatives, e.g. 3- (4-methylbenzylidene) camphor;
4-Aminobenzoesäurederivate, vorzugsweise 4-(Dimethylamino)benzoesäure-2- ethylhexylester, 4-(Dimethylamino)benzoesäure-2-octylester und A-4-aminobenzoic acid derivatives, preferably 2-ethylhexyl 4- (dimethylamino) benzoate, 2-octyl 4- (dimethylamino) benzoate and A-
(Dimethylamino)benzoesäureamylester;(Dimethylamino) benzoesäureamylester;
Ester der Zimtsäure, vorzugsweise 4-Methoxyzimtsäure-2-ethylhexylester, A-Esters of cinnamic acid, preferably 2-ethylhexyl 4-methoxycinnamate, A-
Methoxyzimtsäurepropylester, 4-Methoxyzimtsäureisoamylester, 2-Cyano-3-phenyl- zimtsäure-2-ethylhexylester (Octocrylene);Propyl methoxycinnamate, isoamyl 4-methoxycinnamate, 2-ethylhexyl 2-cyano-3-phenylcinnamate (octocrylene);
Ester der Salicylsäure, vorzugsweise Salicylsäure-2-ethylhexylester, Salicylsäure-4- isopropylben-zylester, Salicylsäurehomomenthylester;Esters of salicylic acid, preferably 2-ethylhexyl salicylate, 4-isopropylbenzyl salicylate, homomenthyl salicylate;
Derivate des Benzophenons, vorzugsweise 2-Hydroxy-4-methoxybenzophenon, 2-Hydroxy-Derivatives of benzophenone, preferably 2-hydroxy-4-methoxybenzophenone, 2-hydroxy
4-meth-oxy-4'-methylbenzophenon, 2,2'-Dihydroxy-4-methoxybenzophenon;4-methoxy-4'-methylbenzophenone, 2,2'-dihydroxy-4-methoxybenzophenone;
Ester der Benzalmalonsäure, vorzugsweise 4-Methoxybenzmalonsäuredi-2-ethylhexylester;Esters of benzalmalonic acid, preferably di-2-ethylhexyl 4-methoxybenzmalonate;
Triazinderivate, wie z.B. 2,4,6-Trianilino-(p-carbo-2'-ethyl-1 '-hexyloxy)-1 ,3,5-triazin undTriazine derivatives, e.g. 2,4,6-Trianilino- (p-carbo-2'-ethyl-1'-hexyloxy) -1, 3,5-triazine and
Octyltriazon.Octyl.
Propan-1 ,3-dione, wie z.B. 1-(4-tert.Butylphenyl)-3-(4'methoxyphenyl)propan-1 ,3-dion;Propane-1,3-diones, e.g. 1- (4-tert-butylphenyl) -3- (4'-methoxyphenyl) propane-1,3-dione;
Als wasserlösliche Substanzen kommen in Frage:Suitable water-soluble substances are:
2-Phenylbenzimidazol-5-sulfonsäure und deren Alkali-, Erdalkali-, Ammonium-, Alkylammonium-, Alkanolammonium- und Glucammoniumsalze;2-phenylbenzimidazole-5-sulfonic acid and its alkali, alkaline earth, ammonium, alkylammonium, alkanolammonium and glucammonium salts;
Sulfonsäurederivate von Benzophenonen, vorzugsweise 2-Hydroxy-4-methoxybenzophenon- 5-sul-fonsäure und ihre Salze; Sulfonsäurederivate des 3-Benzylidencamphers, wie z.B. 4-(2-Oxo-3- bornylidenmethyl)benzolsul-fonsäure und 2-Methyl-5-(2-oxo-3-bornyliden)sulfonsäure und deren Salze.Sulfonic acid derivatives of benzophenones, preferably 2-hydroxy-4-methoxybenzophenone-5-sulfonic acid and its salts; Sulfonic acid derivatives of 3-Benzylidencamphers, such as 4- (2-oxo-3-bornylidenemethyl) benzenesulfonic acid and 2-methyl-5- (2-oxo-3-bomylidene) sulfonic acid and salts thereof.
Als typische UV-A-Filter kommen insbesondere Derivate des Benzoylmethans in Frage, wie beispielsweise 1-(4'-tert.Butylphenyl)-3-(4'-methoxyphenyl)propan-1 ,3-dion oder 1-Phenyl-3-(4'- isopropylphenyl)-propan-1 ,3-dion. Die UV-A und UV-B-Filter können selbstverständlich auch in Mischungen eingesetzt werden. Neben den genannten löslichen Stoffen kommen für diesen Zweck auch unlösliche Pigmente, nämlich feindisperse Metalloxide bzw. Salze in Frage, wie beispielsweise Titandioxid, Zinkoxid, Eisenoxid, Aluminiumoxid, Ceroxid, Zirkoniumoxid, Silicate (Talk), Bariumsulfat und Zinkstearat. Die Partikel sollten dabei einen mittleren Durchmesser von weniger als 100 nm, vorzugsweise zwischen 5 und 50 nm und insbesondere zwischen 15 und 30 nm aufweisen. Sie können eine sphärische Form aufweisen, es können jedoch auch solche Partikel zum Einsatz kommen, die eine ellipsoide oder in sonstiger Weise von der sphärischen Gestalt abweichende Form besitzen. Neben den beiden vorgenannten Gruppen primärer Lichtschutzstoffe können auch sekundäre Lichtschutzmittel vom Typ der Antioxidantien eingesetzt werden, die die photochemische Reaktionskette unterbrechen, welche ausgelöst wird, wenn UV- Strahlung in die Haut eindringt. Typische Beispiele hierfür sind Superoxid-Dismutase, Tocopherole (Vitamin E) und Ascorbinsäure (Vitamin C).As a typical UV-A filter in particular derivatives of benzoylmethane come into question, such as 1- (4'-tert-butylphenyl) -3- (4'-methoxyphenyl) propane-1, 3-dione or 1-phenyl-3 (4'-isopropylphenyl) -propane-1,3-dione. Of course, the UV-A and UV-B filters can also be used in mixtures. In addition to the soluble substances mentioned, insoluble pigments are also suitable for this purpose, namely finely dispersed metal oxides or salts, for example titanium dioxide, zinc oxide, iron oxide, aluminum oxide, cerium oxide, zirconium oxide, silicates (talc), barium sulfate and zinc stearate. The particles should have an average diameter of less than 100 nm, preferably between 5 and 50 nm and in particular between 15 and 30 nm. They may have a spherical shape, but it is also possible to use those particles which have an ellipsoidal or otherwise deviating shape from the spherical shape. In addition to the two aforementioned groups of primary light stabilizers, it is also possible to use secondary light stabilizers of the antioxidant type which interrupt the photochemical reaction chain which is triggered when UV radiation penetrates into the skin. Typical examples are superoxide dismutase, tocopherols (vitamin E) and ascorbic acid (vitamin C).
Weiterhin ist es bevorzugt, in die erfindungsgemäßen Mittel zusätzlich mindestens ein Pflanzenextrakt einzuarbeiten.It is furthermore preferred to additionally incorporate at least one plant extract into the compositions according to the invention.
Geeignete Pflanzenextrakte werden durch Extraktion mit organischen Lösemitteln (wie beispielsweise Ethanol, Isopropanol, Diethylether, Benzin, Benzol, Chloroform) oder durch Wasserdampfdestillation gewonnen. Bevorzugte Pflanzenextrakte sind beispielsweise Extrakte von Blüten (Lindenblüten, Kamillen, Lilie, Lavendel, Rosen, Jasmin, Neroli, Ylang-Ylang), Stengeln und Blättern (Cassis, Rosskastanie, Rooibos, Birke, Melisse, Klee, Weinblättern, Geranium, Patchouli, Petitgrain), Früchten (Anis, Cassis, Koriander, Kümmel, Wacholder), Fruchtschalen (Bergamotte, Zitrone, Orangen), Wurzeln (Macis, Angelica, Sellerie, Kardamon, Costus, Iris, Calmus), Hölzern (Pinien-, Sandel-, Guajak-, Zedern-, Rosenholz), Kräutern und Gräsern (Estragon, Lemongras, Salbei, Thymian, Rosmarin), Nadeln und Zweigen (Fichte, Tanne, Kiefer, Latschen, Sandelholz), Harzen und Balsamen (Galbanum, Elemi, Benzoe, Myrrhe, Olibanum, Opoponax). Besonders bevorzugt werden die Pflanzenextrakte ausgewählt aus mindestens einem Extrakt aus der Gruppe Hamamelis (Hamamelis virginiana L.), Weinblättern (Vitis vinifera L.), Rosen (Rosa gallica L.), Sandelholz (Pterocarpus Santalinus), Rooibos (Aspalathus linearis), Rosskastanie (Aesculus Hippocastanum L.), Klee (insbesondere Rotklee, Trifolium pratense), Zimt (Cinnamomum zeylanicum nees) und Cassis (insbesondere aus Cassis Blättern, Ribes nigrum L).Suitable plant extracts are obtained by extraction with organic solvents (such as, for example, ethanol, isopropanol, diethyl ether, benzene, benzene, chloroform) or by steam distillation. Examples of preferred plant extracts are extracts of flowers (linden flowers, camomiles, lily, lavender, roses, jasmine, neroli, ylang-ylang), stems and leaves (cassis, horse chestnut, rooibos, birch, lemon balm, clover, grape leaves, geranium, patchouli, petitgrain ), Fruits (anise, cassis, coriander, caraway, juniper), fruit peel (bergamot, lemon, orange), roots (mace, angelica, celery, cardamom, costus, iris, calmus), wood (pine, sandal, guaiac -, cedar, rosewood), herbs and grasses (tarragon, lemongrass, sage, thyme, rosemary), needles and twigs (spruce, fir, pine, pines, sandalwood), resins and balsams (galbanum, elemi, benzoin, myrrh, Olibanum, Opoponax). The plant extracts are particularly preferably selected from at least one extract from the group hamamelis (Hamamelis virginiana L.), vine leaves (Vitis vinifera L.), roses (Rosa gallica L.), sandalwood (Pterocarpus Santalinus), rooibos (Aspalathus linearis), horse chestnut (Aesculus Hippocastanum L.), clover (especially red clover, Trifolium pratense), cinnamon (Cinnamomum zeylanicum nees) and cassis (especially from Cassis leaves, Ribes nigrum L).
Solche bevorzugt verwendeten Extrakte werden unter den Bezeichnungen Herbasol® von der Firma Cosmetochem oder Extrapon® von der Firma Symrise vermarktet.Such extracts are preferably used are marketed under the names Herbasol ® by the company Cosmetochem or Extrapone ® by the company Symrise.
Die Pflanzenextrakte sind in dem erfindungsgemäßen Mittel bevorzugt in einer Menge von 0,05 bis 5 Gew.-%, insbesondere 0,1 bis 2 Gew.-%, jeweils bezogen auf das Gewicht des gesamten Mittels, enthalten.The plant extracts are contained in the agent according to the invention preferably in an amount of 0.05 to 5 wt .-%, in particular 0.1 to 2 wt .-%, each based on the weight of the total composition.
Ferner können die kosmetischen Mittel weitere Wirk-, Hilfs- und Zusatzstoffe enthalten, wie beispielsweise nichtionische Polymere wie beispielsweise Vinylpyrrolidon/Vinylacrylat-Copolymere,In addition, the cosmetic agents may contain further active ingredients, auxiliaries and additives, such as, for example, nonionic polymers such as, for example, vinylpyrrolidone / vinyl acrylate copolymers,
Polyvinylpyrrolidon und Vinylpyrrolidon/Vinylacetat-Copolymere und Polysiloxane, anionische Polymere wie beispielsweise Polyacrylsäuren, vernetzte Polyacrylsäuren,Polyvinylpyrrolidone and vinylpyrrolidone / vinyl acetate copolymers and polysiloxanes, anionic polymers such as polyacrylic acids, crosslinked polyacrylic acids,
Vinylacetat/Crotonsäure-Copolymere, Vinylpyrrolidon/Vinylacrylat-Copolymere,Vinyl acetate / crotonic acid copolymers, vinyl pyrrolidone / vinyl acrylate copolymers,
Vinylacetat/Butylmaleat/Isobornylacrylat-Copolymere, Methylvinylether/Malein-säureanhydrid-Vinyl acetate / butyl maleate / isobornyl acrylate copolymers, methyl vinyl ether / maleic anhydride
Copolymere und Acrylsäure/Ethylacrylat/N-tert.Butyl-acrylamid-Terpolymere,Copolymers and acrylic acid / ethyl acrylate / N-tert-butyl acrylamide terpolymers,
Strukturanten wie Maleinsäure und Milchsäure, haarkonditionierende Verbindungen wie Phospholipide, beispielsweise Sojalecithin, Ei-Lecitin und Kephaline,Structural agents such as maleic acid and lactic acid, hair conditioning compounds such as phospholipids, for example soya lecithin, egg lecithin and cephalins,
Parfümöle, Dimethylisosorbid und Cyclodextrine,Perfume oils, dimethylisosorbide and cyclodextrins,
Lösungsmittel und -vermittler wie Ethanol, Isopropanol, Ethylenglykol, Propylenglykol, Glyce- rin und Diethylenglykol, faserstrukturverbessernde Wirkstoffe, insbesondere Mono-, Di- und Oligosaccharide wie beispielsweise Glucose, Galactose, Fructose, Fruchtzucker und Lactose, quaternierte Amine wie Methyl-1-alkylamidoethyl-2-alkylimidazolinium-methosulfatSolvents and mediators such as ethanol, isopropanol, ethylene glycol, propylene glycol, glycerol and diethylene glycol, fiber structure-improving agents, in particular mono-, di- and oligosaccharides such as glucose, galactose, fructose, fructose and lactose, quaternized amines such as methyl-1-alkylamidoethyl -2-alkylimidazolinium methosulfate
Entschäumer wie Silikone,Defoamers like silicones,
Farbstoffe zum Anfärben des Mittels,Dyes for staining the agent,
Antischuppenwirkstoffe wie Piroctone Olamine, Zink Omadine und Climbazol,Anti-dandruff agents such as Piroctone Olamine, Zinc Omadine and Climbazole,
Wirkstoffe wie Allantoin, Pyrrolidoncarbonsäuren und deren Salze sowie Bisabolol, Vitamine, Provitamine und Vitaminvorstufen, insbesondere solche der Gruppen A, B3, B5, B6,Active ingredients such as allantoin, pyrrolidonecarboxylic acids and their salts, and bisabolol, Vitamins, provitamins and vitamin precursors, in particular those of groups A, B 3 , B 5 , B 6 ,
C, E, F und H,C, E, F and H,
Pflanzenextrakte wie die Extrakte aus Grünem Tee, Eichenrinde, Brennessel, Hamamelis,Plant extracts such as extracts of green tea, oak bark, stinging nettle, witch hazel,
Hopfen, Kamille, Klettenwurzel, Schachtelhalm, Weißdorn, Lindenblüten, Mandel, Aloe Vera,Hops, chamomile, burdock root, horsetail, hawthorn, lime blossom, almond, aloe vera,
Fichtennadel, Roßkastanie, Sandelholz, Wacholder, Kokosnuß, Mango, Aprikose, Limone,Spruce needle, horse chestnut, sandalwood, juniper, coconut, mango, apricot, lime,
Weizen, Kiwi, Melone, Orange, Grapefruit, Salbei, Rosmarin, Birke, Malve,Wheat, kiwi, melon, orange, grapefruit, sage, rosemary, birch, mallow,
Wiesenschaumkraut, Quendel, Gallapfel, Weintraubenkernen, Weintraubenschalen,Meadowfoam, Quendel, Gall apple, Grape seeds, Grape hulls,
Weinblättern, Chardonnay, Schafgarbe, Thymian, Melisse, Hauhechel, Huflattich, Eibisch,Grape leaves, Chardonnay, Yarrow, Thyme, Melissa, Toadstool, Coltsfoot, Marshmallow,
Meristem, Ginseng und Ingwerwurzel,.Meristem, ginseng and ginger root ,.
Cholesterin,Cholesterol,
Konsistenzgeber wie Zuckerester, Polyolester oder Polyolalkylether,Bodying agents such as sugar esters, polyol esters or polyol alkyl ethers,
Fettsäurealkanolamide,fatty acid,
Komplexbildner wie EDTA, NTA, ß-Alanindiessigsäure und Phosphonsäuren,Complexing agents such as EDTA, NTA, β-alaninediacetic acid and phosphonic acids,
Quell- und Penetrationsstoffe wie Glycerin, Propylenglykolmonoethylether, Carbonate,Swelling and penetration substances such as glycerol, propylene glycol monoethyl ether, carbonates,
Hydrogencarbonate, Guanidine, Harnstoffe sowie primäre, sekundäre und tertiäre Phosphate,Hydrogencarbonates, guanidines, ureas and primary, secondary and tertiary phosphates,
Trübungsmittel wie Latex, Styrol/PVP- und Styrol/Acrylamid-CopolymereOpacifiers such as latex, styrene / PVP and styrene / acrylamide copolymers
Perlglanzmittel wie Ethylenglykolmono- und -distearat sowie PEG-3-distearat,Pearlescing agents such as ethylene glycol mono- and distearate and PEG-3-distearate,
Pigmente,pigments
Stabilisierungsmittel für Wasserstoffperoxid und andere Oxidationsmittel,Stabilizing agent for hydrogen peroxide and other oxidizing agents,
Treibmittel wie Propan-Butan-Gemische, N2O, Dimethylether, CO2 und Luft,Propellants such as propane-butane mixtures, N 2 O, dimethyl ether, CO 2 and air,
Antioxidantien.Antioxidants.
Bezüglich weiterer fakultativer Komponenten sowie die eingesetzten Mengen dieser Komponenten wird ausdrücklich auf die dem Fachmann bekannten einschlägigen Handbücher, z. B. Kh. Schrader, Grundlagen und Rezepturen der Kosmetika, 2. Auflage, Hüthig Buch Verlag, Heidelberg, 1989, verwiesen.With regard to further optional components as well as the amounts of these components used, reference is expressly made to the relevant manuals known to the person skilled in the art, eg. B. Kh. Schrader, bases and formulations of cosmetics, 2nd edition, Hüthig book publisher, Heidelberg, 1989, referenced.
Ein zweiter Gegenstand der Erfindung ist die Verwendung von Lumineszenzpigmenten, die eine durch sichtbares Licht anregbare Lumineszenz besitzen, zur Färbung von Substraten, insbesondere zur Färbung von Textilien und/oder zur Färbung menschlicher Haare und/oder zur Färbung von Haut und/oder zur Färbung von Fingernägeln.A second aspect of the invention is the use of luminescent pigments which have a visible light excitable luminescence for dyeing substrates, in particular for dyeing textiles and / or for coloring human hair and / or for coloring skin and / or for coloring fingernails.
Ein dritter Gegenstand der Erfindung ist die Verwendung von Lumineszenzpigmenten, die eine durch sichtbares Licht anregbare Lumineszenz zeigen, zur Erhöhung der Farbbrillanz von Färbungen, insbesondere von Färbungen auf Textilien und/oder Färbungen auf menschlichen Haaren und/oder Färbungen auf der Haut und/oder Färbungen auf den Fingernägeln.A third object of the invention is the use of luminescent pigments, which exhibit a visible light excitable luminescence, to increase the color brilliance of Dyeings, in particular dyeings on textiles and / or dyeings on human hair and / or dyeings on the skin and / or dyeings on fingernails.
Ein vierter Gegenstand der Erfindung ist die Verwendung von Lumineszenzpigmenten, die eine durch sichtbares Licht anregbare Lumineszenz zeigen, zur Verbesserung des Glanzes keratinhaltiger Fasern, insbesondere menschlicher Haare.A fourth object of the invention is the use of luminescent pigments that exhibit visible light excitable luminescence to improve the luster of keratinous fibers, especially human hair.
Ein fünfter Gegenstand der Erfindung ist die Verwendung von Lumineszenzpigmenten, die eine durch sichtbares Licht anregbare Lumineszenz zeigen, zur optischen Aufhellung von Substraten, insbesondere von Textilien und/oder von menschlichen Haaren und/oder von Haut.A fifth object of the invention is the use of luminescent pigments which exhibit visible light excitable luminescence for the optical whitening of substrates, in particular of textiles and / or human hair and / or skin.
Ein sechster Gegenstand der Erfindung ist ein Verfahren zur Farbveränderung von Substraten, insbesondere von Textilien und/oder von menschlichen Haaren und/oder der Haut, dadurch gekennzeichnet, daß ein Mittel des ersten Erfindungsgegenstandes auf das Substrat aufgetragen wird. In einem folgenden Schritt kann das Substrat zur Fixierung mit einem Mittel, enthaltend mindestens ein filmbildendes Polymer behandelt, bevorzugt besprüht, werden.A sixth aspect of the invention is a process for the color change of substrates, in particular of textiles and / or of human hair and / or the skin, characterized in that an agent of the first subject of the invention is applied to the substrate. In a subsequent step, the substrate may be sprayed for fixing with an agent containing at least one film-forming polymer, preferably sprayed.
Das für den ersten Erfindungsgegenstand Gesagte gilt mutatis mutandis auch für die Erfindungsgegenstände zwei bis sechs.The statements made for the first subject of the invention also apply, mutatis mutandis, to the subject-matter objects two to six.
Die folgenden Beispiele sollen den Gegenstand der vorliegenden Erfindung erläutern ohne ihn jedoch zu beschränken. The following examples are intended to illustrate the subject matter of the present invention without, however, limiting it.
B e i s p i e l eB e i s p e e l e
1.0 Darstellung von Lai0OS14:Ce (Dotierungsgrade 2 %, 3% und 5%)1.0 Representation of Lai 0 OS 14 : Ce (doping levels 2%, 3% and 5%)
0,50 g La10OSi4 (Hergestellt nach der Methode in DE-A-3132946) und 2 mol% Ce2O3 wurden miteinander in einer Argonatmosphäre vermählen. Die Mischung wurde in eine Quartzampulle gefüllt und die Ampulle unter Vakuum abgeschmolzen. Die Probe wurde auf 93O0C (bei einer Rampe von 5O0C pro Stunde bis 900°C und 1O0C pro Stunde bis 93O0C aufgeheizt und für 12 Stunden bei dieser Temperatur gesintert. Anschließend wurde langsam auf Raumtemperatur abgekühlt.0.50 g of La 10 OSi 4 (prepared by the method in DE-A-3132946) and 2 mol% of Ce 2 O 3 were ground together in an argon atmosphere. The mixture was filled into a quartz ampule and the ampule was melted under vacuum. The sample was (at 93O 0 C was heated and at a ramp of 5O 0 C per hour to 900 ° C and 1O 0 C per hour to 93O 0 C sintered for 12 hours at this temperature. The mixture was then slowly cooled to room temperature.
Zur Darstellung von La10OS14 mit Dotierungsgrade von 3% bzw. 5% wurde analog unter Einsatz von 3 mol% bzw. 5 mol% Ce2O3 verfahren.For the preparation of La 10 OS 14 with doping levels of 3% and 5%, the procedure was analogous using 3 mol% or 5 mol% of Ce 2 O 3 .
2.0 Emissions-Absorptions-Spektrum von La10OS14:Ce (Dotierungsgrade 2 %, 3% und 5%)2.0 emission absorption spectrum of La 10 OS 14 : Ce (doping levels 2%, 3% and 5%)
Zur Messung der Emissions-Absorptions-Spektren wurde ein Spektrometer des Typs „Fluorolog-3 Spectrofluorometer FL3-22" der Firma Jobin Yvon (USA) mit Photomultiplier, zwei Monochromatoren und einer 450 W Xenon-Lichtquelle genutzt.To measure the emission absorption spectra, a spectrometer of the type "Fluorolog-3 Spectrofluorometer FL3-22" from Jobin Yvon (USA) with photomultiplier, two monochromators and a 450 W xenon light source was used.
Die Diagramme der Fig.1 und der Fig.2 zeigen die resultierenden Absorptions-Emissionsspektren. Die jeweilige Emissionskurve entspricht der vollständigen Emission der Lumineszenzpigmente bei Bestrahlung mit Licht im Wellenlängebereich von 300 nm bis 800 nm. Zur Ermittlung der Absorptionskurven wurde die Wellenlänge des eingestrahlten Lichts sukzessive geändert und die Intensität der Emission von Licht der Wellenlänge des Emissionsmaximums (hier stets 640 nm) gegen die Wellenlänge des eingestrahlten Lichts aufgetragen. Es ist deutlich erkennbar, dass bei eingestrahltem Licht mit einer Wellenlänge von 540 nm die angeregte Emission ein Intensitätsmaximum besitzt. 3.0 RezepturenThe diagrams of Figure 1 and Figure 2 show the resulting absorption-emission spectra. The respective emission curve corresponds to the complete emission of the luminescence pigments when irradiated with light in the wavelength range of 300 nm to 800 nm. To determine the absorption curves, the wavelength of the irradiated light was successively changed and the intensity of the emission of light of the wavelength of the emission maximum (here always 640 nm ) is plotted against the wavelength of the incident light. It can be clearly seen that when the light is irradiated with a wavelength of 540 nm, the excited emission has an intensity maximum. 3.0 recipes
Die folgenden Rezepturen wurden unter Anwendung bekannter Herstellungsverfahren bereitgestellt. Dabei wurden nachstehende Handelsprodukte als Rohstoffe verwendet:The following formulations were provided using known preparation methods. The following commercial products were used as raw materials:
Hydrenor D Ci6-Ci8-Fettalkohol (INCI-Bezeichnung: Cetearyl alcohol) (Cognis Deutschland) Lorol® techn. Ci-Cis-Fettalkohol (INCI-Bezeichnung: Coconut alcohol) (Cognis Deutschland)Hydrenor D C 6 -C 8 fatty alcohol (INCI name: Cetearyl alcohol) (Cognis Germany) Lorol® ® techn. Ci Σ- Cis-fatty alcohol (INCI name: Coconut alcohol) (Cognis Germany)
Stenol® 16/18 C16-i8-Fettalkohol (INCI-Bezeichnung: Cetearyl Alcohol) (Cognis) Lorol® 16 INCI-Bezeichnung: Cetyl Alcohol (Cognis) Eumulgin® B1 Cetylstearylakohol mit 12 EO-EinheitenStenol 16/18 ® C 16-i 8 fatty alcohol (INCI name: Cetearyl Alcohol) (Cognis) 16 Lorol ® INCI name: Cetyl Alcohol (Cognis) Eumulgin ® B1 Cetylstearylakohol with 12 EO units
(INCI-Bezeichnung: Ceteareth-12) (Cognis Deutschland)(INCI name: Ceteareth-12) (Cognis Germany)
Eumulgin® B2 Cetylstearylalkohol mit ca. 20 EO-Einheiten (INCI- Bezeichnung: Ceteareth-20) (Cognis Deutschland)Eumulgin ® B2 Cetylstearylalkohol with about 20 EO units (INCI name: Ceteareth-20) (Cognis Germany)
Edenor® C14 Myristinsäure (INCI-Bezeichnung: Myristic Acid) (Cognis) Turpinal® SL 1-Hydroxyethan-1 ,1-diphosphonsäure (INCI-Bezeichnung: Etidronic Acid, Aqua (Water)) (Solutia)Edenor ® C14 myristic acid (INCI name: Myristic Acid) (Cognis) Turpinal SL ® 1-hydroxyethane-1, 1-diphosphonic acid (INCI name: Etidronic Acid, Aqua (Water)) (Solutia)
Plantapon® LGC Alkylpolyglucosid-Carboxylat Natriumsalz; 30 % Aktivsubstanz (Cognis Deutschland)Plantapon ® LGC Alkylpolyglucosid-carboxylate sodium salt; 30% active substance (Cognis Germany)
Texapon® NSO UP Natriumlaurylethersulfat (27 % Aktivsubstanz; INCI: Sodium Laureth Sulfate) (Hersteller : COGNIS) Texapon K 14 S 70 CTexapon ® NSO UP sodium lauryl ether sulfate (27% active ingredient, INCI: Sodium Laureth Sulfate) (manufacturer: COGNIS) Texapon K 14 S 70 C
Laurylmyristylethersulfat-Natrium-Salz (ca. 68% bis 73% Aktivsubstanzgehalt'; INCI-Bezeichnung: Sodium Myreth Sulfate) (Cognis)Laurylmyristylethersulfat sodium salt (ca. 68% to 73% active substance content '; INCI name: Sodium Myreth Sulfate) (Cognis)
Disponil® FES 77 IS Fettalkoholethersulfat (ca. 31-33% Aktivsubstanzgehalt in Wasser; INCI-Bezeichnung: Sodium Coceth-30 Sulfate) (Cognis) Akypo® Soft 45 NV 2-(C12-i4-Fettalkoholethoxylat (4.5 EO))-essigsäure Natriumsalz; 21 % Aktivsubstanz; INCI-Bezeichnung: Sodium Laureth-5 Carboxylate (KAO)Disponil FES 77 IS ® fatty alcohol ether sulfate (ca. 31-33% active substance content in water; INCI name: Sodium Sulfate Coceth-30) (Cognis) Akypo Soft 45 NV ® 2- (C 12 -i 4 fatty alcohol ethoxylate (4.5 EO)) acetic acid sodium salt; 21% active substance; INCI name: Sodium Laureth-5 Carboxylate (KAO)
Gluadin® W 40 Weizenproteinhydrolysat (mind. 40% Festkörper; INCI- Bezeichnung: Aqua (Water), Hydrolyzed Wheat Protein, Sodium Benzoate, Phenoxyethanol, Methylparaben, Propylparaben) (Cognis)Gluadin ® W 40 wheat protein hydrolyzate (at least 40% solids, INCI name: Aqua (Water), Hydrolyzed Wheat Protein, Sodium Benzoate, Phenoxyethanol, Methylparaben, Propylparaben) (Cognis)
Plantacare® 1200 UP C12-i6-Fettalkohol-1.4-glucosid (ca. 50-53% Aktivsubstanzgehalt; INCI- Bezeichnung: Lauryl Glucoside, Aqua (Water)) (Cognis) Lamesoft® PO 65 Alkylpolyglucosid Ölsäuremonoglycerid Gemisch (ca. 65-70% Festkörper; INCI-Bezeichnung: Coco-Glucoside, Glyceryl Oleate, Aqua (Water)) (Cognis) Fortsetzung Tabelle Aculyn® 33 30 Gew.-% Aktivsubstanz in Wasser (INCI-Bezeichnung: Acrylates Copolymer) (Rohm & Haas)Plantacare ® 1200 UP C 12 fatty alcohol -i 6-1.4-glucoside (approximately 50-53% active substance content; INCI name: Lauryl Glucoside, Aqua (Water)) (Cognis) Lamesoft ® PO 65 alkylpolyglucoside monoglyceride mixture (about 65 -70% solids; INCI name: Coco-Glucoside, Glyceryl Oleate, Aqua (Water)) (Cognis) Table continued Aculyn ® 33 30 wt .-% of active substance in water (INCI name: Acrylates Copolymer) (Rohm & Haas)
DOW Corning® DB 110 A nichtionogene Silikonemulsion (10 Gew.-% Aktivsubstanz) (INCI-Bezeichnung: Dimethicone) (Dow Corning)DOW Corning® DB 110 A Nonionic Silicone Emulsion (10% by Weight Active Ingredient) (INCI name: dimethicone) (Dow Corning)
Polymer® W 37194 ca. 20Gew.-% Aktivsubstanzgehalt in Wasser; INCI-Bezeichnung: Acrylamidopropyltrimonium Chloride/Acrylates CopolymerPolymer ® W 37194 approx. 20% by weight of active substance content in water; INCI name: Acrylamidopropyltrimonium Chloride / Acrylates Copolymer
(Stockhausen)(Stockhausen)
Merquaf 280 Dimethyldiallylammoniumchlorid Acrylsäure Copolymer (ca. 35 Aktivsubstanz in Wasser; INCI-Bezeichnung: Polyquaternium-22) (Ondeo-Nalco)Merquaf 280 dimethyldiallylammonium chloride acrylic acid copolymer (about 35 active ingredient in water, INCI name: Polyquaternium-22) (Ondeo-Nalco)
Die Mengenangaben sind, falls nicht anders gekennzeichnet, Gew.-% bezogen auf das Gesamtgewicht der jeweiligen Rezeptur.The quantities are, unless otherwise indicated, wt .-% based on the total weight of the respective recipe.
3.1 Blondiermittel3.1 Blonding agent
Die Blondiermittel B1 , B2 und B3 bestehen jeweils aus einer Blondiercreme und einem dazugehörigen Entwickler, sowie einem Bleichverstärker. Zur Herstellung des anwendungsbereiten Blondiermittels wurden 50 g des Bleichverstärkers in 50 g der entsprechenden Blondiercreme gegeben. Unter Rühren wurden 20 g des entsprechenden Entwicklers zugegeben. Bei Applikation auf Kopfhaar und einer Einwirkungszeit von 30 Minuten wurde nach dem Spülen und Trocknen eine hervorragende Aufhellung beobachtet.Bleaching agents B1, B2 and B3 each consist of a bleaching cream and an associated developer, and a bleach booster. To prepare the ready Blondiermittels 50 g of the bleaching agent were added to 50 g of the corresponding bleaching cream. With stirring, 20 g of the corresponding developer was added. When applied to hair and exposed for 30 minutes, excellent rinsing was observed after rinsing and drying.
3.1.1 Blondiercreme3.1.1 Blonding cream
Figure imgf000096_0001
3.1.2 Entwickler
Figure imgf000096_0001
3.1.2 Developer
Figure imgf000097_0001
Figure imgf000097_0001
3.1.3 Bleichverstärker3.1.3 bleach enhancer
(NhU)2S2O8 96(NHU) 2 S 2 O 8 96
Aerosil 200 4Aerosil 200 4
3.2 oxidative Farbveränderungsmittel3.2 oxidative color change agents
Zur Herstellung eines anwendungsbereiten Färbemittels wurden 50 g einer Färbecreme der Tabelle 3.2.1 unter Rühren mit 50 g eines Entwicklers gemäß Tabelle 3.2.2 gemischt. Aus jeder Färbecreme wurden drei verschiedene Anwendungsmischungen unter Zuhilfenahme von je einem der drei Entwickler gemäß Tabelle 3.2.2 hergestellt. Es resultierten daraus je Färbecreme 3 verschiedene Anwendungsmischungen, die sich nur im Gehalt an Wasserstoffperoxid unterschieden. Bei Applikation auf Kopfhaar und einer Einwirkungszeit von 30 Minuten wurde nach dem Spülen und Trocknen mit jeder Anwendungsmischung ein hervorragendes Färbeergebnis bzw. für F6 Aufhellergebnis erzielt. To prepare a colorant ready for use, 50 g of a tinting cream of Table 3.2.1 were mixed with stirring with 50 g of a developer according to Table 3.2.2. From each staining cream, three different mixtures were prepared with the help of one of the three developers according to Table 3.2.2. It resulted from each dyeing cream 3 different application mixtures, which differed only in the content of hydrogen peroxide. When applied to the hair of the head and with a contact time of 30 minutes, after rinsing and drying with each application mixture, an excellent dyeing result or for F6 brightening result was achieved.
3.2.1 Färbecremes3.2.1 Dyeing creams
Figure imgf000098_0001
3.2.2 Entwickler
Figure imgf000098_0001
3.2.2 Developer
Figure imgf000099_0001
Figure imgf000099_0001

Claims

P a t e n t a n s p r ü c h e Patent claims
1. Mittel, enthaltend in einem Träger als farbgebende Komponente Lumineszenzpigmente, dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass eine Lumineszenz dieser Pigmente durch die Absorption von sichtbarem Licht angeregt wird.1. agent containing in a carrier as a coloring component luminescent, characterized in that a luminescence of these pigments is excited by the absorption of visible light.
2. Mittel nach Anspruch 1 , dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass eine Lumineszenz der besagten Lumineszenzpigmente durch Absorption von Licht im Wellenlängenbereich zwischen 420 nm und 750 nm angeregt wird.2. Composition according to claim 1, characterized in that a luminescence of said luminescent pigments is excited by absorption of light in the wavelength range between 420 nm and 750 nm.
3. Mittel nach Anspruch 1 oder 2, dadurch gekennzeichnet, daß die besagten Lumineszenzpigmente ein Wirtsmaterial und mindestens ein Dotierungselement umfassen.3. Composition according to claim 1 or 2, characterized in that the said luminescent pigments comprise a host material and at least one doping element.
4. Mittel nach Anspruch 3, dadurch gekennzeichnet, daß das Wirtsmaterial ausgewählt wird aus Sulfiden oder Oxidsulfiden eines Metalls, ausgewählt aus Scandium, Yttrium, Lanthan, Cer, Praseodym, Neodym, Samarium, Europium, Gadolinium, Terbium, Dysprosium, Holmium, Erbium, Thulium, Ytterbium oder Lutetium.4. Composition according to claim 3, characterized in that the host material is selected from sulfides or oxide sulfides of a metal selected from scandium, yttrium, lanthanum, cerium, praseodymium, neodymium, samarium, europium, gadolinium, terbium, dysprosium, holmium, erbium, Thulium, ytterbium or lutetium.
5. Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 3 oder 4, dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass das Wirtsmaterial ausgewählt wird aus YSx, YS, Y2S3 , Y2OS2, Y2S3Oi2, ScS, Sc1i37S, Sc2S3, Sc2O2S, Sc2S3Oi2, LaS, LaSi 94, La4S7, La2S3, LaS2, LasSz, (La2S3)s 333, (La2S3)s4, (La2S3)s 24, La2 607S4, La2OßS, La2O2S2, La2O2S, Lai ,96θ2 i3,Oo,84, LaioOo,4sSi4i55, LaioOo,sSi4i5, LaioOSi4, GdS, GdS2, Gd3S4, Gd2S3, Gdo,957S, Gd2OS2, Gd2O2S, Gdi0OSi4, LuS, Lu2S3, Lu3S4, Lu36,32S48 oder Lu2O2S.5. Composition according to one of claims 3 or 4, characterized in that the host material is selected from YS x , YS, Y 2 S 3 , Y 2 OS 2 , Y 2 S 3 Oi 2 , ScS, Sc 1i37 S, Sc 2 S 3 , Sc 2 O 2 S, Sc 2 S 3 Oi 2 , LaS, LaSi 94 , La 4 S 7 , La 2 S 3 , LaS 2 , LasSz, (La 2 S 3 ) s 333 , (La 2 S 3 ) s 4, (La 2 S 3) s 24, La 2 607 S 4, La 2 O ß S, La 2 O 2 S 2, La 2 O 2 S, Lai, 96θ 2 i 3, Oo, 8 4, LaioOo, 4 sSi 4i 55, LaioOo, sSi 4i 5, LaioOSi4, GdS, GdS 2, Gd 3 S4, Gd 2 S 3, Gd o, 95 7 S, Gd 2 OS 2, Gd 2 O 2 S, Gdi 0 OSi 4 , LuS, Lu 2 S 3 , Lu 3 S 4 , Lu 36 , 32 S 48 or Lu 2 O 2 S.
6. Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 3 bis 5, dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass das Wirtsmaterial die Beta-Phase des Lanthansulfids Lai0OSi4 ist.6. Composition according to one of claims 3 to 5, characterized in that the host material is the beta phase of the lanthanum sulfide Lai 0 OSi 4 .
7. Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 3 bis 6, dadurch gekennzeichnet, daß das Dotierungselement ausgewählt wird aus mindestens einem Metallion mindestens eines Metalls des Periodensystems der Elemente, das aus einer oder mehrere der Gruppen 3, 4, 5, 6, 7, 8, 9, 10, 11 , 12 und/oder aus den Lanthanoiden stammt.7. Composition according to one of claims 3 to 6, characterized in that the doping element is selected from at least one metal ion of at least one metal of the Periodic Table of the Elements, consisting of one or more of the groups 3, 4, 5, 6, 7, 8, 9, 10, 11, 12 and / or from the lanthanides.
8. Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 3 bis 7, dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass mindestens ein Dotierungselement ausgewählt wird aus mindestens einem Metallion mindestens eines der Metalle Cer, Praseodym, Neodym, Samarium, Europium, Gadolinium, Terbium, Dysprosium, Holmium, Erbium, Thulium, Ytterbium.8. Composition according to one of claims 3 to 7, characterized in that at least one doping element is selected from at least one metal ion at least one of Metals cerium, praseodymium, neodymium, samarium, europium, gadolinium, terbium, dysprosium, holmium, erbium, thulium, ytterbium.
9. Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 3 bis 8, dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass die besagten Lumineszenzpigmente einen Dotierungsgrad von 0,01 % bis 50,0 % aufweisen.9. Composition according to one of claims 3 to 8, characterized in that said luminescent pigments have a degree of doping of 0.01% to 50.0%.
10. Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 3 bis 9, dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass das Wirtsmaterial mit einem Dortierungsgrad von 1 ,0 % bis 10,0 % mit Metallionen des Cers dotiert ist.10. Composition according to one of claims 3 to 9, characterized in that the host material is doped with a degree of dosing of 1, 0% to 10.0% with metal ions of cerium.
11. Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 3 bis 10, dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass das Wirtsmaterial mit einem Dortierungsgrad von 1 ,0 % bis 15,0 % mit Metallionen des Europiums dotiert ist.11. Composition according to one of claims 3 to 10, characterized in that the host material is doped with a degree of dosing of 1, 0% to 15.0% with metal ions of europium.
12. Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 3 bis 11 , dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass das Wirtsmaterial mit einem Dortierungsgrad von 5,0 % bis 90,0 % mit Metallionen des Terbiums dotiert ist.12. Composition according to one of claims 3 to 11, characterized in that the host material is doped with a degree of dosing of 5.0% to 90.0% with metal ions of terbium.
13. Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 1 bis 12, dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass die besagten LLuummiinneess;zenzpigmente einen mittleren Teilchendurchmesser von 1 103 m bis 1 10~10 m besitzen.13. A composition according to any one of claims 1 to 12, characterized in that the said LLuummiinneessenzenzpigmente have a mean particle diameter of 1 10 3 m to 1 10 ~ 10 m.
14. Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 1 bis 13, dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass es die besagten Lumineszenzpigmente in einer Menge von 0,01 Gew.-% bis 20,0 Gew.-%, bevorzugt von 1 ,0 Gew.-% bis 10,0 Gew.-%, jeweils bezogen auf das Gewicht des anwendungsbereiten Mittels, enthält.14. Composition according to one of claims 1 to 13, characterized in that it comprises said luminescent pigments in an amount of 0.01 wt .-% to 20.0 wt .-%, preferably from 1, 0 wt .-% to 10 , 0 wt .-%, each based on the weight of the ready-to-use agent contains.
15. Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 1 bis 14, dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass es zusätzlich mindestens ein Tensid enthält.15. Composition according to one of claims 1 to 14, characterized in that it additionally contains at least one surfactant.
16. Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 1 bis 15, dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass es zusätzlich mindestens ein filmbildendes Polymer enthält.16. Composition according to one of claims 1 to 15, characterized in that it additionally contains at least one film-forming polymer.
17. Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 1 bis 16, dadurch gekennzeichnet, dass es zusätzlich mindestens einen Fettstoff enthält.17. Composition according to one of claims 1 to 16, characterized in that it additionally contains at least one fatty substance.
18. Verwendung von Lumineszenzpigmenten, die eine durch sichtbares Licht anregbare Lumineszenz zeigen, zur Färbung von Substraten, insbesondere zur Färbung von Textilien und/oder zur Färbung menschlicher Haare und/oder zur Färbung von Haut und/oder zur Färbung von Fingernägeln.18. The use of luminescent pigments which exhibit visible light excitable luminescence, for coloring substrates, in particular for dyeing textiles and / or for coloring human hair and / or for coloring skin and / or for coloring fingernails.
19. Verwendung von Lumineszenzpigmenten, die eine durch sichtbares Licht anregbare Lumineszenz zeigen, zur Erhöhung der Farbbrillanz von Färbungen, insbesondere von Färbungen auf Textilien und/oder Färbungen auf menschlichen Haaren und/oder Färbungen auf der Haut.19. Use of luminescent pigments which exhibit visible light excitable luminescence, to increase the color brilliance of dyeings, in particular dyeings on textiles and / or dyeings on human hair and / or dyeings on the skin.
20. Verwendung von Lumineszenzpigmenten, die eine durch sichtbares Licht anregbare Lumineszenz zeigen, zur Verbesserung des Glanzes keratinhaltiger Fasern, insbesondere menschlicher Haare.20. Use of luminescent pigments which exhibit visible light excitable luminescence, to improve the gloss of keratin-containing fibers, especially human hair.
21. Verwendung von Lumineszenzpigmenten, die eine durch sichtbares Licht anregbare Lumineszenz zeigen, zur optischen Aufhellung von Substraten, insbesondere von Textilien und/oder von menschlichen Haaren und/oder von Haut und/oder Färbungen auf den Fingernägeln.21. The use of luminescent pigments which exhibit visible light excitable luminescence for the optical whitening of substrates, in particular of textiles and / or human hair and / or of skin and / or dyeings on the fingernails.
22. Verfahren zur Farbveränderung von Substraten, insbesondere von Textilien und/oder von menschlichen Haaren und/oder der Haut, dadurch gekennzeichnet, daß ein Mittel nach einem der Ansprüche 1 bis 17 auf das Substrat aufgetragen wird. 22. A process for the color change of substrates, in particular of textiles and / or human hair and / or skin, characterized in that an agent according to any one of claims 1 to 17 is applied to the substrate.
PCT/EP2007/063218 2007-01-31 2007-12-04 Colouring agents containing luminescent pigments that can be stimulated by visible light WO2008092522A1 (en)

Applications Claiming Priority (2)

Application Number Priority Date Filing Date Title
DE102007005646.1 2007-01-31
DE200710005646 DE102007005646A1 (en) 2007-01-31 2007-01-31 Colorant containing luminescent pigments which can be excited by visible light

Publications (1)

Publication Number Publication Date
WO2008092522A1 true WO2008092522A1 (en) 2008-08-07

Family

ID=38858986

Family Applications (1)

Application Number Title Priority Date Filing Date
PCT/EP2007/063218 WO2008092522A1 (en) 2007-01-31 2007-12-04 Colouring agents containing luminescent pigments that can be stimulated by visible light

Country Status (2)

Country Link
DE (1) DE102007005646A1 (en)
WO (1) WO2008092522A1 (en)

Cited By (18)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
FR2931671A1 (en) * 2008-06-02 2009-12-04 Oreal COMPOSITIONS CONTAINING POLYESTER AND COLORING MATERIAL AND USES THEREOF
WO2013185950A1 (en) 2012-06-11 2013-12-19 Sicpa Holding Sa Methods for printing tactile security features
US8685276B2 (en) 2009-05-12 2014-04-01 Sicpa Holding Sa Secure document comprising luminescent chelates
WO2014048702A1 (en) 2012-09-28 2014-04-03 Sicpa Holding Sa Luminescent lanthanide complex, and articles and inks containing the luminescent complex
WO2014072172A1 (en) 2012-11-09 2014-05-15 Sicpa Holding Sa Irreversibly magnetically induced images or patterns
WO2014086531A1 (en) 2012-12-07 2014-06-12 Sicpa Holding Sa Non-periodic tiling document security element
WO2014177375A1 (en) 2013-05-01 2014-11-06 Sicpa Holding Sa Security elements exhibiting a dynamic visual motion
US9243169B2 (en) 2013-05-16 2016-01-26 Sicpa Holding Sa Security laminate
WO2016037895A1 (en) 2014-09-09 2016-03-17 Sicpa Holding Sa Banknotes having interrelated features
WO2017001188A1 (en) 2015-07-01 2017-01-05 Sicpa Holding Sa Postage stamps
US9778201B2 (en) 2012-07-03 2017-10-03 Sicpa Holding Sa Capsule or cork comprising security features
US9987866B2 (en) 2014-03-31 2018-06-05 Sicpa Holding Sa Marking comprising a chiral liquid crystal polymer and a luminescent substance
WO2018104213A1 (en) 2016-12-09 2018-06-14 Sicpa Holding Sa Low energy curing offset and letterpress printing inks and printing process
WO2018104231A1 (en) 2016-12-09 2018-06-14 Sicpa Holding Sa Low energy curing offset and letterpress printing inks and printing process
WO2019002046A1 (en) 2017-06-26 2019-01-03 Sicpa Holding Sa Printing of security features
WO2021122574A1 (en) 2019-12-18 2021-06-24 Sicpa Holding Sa Uv-led radically curable offset printing inks and printing processes
EP3988320A1 (en) 2021-12-20 2022-04-27 Sicpa Holding SA Security marking, corresponding engraved intaglio printing plate, and methods and devices for producing, encoding/decoding and authenticating said security marking
CN117343509A (en) * 2023-12-05 2024-01-05 上海翰晖新材料有限公司 Ultraviolet-resistant PET plastic and processing technology thereof

Families Citing this family (1)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
EP2479239A4 (en) * 2009-09-18 2014-03-05 Mitsui Mining & Smelting Co Phosphor for scintillators

Citations (8)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
US4158641A (en) * 1976-10-26 1979-06-19 Shofu Dental Manufacturing Co., Ltd. Fluorescent dental porcelain
US4198244A (en) * 1978-04-07 1980-04-15 National Research Development Corporation Fluorescing agents for dental porcelain
DE2901917A1 (en) * 1979-01-18 1980-07-24 Max Planck Gesellschaft Lanthanide oxide sulphide oxide sulphide selenide red phosphors - with interstitial metal ion activator and halide coactivator useful in colour TV tube
DE3132946A1 (en) * 1981-08-20 1983-03-03 Ernst-Günter Dipl.-Phys. 2050 Hamburg Scharmer Luminophor having a short decay time
WO2000056274A1 (en) * 1999-03-23 2000-09-28 Pyramid Productions, Inc. Body coating composition
WO2003057797A1 (en) * 2001-12-28 2003-07-17 Sony Corporation Fluorescent substance, composite material, coating material, paint, ink, artificial skin, method for processing of information on contact with artificial skin, artificial luminescent skin, artificial luminescent hair, luminescent element, electronic device, luminescent system, display system, flexible luminescent material,
WO2004065295A1 (en) * 2003-01-17 2004-08-05 Ciba Specialty Chemicals Holding Inc. A process for the production of porous inorganic materials or a matrix material containing nanoparticles
WO2006008239A2 (en) * 2004-07-16 2006-01-26 Ciba Specialty Chemicals Holding Inc. Luminescent silicon oxide flakes

Family Cites Families (25)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
US4237253A (en) 1977-04-21 1980-12-02 L'oreal Copolymers, their process of preparation, and cosmetic compounds containing them
US4122029A (en) 1977-07-27 1978-10-24 Dow Corning Corporation Emulsion compositions comprising a siloxane-oxyalkylene copolymer and an organic surfactant
US4265878A (en) 1979-06-07 1981-05-05 Dow Corning Corporation Antiperspirant stick compositions
JPS5699407A (en) 1980-01-09 1981-08-10 Kao Corp Hair rinse composition
DE3172768D1 (en) 1980-09-05 1985-12-05 Ciba Geigy Ag Mixtures of polymeric high-molecular acrylic quaternary ammonium salts and detergents, their preparation and use in cosmetic formulations
JPS5813700A (en) 1981-07-17 1983-01-26 花王株式会社 Detergent composition
US4421769A (en) 1981-09-29 1983-12-20 The Procter & Gamble Company Skin conditioning composition
EP0217274A3 (en) 1985-09-30 1988-06-29 Kao Corporation Hair cosmetic composition
DE3708451A1 (en) 1987-03-16 1988-10-06 Henkel Kgaa ZWITTERIONIC POLYMERS AND THEIR USE IN HAIR TREATMENT AGENTS
DE3723354A1 (en) 1987-07-15 1989-01-26 Henkel Kgaa SULFATED HYDROXY MIXERS, METHOD FOR THEIR PRODUCTION AND THEIR USE
DE3725030A1 (en) 1987-07-29 1989-02-09 Henkel Kgaa SURFACE ACTIVE HYDROXYSULFONATE
DE3926344A1 (en) 1989-08-09 1991-02-28 Henkel Kgaa METHOD FOR THE PRODUCTION OF LIGHT-COLORED OELSAEURESULFONATES
DE3929973A1 (en) 1989-09-08 1991-03-14 Henkel Kgaa HAIR CARE
DE4440625A1 (en) 1994-11-14 1996-05-15 Henkel Kgaa Process for the production of light colored chitosans
DE19503465A1 (en) 1995-02-03 1996-08-08 Henkel Kgaa Process for the production of low-viscosity cationic biopolymers
GB9708182D0 (en) 1997-04-23 1997-06-11 Dow Corning Sa A method of making silicone in water emulsions
DE19756454C1 (en) 1997-12-18 1999-06-17 Henkel Kgaa Surface-active compositions, especially cosmetics, containing glycerol carbonate as emulsifier
US5998537A (en) 1998-09-21 1999-12-07 Dow Corning Corporation Emulsions containing ultrahigh viscosity silicone polymers
FR2785183B1 (en) 1998-11-04 2002-04-05 Oreal TINCTORIAL COMPOSITION CONTAINING CATIONIC DIRECT DYE AND PYRAZOLO- [1,5-a] - PYRIMIDINE AS OXIDATION BASE, AND DYEING METHODS
DE29908573U1 (en) 1999-05-14 1999-08-05 Wella Ag Hair dye
EP1129701A1 (en) 2000-02-29 2001-09-05 Primacare S.A. Cosmetic compositions comprising a chemiluminescence compound
DE10225819A1 (en) 2002-06-11 2004-01-08 Forschungszentrum Karlsruhe Gmbh Fluorescent cosmetic products contain nanoparticles with an oxide-ceramic core and a polymer or copolymer cover
WO2004108108A1 (en) 2003-06-04 2004-12-16 Schwan-Stabilo Cosmetics Gmbh & Co. Kg Cosmetic preparation containing an insoluble colorant that produces fluorescent effects
WO2006011014A1 (en) 2004-07-16 2006-02-02 L'oreal Cosmetic composition containing photoluminescent particles
FR2885521B1 (en) 2005-05-10 2009-07-24 Oreal COSMETIC COMPOSITION

Patent Citations (8)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
US4158641A (en) * 1976-10-26 1979-06-19 Shofu Dental Manufacturing Co., Ltd. Fluorescent dental porcelain
US4198244A (en) * 1978-04-07 1980-04-15 National Research Development Corporation Fluorescing agents for dental porcelain
DE2901917A1 (en) * 1979-01-18 1980-07-24 Max Planck Gesellschaft Lanthanide oxide sulphide oxide sulphide selenide red phosphors - with interstitial metal ion activator and halide coactivator useful in colour TV tube
DE3132946A1 (en) * 1981-08-20 1983-03-03 Ernst-Günter Dipl.-Phys. 2050 Hamburg Scharmer Luminophor having a short decay time
WO2000056274A1 (en) * 1999-03-23 2000-09-28 Pyramid Productions, Inc. Body coating composition
WO2003057797A1 (en) * 2001-12-28 2003-07-17 Sony Corporation Fluorescent substance, composite material, coating material, paint, ink, artificial skin, method for processing of information on contact with artificial skin, artificial luminescent skin, artificial luminescent hair, luminescent element, electronic device, luminescent system, display system, flexible luminescent material,
WO2004065295A1 (en) * 2003-01-17 2004-08-05 Ciba Specialty Chemicals Holding Inc. A process for the production of porous inorganic materials or a matrix material containing nanoparticles
WO2006008239A2 (en) * 2004-07-16 2006-01-26 Ciba Specialty Chemicals Holding Inc. Luminescent silicon oxide flakes

Cited By (29)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
WO2009147088A1 (en) * 2008-06-02 2009-12-10 L'oreal Compositions containing a polyester and a colorant and uses thereof
FR2931671A1 (en) * 2008-06-02 2009-12-04 Oreal COMPOSITIONS CONTAINING POLYESTER AND COLORING MATERIAL AND USES THEREOF
US8685276B2 (en) 2009-05-12 2014-04-01 Sicpa Holding Sa Secure document comprising luminescent chelates
US9616699B2 (en) 2012-06-11 2017-04-11 Sicpa Holding Sa Methods for printing tactile security features
WO2013185950A1 (en) 2012-06-11 2013-12-19 Sicpa Holding Sa Methods for printing tactile security features
US9778201B2 (en) 2012-07-03 2017-10-03 Sicpa Holding Sa Capsule or cork comprising security features
WO2014048702A1 (en) 2012-09-28 2014-04-03 Sicpa Holding Sa Luminescent lanthanide complex, and articles and inks containing the luminescent complex
US9163155B2 (en) 2012-09-28 2015-10-20 Sicpa Holding Sa Luminescent lanthanide complex, and articles and inks containing the luminescent complex
WO2014072172A1 (en) 2012-11-09 2014-05-15 Sicpa Holding Sa Irreversibly magnetically induced images or patterns
US9724957B2 (en) 2012-11-09 2017-08-08 Sicpa Holding Sa Irreversibly magnetically induced images or patterns
WO2014086531A1 (en) 2012-12-07 2014-06-12 Sicpa Holding Sa Non-periodic tiling document security element
WO2014177375A1 (en) 2013-05-01 2014-11-06 Sicpa Holding Sa Security elements exhibiting a dynamic visual motion
US9434203B2 (en) 2013-05-01 2016-09-06 Sicpa Holding Sa Security elements exhibiting a dynamic visual motion
US9243169B2 (en) 2013-05-16 2016-01-26 Sicpa Holding Sa Security laminate
US9987866B2 (en) 2014-03-31 2018-06-05 Sicpa Holding Sa Marking comprising a chiral liquid crystal polymer and a luminescent substance
US10265994B2 (en) 2014-09-09 2019-04-23 Sicpa Holding Sa Banknotes having interrelated features
WO2016037895A1 (en) 2014-09-09 2016-03-17 Sicpa Holding Sa Banknotes having interrelated features
WO2017001188A1 (en) 2015-07-01 2017-01-05 Sicpa Holding Sa Postage stamps
US10982102B2 (en) 2016-12-09 2021-04-20 Sicpa Holding Sa Low energy curing offset and letterpress printing inks and printing process
WO2018104213A1 (en) 2016-12-09 2018-06-14 Sicpa Holding Sa Low energy curing offset and letterpress printing inks and printing process
WO2018104231A1 (en) 2016-12-09 2018-06-14 Sicpa Holding Sa Low energy curing offset and letterpress printing inks and printing process
US10982103B2 (en) 2016-12-09 2021-04-20 Sicpa Holding Sa Low energy curing offset and letterpress printing inks and printing process
WO2019002046A1 (en) 2017-06-26 2019-01-03 Sicpa Holding Sa Printing of security features
US11124006B2 (en) 2017-06-26 2021-09-21 Sicpa Holding Sa Printing of security features
WO2021122574A1 (en) 2019-12-18 2021-06-24 Sicpa Holding Sa Uv-led radically curable offset printing inks and printing processes
EP3988320A1 (en) 2021-12-20 2022-04-27 Sicpa Holding SA Security marking, corresponding engraved intaglio printing plate, and methods and devices for producing, encoding/decoding and authenticating said security marking
WO2023117765A1 (en) 2021-12-20 2023-06-29 Sicpa Holding Sa Security element, corresponding engraved intaglio printing plate, and methods and devices for producing, decoding and authenticating security marking of said security element
CN117343509A (en) * 2023-12-05 2024-01-05 上海翰晖新材料有限公司 Ultraviolet-resistant PET plastic and processing technology thereof
CN117343509B (en) * 2023-12-05 2024-02-13 上海翰晖新材料有限公司 Ultraviolet-resistant PET plastic and processing technology thereof

Also Published As

Publication number Publication date
DE102007005646A1 (en) 2008-08-07

Similar Documents

Publication Publication Date Title
WO2008092522A1 (en) Colouring agents containing luminescent pigments that can be stimulated by visible light
EP2023890B1 (en) Oxidative hair treatment with reduced hair damage
WO2008077688A1 (en) Stabilization of compositions comprising hydrogen peroxide
WO2006131234A1 (en) Cosmetic compositions comprising ionic liquids
DE102008019340A1 (en) Hair treatment with cloudberry fruit extract
WO2007059822A1 (en) Cosmetic compositions containing anionic surfactant(s) and ionic liquids i
WO2009047022A1 (en) Oxidative hair treatment with reduced damage to hair
DE102005056157A1 (en) Cosmetic composition containing anionic surfactant and ionic fluid, mixed just before use, useful particularly for treatment of hair, has increased viscosity and better foam stability
WO2008092529A1 (en) Light effect pigments coated with polymer particles
DE102008012068A1 (en) Hair treatment with cranberry extract
EP2054123B1 (en) Hair color change which protects the skin
EP1923048A1 (en) Hair treatment to minimise hair damage
WO2006108505A2 (en) Oxidation dyes comprising 2-furanones and collagen (derivatives)
DE102006003924A1 (en) Brightening and / or coloring with reduced irritation potential
WO2009013030A1 (en) Hair treatment composition comprising litchi extract and catechols
EP2054027A2 (en) Oxidative hair treatment agents containing a litchi extract
DE102008031556A1 (en) Composition, useful e.g. as shampoo, hair coloring agent, lotion and gel or cream, comprises e.g. tyrosine and/or its derivative, protein hydrolysate, adenosine-triphosphate and a substance comprising riboflavin and lyxoflavin
WO2007124927A2 (en) &#39;lightening and/or colouring compositions with imidazoles and amino alcohols&#39;
DE102006053692A1 (en) Using cream during oxidative treatments of hair, e.g. dyeing or bleaching, to reduce oxidative damage to hair and irritation and sensitivity to the scalp
DE102006003926A1 (en) Brightening and / or coloring with reduced irritation potential
DE102008014368A1 (en) Cosmetic composition for hair treatment, for use e.g. in shampoos, rinses, hair-care products or hair dyes, contains a special flavonoid and a vitamin of the B group, especially tiliroside and pantolactone
EP1754515A1 (en) Hair dyeing and treatment kit containing dyes and colour protecting agents
DE102008012059A1 (en) Hair treatment remedy with goji extract
EP1972323A2 (en) Hair colorant
DE102006003925A1 (en) Brightening and / or coloring with reduced irritation potential

Legal Events

Date Code Title Description
121 Ep: the epo has been informed by wipo that ep was designated in this application

Ref document number: 07847727

Country of ref document: EP

Kind code of ref document: A1

NENP Non-entry into the national phase

Ref country code: DE

122 Ep: pct application non-entry in european phase

Ref document number: 07847727

Country of ref document: EP

Kind code of ref document: A1